Data science workflow repository to explore and guide you through the data science task using command line tools.
You can not select more than 25 topics Topics must start with a letter or number, can include dashes ('-') and can be up to 35 characters long.

12325 lines
602 KiB

4 years ago
  1. 
  2. The Project Gutenberg EBook of Adventures of Huckleberry Finn, Complete
  3. by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
  4. This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
  5. no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
  6. it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  7. eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  8. Title: Adventures of Huckleberry Finn, Complete
  9. Author: Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
  10. Release Date: August 20, 2006 [EBook #76]
  11. Last Updated: February 23, 2018
  12. Language: English
  13. Character set encoding: UTF-8
  14. *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUCKLEBERRY FINN ***
  15. Produced by David Widger
  16. ADVENTURES
  17. OF
  18. HUCKLEBERRY FINN
  19. (Tom Sawyer's Comrade)
  20. By Mark Twain
  21. Complete
  22. CONTENTS.
  23. CHAPTER I. Civilizing Huck.--Miss Watson.--Tom Sawyer Waits.
  24. CHAPTER II. The Boys Escape Jim.--Torn Sawyer's Gang.--Deep-laid Plans.
  25. CHAPTER III. A Good Going-over.--Grace Triumphant.--“One of Tom Sawyers's
  26. Lies”.
  27. CHAPTER IV. Huck and the Judge.--Superstition.
  28. CHAPTER V. Huck's Father.--The Fond Parent.--Reform.
  29. CHAPTER VI. He Went for Judge Thatcher.--Huck Decided to Leave.--Political
  30. Economy.--Thrashing Around.
  31. CHAPTER VII. Laying for Him.--Locked in the Cabin.--Sinking the
  32. Body.--Resting.
  33. CHAPTER VIII. Sleeping in the Woods.--Raising the Dead.--Exploring the
  34. Island.--Finding Jim.--Jim's Escape.--Signs.--Balum.
  35. CHAPTER IX. The Cave.--The Floating House.
  36. CHAPTER X. The Find.--Old Hank Bunker.--In Disguise.
  37. CHAPTER XI. Huck and the Woman.--The Search.--Prevarication.--Going to
  38. Goshen.
  39. CHAPTER XII. Slow Navigation.--Borrowing Things.--Boarding the Wreck.--The
  40. Plotters.--Hunting for the Boat.
  41. CHAPTER XIII. Escaping from the Wreck.--The Watchman.--Sinking.
  42. CHAPTER XIV. A General Good Time.--The Harem.--French.
  43. CHAPTER XV. Huck Loses the Raft.--In the Fog.--Huck Finds the Raft.--Trash.
  44. CHAPTER XVI. Expectation.--A White Lie.--Floating Currency.--Running by
  45. Cairo.--Swimming Ashore.
  46. CHAPTER XVII. An Evening Call.--The Farm in Arkansaw.--Interior
  47. Decorations.--Stephen Dowling Bots.--Poetical Effusions.
  48. CHAPTER XVIII. Col. Grangerford.--Aristocracy.--Feuds.--The
  49. Testament.--Recovering the Raft.--The Wood--pile.--Pork and Cabbage.
  50. CHAPTER XIX. Tying Up Day--times.--An Astronomical Theory.--Running a
  51. Temperance Revival.--The Duke of Bridgewater.--The Troubles of Royalty.
  52. CHAPTER XX. Huck Explains.--Laying Out a Campaign.--Working the
  53. Camp--meeting.--A Pirate at the Camp--meeting.--The Duke as a Printer.
  54. CHAPTER XXI. Sword Exercise.--Hamlet's Soliloquy.--They Loafed Around
  55. Town.--A Lazy Town.--Old Boggs.--Dead.
  56. CHAPTER XXII. Sherburn.--Attending the Circus.--Intoxication in the
  57. Ring.--The Thrilling Tragedy.
  58. CHAPTER XXIII. Sold.--Royal Comparisons.--Jim Gets Home-sick.
  59. CHAPTER XXIV. Jim in Royal Robes.--They Take a Passenger.--Getting
  60. Information.--Family Grief.
  61. CHAPTER XXV. Is It Them?--Singing the “Doxologer.”--Awful Square--Funeral
  62. Orgies.--A Bad Investment .
  63. CHAPTER XXVI. A Pious King.--The King's Clergy.--She Asked His
  64. Pardon.--Hiding in the Room.--Huck Takes the Money.
  65. CHAPTER XXVII. The Funeral.--Satisfying Curiosity.--Suspicious of
  66. Huck,--Quick Sales and Small.
  67. CHAPTER XXVIII. The Trip to England.--“The Brute!”--Mary Jane Decides to
  68. Leave.--Huck Parting with Mary Jane.--Mumps.--The Opposition Line.
  69. CHAPTER XXIX. Contested Relationship.--The King Explains the Loss.--A
  70. Question of Handwriting.--Digging up the Corpse.--Huck Escapes.
  71. CHAPTER XXX. The King Went for Him.--A Royal Row.--Powerful Mellow.
  72. CHAPTER XXXI. Ominous Plans.--News from Jim.--Old Recollections.--A Sheep
  73. Story.--Valuable Information.
  74. CHAPTER XXXII. Still and Sunday--like.--Mistaken Identity.--Up a Stump.--In
  75. a Dilemma.
  76. CHAPTER XXXIII. A Nigger Stealer.--Southern Hospitality.--A Pretty Long
  77. Blessing.--Tar and Feathers.
  78. CHAPTER XXXIV. The Hut by the Ash Hopper.--Outrageous.--Climbing the
  79. Lightning Rod.--Troubled with Witches.
  80. CHAPTER XXXV. Escaping Properly.--Dark Schemes.--Discrimination in
  81. Stealing.--A Deep Hole.
  82. CHAPTER XXXVI. The Lightning Rod.--His Level Best.--A Bequest to
  83. Posterity.--A High Figure.
  84. CHAPTER XXXVII. The Last Shirt.--Mooning Around.--Sailing Orders.--The
  85. Witch Pie.
  86. CHAPTER XXXVIII. The Coat of Arms.--A Skilled Superintendent.--Unpleasant
  87. Glory.--A Tearful Subject.
  88. CHAPTER XXXIX. Rats.--Lively Bed--fellows.--The Straw Dummy.
  89. CHAPTER XL. Fishing.--The Vigilance Committee.--A Lively Run.--Jim Advises
  90. a Doctor.
  91. CHAPTER XLI. The Doctor.--Uncle Silas.--Sister Hotchkiss.--Aunt Sally in
  92. Trouble.
  93. CHAPTER XLII. Tom Sawyer Wounded.--The Doctor's Story.--Tom
  94. Confesses.--Aunt Polly Arrives.--Hand Out Them Letters    .
  95. CHAPTER THE LAST. Out of Bondage.--Paying the Captive.--Yours Truly, Huck
  96. Finn.
  97. ILLUSTRATIONS.
  98. The Widows
  99. Moses and the “Bulrushers”
  100. Miss Watson
  101. Huck Stealing Away
  102. They Tip-toed Along
  103. Jim
  104. Tom Sawyer's Band of Robbers  
  105. Huck Creeps into his Window
  106. Miss Watson's Lecture
  107. The Robbers Dispersed
  108. Rubbing the Lamp
  109. ! ! ! !
  110. Judge Thatcher surprised
  111. Jim Listening
  112. “Pap”
  113. Huck and his Father
  114. Reforming the Drunkard
  115. Falling from Grace
  116. Getting out of the Way
  117. Solid Comfort
  118. Thinking it Over
  119. Raising a Howl
  120. “Git Up”
  121. The Shanty
  122. Shooting the Pig
  123. Taking a Rest
  124. In the Woods
  125. Watching the Boat
  126. Discovering the Camp Fire
  127. Jim and the Ghost
  128. Misto Bradish's Nigger
  129. Exploring the Cave
  130. In the Cave
  131. Jim sees a Dead Man
  132. They Found Eight Dollars
  133. Jim and the Snake
  134. Old Hank Bunker
  135. “A Fair Fit”
  136. “Come In”
  137. “Him and another Man”
  138. She puts up a Snack
  139. “Hump Yourself”
  140. On the Raft
  141. He sometimes Lifted a Chicken
  142. “Please don't, Bill”
  143. “It ain't Good Morals”
  144. “Oh! Lordy, Lordy!”
  145. In a Fix
  146. “Hello, What's Up?”
  147. The Wreck
  148. We turned in and Slept
  149. Turning over the Truck
  150. Solomon and his Million Wives
  151. The story of “Sollermun”
  152. “We Would Sell the Raft”
  153. Among the Snags
  154. Asleep on the Raft
  155. “Something being Raftsman”
  156. “Boy, that's a Lie”
  157. “Here I is, Huck”
  158. Climbing up the Bank
  159. “Who's There?”
  160. “Buck”
  161. “It made Her look Spidery”
  162. “They got him out and emptied Him”  
  163. The House
  164. Col. Grangerford
  165. Young Harney Shepherdson
  166. Miss Charlotte
  167. “And asked me if I Liked Her”
  168. “Behind the Wood-pile”
  169. Hiding Day-times
  170. “And Dogs a-Coming”
  171. “By rights I am a Duke!”
  172. “I am the Late Dauphin”
  173. Tail Piece
  174. On the Raft
  175. The King as Juliet
  176. “Courting on the Sly”
  177. “A Pirate for Thirty Years”
  178. Another little Job
  179. Practizing
  180. Hamlet's Soliloquy
  181. “Gimme a Chaw”
  182. A Little Monthly Drunk
  183. The Death of Boggs
  184. Sherburn steps out
  185. A Dead Head
  186. He shed Seventeen Suits
  187. Tragedy
  188. Their Pockets Bulged
  189. Henry the Eighth in Boston Harbor
  190. Harmless
  191. Adolphus
  192. He fairly emptied that Young Fellow
  193. “Alas, our Poor Brother”
  194. “You Bet it is”
  195. Leaking
  196. Making up the “Deffisit”
  197. Going for him
  198. The Doctor
  199. The Bag of Money
  200. The Cubby
  201. Supper with the Hare-Lip
  202. Honest Injun
  203. The Duke looks under the Bed
  204. Huck takes the Money
  205. A Crack in the Dining-room Door
  206. The Undertaker
  207. “He had a Rat!”
  208. “Was you in my Room?”
  209. Jawing
  210. In Trouble
  211. Indignation
  212. How to Find Them
  213. He Wrote
  214. Hannah with the Mumps
  215. The Auction
  216. The True Brothers
  217. The Doctor leads Huck
  218. The Duke Wrote
  219. “Gentlemen, Gentlemen!”
  220. “Jim Lit Out”
  221. The King shakes Huck
  222. The Duke went for Him
  223. Spanish Moss
  224. “Who Nailed Him?”
  225. Thinking
  226. He gave him Ten Cents
  227. Striking for the Back Country
  228. Still and Sunday-like
  229. She hugged him tight
  230. “Who do you reckon it is?”
  231. “It was Tom Sawyer”
  232. “Mr. Archibald Nichols, I presume?”
  233. A pretty long Blessing
  234. Traveling By Rail
  235. Vittles
  236. A Simple Job
  237. Witches
  238. Getting Wood
  239. One of the Best Authorities
  240. The Breakfast-Horn
  241. Smouching the Knives
  242. Going down the Lightning-Rod
  243. Stealing spoons
  244. Tom advises a Witch Pie
  245. The Rubbage-Pile
  246. “Missus, dey's a Sheet Gone”
  247. In a Tearing Way
  248. One of his Ancestors
  249. Jim's Coat of Arms
  250. A Tough Job
  251. Buttons on their Tails
  252. Irrigation
  253. Keeping off Dull Times
  254. Sawdust Diet
  255. Trouble is Brewing
  256. Fishing
  257. Every one had a Gun
  258. Tom caught on a Splinter
  259. Jim advises a Doctor
  260. The Doctor
  261. Uncle Silas in Danger
  262. Old Mrs. Hotchkiss
  263. Aunt Sally talks to Huck
  264. Tom Sawyer wounded
  265. The Doctor speaks for Jim
  266. Tom rose square up in Bed
  267. “Hand out them Letters”
  268. Out of Bondage
  269. Tom's Liberality
  270. Yours Truly
  271. EXPLANATORY
  272. IN this book a number of dialects are used, to wit:  the Missouri negro
  273. dialect; the extremest form of the backwoods Southwestern dialect; the
  274. ordinary “Pike County” dialect; and four modified varieties of this
  275. last. The shadings have not been done in a haphazard fashion, or by
  276. guesswork; but painstakingly, and with the trustworthy guidance and
  277. support of personal familiarity with these several forms of speech.
  278. I make this explanation for the reason that without it many readers
  279. would suppose that all these characters were trying to talk alike and
  280. not succeeding.
  281. THE AUTHOR.
  282. HUCKLEBERRY FINN
  283. Scene:  The Mississippi Valley Time:  Forty to fifty years ago
  284. CHAPTER I.
  285. YOU don't know about me without you have read a book by the name of The
  286. Adventures of Tom Sawyer; but that ain't no matter.  That book was made
  287. by Mr. Mark Twain, and he told the truth, mainly.  There was things
  288. which he stretched, but mainly he told the truth.  That is nothing.  I
  289. never seen anybody but lied one time or another, without it was Aunt
  290. Polly, or the widow, or maybe Mary.  Aunt Polly--Tom's Aunt Polly, she
  291. is--and Mary, and the Widow Douglas is all told about in that book, which
  292. is mostly a true book, with some stretchers, as I said before.
  293. Now the way that the book winds up is this:  Tom and me found the money
  294. that the robbers hid in the cave, and it made us rich.  We got six
  295. thousand dollars apiece--all gold.  It was an awful sight of money when
  296. it was piled up.  Well, Judge Thatcher he took it and put it out
  297. at interest, and it fetched us a dollar a day apiece all the year
  298. round--more than a body could tell what to do with.  The Widow Douglas
  299. she took me for her son, and allowed she would sivilize me; but it was
  300. rough living in the house all the time, considering how dismal regular
  301. and decent the widow was in all her ways; and so when I couldn't stand
  302. it no longer I lit out.  I got into my old rags and my sugar-hogshead
  303. again, and was free and satisfied.  But Tom Sawyer he hunted me up and
  304. said he was going to start a band of robbers, and I might join if I
  305. would go back to the widow and be respectable.  So I went back.
  306. The widow she cried over me, and called me a poor lost lamb, and she
  307. called me a lot of other names, too, but she never meant no harm by
  308. it. She put me in them new clothes again, and I couldn't do nothing but
  309. sweat and sweat, and feel all cramped up.  Well, then, the old thing
  310. commenced again.  The widow rung a bell for supper, and you had to come
  311. to time. When you got to the table you couldn't go right to eating, but
  312. you had to wait for the widow to tuck down her head and grumble a little
  313. over the victuals, though there warn't really anything the matter with
  314. them,--that is, nothing only everything was cooked by itself.  In a
  315. barrel of odds and ends it is different; things get mixed up, and the
  316. juice kind of swaps around, and the things go better.
  317. After supper she got out her book and learned me about Moses and the
  318. Bulrushers, and I was in a sweat to find out all about him; but by and
  319. by she let it out that Moses had been dead a considerable long time; so
  320. then I didn't care no more about him, because I don't take no stock in
  321. dead people.
  322. Pretty soon I wanted to smoke, and asked the widow to let me.  But she
  323. wouldn't.  She said it was a mean practice and wasn't clean, and I must
  324. try to not do it any more.  That is just the way with some people.  They
  325. get down on a thing when they don't know nothing about it.  Here she was
  326. a-bothering about Moses, which was no kin to her, and no use to anybody,
  327. being gone, you see, yet finding a power of fault with me for doing a
  328. thing that had some good in it.  And she took snuff, too; of course that
  329. was all right, because she done it herself.
  330. Her sister, Miss Watson, a tolerable slim old maid, with goggles on,
  331. had just come to live with her, and took a set at me now with a
  332. spelling-book. She worked me middling hard for about an hour, and then
  333. the widow made her ease up.  I couldn't stood it much longer.  Then for
  334. an hour it was deadly dull, and I was fidgety.  Miss Watson would say,
  335. “Don't put your feet up there, Huckleberry;” and “Don't scrunch up
  336. like that, Huckleberry--set up straight;” and pretty soon she would
  337. say, “Don't gap and stretch like that, Huckleberry--why don't you try to
  338. behave?”  Then she told me all about the bad place, and I said I wished
  339. I was there. She got mad then, but I didn't mean no harm.  All I wanted
  340. was to go somewheres; all I wanted was a change, I warn't particular.
  341.  She said it was wicked to say what I said; said she wouldn't say it for
  342. the whole world; she was going to live so as to go to the good place.
  343.  Well, I couldn't see no advantage in going where she was going, so I
  344. made up my mind I wouldn't try for it.  But I never said so, because it
  345. would only make trouble, and wouldn't do no good.
  346. Now she had got a start, and she went on and told me all about the good
  347. place.  She said all a body would have to do there was to go around all
  348. day long with a harp and sing, forever and ever.  So I didn't think
  349. much of it. But I never said so.  I asked her if she reckoned Tom Sawyer
  350. would go there, and she said not by a considerable sight.  I was glad
  351. about that, because I wanted him and me to be together.
  352. Miss Watson she kept pecking at me, and it got tiresome and lonesome.
  353.  By and by they fetched the niggers in and had prayers, and then
  354. everybody was off to bed.  I went up to my room with a piece of candle,
  355. and put it on the table.  Then I set down in a chair by the window and
  356. tried to think of something cheerful, but it warn't no use.  I felt
  357. so lonesome I most wished I was dead.  The stars were shining, and the
  358. leaves rustled in the woods ever so mournful; and I heard an owl, away
  359. off, who-whooing about somebody that was dead, and a whippowill and a
  360. dog crying about somebody that was going to die; and the wind was trying
  361. to whisper something to me, and I couldn't make out what it was, and so
  362. it made the cold shivers run over me. Then away out in the woods I heard
  363. that kind of a sound that a ghost makes when it wants to tell about
  364. something that's on its mind and can't make itself understood, and so
  365. can't rest easy in its grave, and has to go about that way every night
  366. grieving.  I got so down-hearted and scared I did wish I had some
  367. company.  Pretty soon a spider went crawling up my shoulder, and I
  368. flipped it off and it lit in the candle; and before I could budge it
  369. was all shriveled up.  I didn't need anybody to tell me that that was
  370. an awful bad sign and would fetch me some bad luck, so I was scared
  371. and most shook the clothes off of me. I got up and turned around in my
  372. tracks three times and crossed my breast every time; and then I tied
  373. up a little lock of my hair with a thread to keep witches away.  But
  374. I hadn't no confidence.  You do that when you've lost a horseshoe that
  375. you've found, instead of nailing it up over the door, but I hadn't ever
  376. heard anybody say it was any way to keep off bad luck when you'd killed
  377. a spider.
  378. I set down again, a-shaking all over, and got out my pipe for a smoke;
  379. for the house was all as still as death now, and so the widow wouldn't
  380. know. Well, after a long time I heard the clock away off in the town
  381. go boom--boom--boom--twelve licks; and all still again--stiller than
  382. ever. Pretty soon I heard a twig snap down in the dark amongst the
  383. trees--something was a stirring.  I set still and listened.  Directly I
  384. could just barely hear a “me-yow! me-yow!” down there.  That was good!
  385.  Says I, “me-yow! me-yow!” as soft as I could, and then I put out the
  386. light and scrambled out of the window on to the shed.  Then I slipped
  387. down to the ground and crawled in among the trees, and, sure enough,
  388. there was Tom Sawyer waiting for me.
  389. CHAPTER II.
  390. WE went tiptoeing along a path amongst the trees back towards the end of
  391. the widow's garden, stooping down so as the branches wouldn't scrape our
  392. heads. When we was passing by the kitchen I fell over a root and made
  393. a noise.  We scrouched down and laid still.  Miss Watson's big nigger,
  394. named Jim, was setting in the kitchen door; we could see him pretty
  395. clear, because there was a light behind him.  He got up and stretched
  396. his neck out about a minute, listening.  Then he says:
  397. “Who dah?”
  398. He listened some more; then he come tiptoeing down and stood right
  399. between us; we could a touched him, nearly.  Well, likely it was
  400. minutes and minutes that there warn't a sound, and we all there so close
  401. together.  There was a place on my ankle that got to itching, but I
  402. dasn't scratch it; and then my ear begun to itch; and next my back,
  403. right between my shoulders.  Seemed like I'd die if I couldn't scratch.
  404.  Well, I've noticed that thing plenty times since.  If you are with
  405. the quality, or at a funeral, or trying to go to sleep when you ain't
  406. sleepy--if you are anywheres where it won't do for you to scratch, why
  407. you will itch all over in upwards of a thousand places. Pretty soon Jim
  408. says:
  409. “Say, who is you?  Whar is you?  Dog my cats ef I didn' hear sumf'n.
  410. Well, I know what I's gwyne to do:  I's gwyne to set down here and
  411. listen tell I hears it agin.”
  412. So he set down on the ground betwixt me and Tom.  He leaned his back up
  413. against a tree, and stretched his legs out till one of them most touched
  414. one of mine.  My nose begun to itch.  It itched till the tears come into
  415. my eyes.  But I dasn't scratch.  Then it begun to itch on the inside.
  416. Next I got to itching underneath.  I didn't know how I was going to set
  417. still. This miserableness went on as much as six or seven minutes; but
  418. it seemed a sight longer than that.  I was itching in eleven different
  419. places now.  I reckoned I couldn't stand it more'n a minute longer,
  420. but I set my teeth hard and got ready to try.  Just then Jim begun
  421. to breathe heavy; next he begun to snore--and then I was pretty soon
  422. comfortable again.
  423. Tom he made a sign to me--kind of a little noise with his mouth--and we
  424. went creeping away on our hands and knees.  When we was ten foot off Tom
  425. whispered to me, and wanted to tie Jim to the tree for fun.  But I said
  426. no; he might wake and make a disturbance, and then they'd find out I
  427. warn't in. Then Tom said he hadn't got candles enough, and he would slip
  428. in the kitchen and get some more.  I didn't want him to try.  I said Jim
  429. might wake up and come.  But Tom wanted to resk it; so we slid in there
  430. and got three candles, and Tom laid five cents on the table for pay.
  431. Then we got out, and I was in a sweat to get away; but nothing would do
  432. Tom but he must crawl to where Jim was, on his hands and knees, and play
  433. something on him.  I waited, and it seemed a good while, everything was
  434. so still and lonesome.
  435. As soon as Tom was back we cut along the path, around the garden fence,
  436. and by and by fetched up on the steep top of the hill the other side of
  437. the house.  Tom said he slipped Jim's hat off of his head and hung it
  438. on a limb right over him, and Jim stirred a little, but he didn't wake.
  439. Afterwards Jim said the witches be witched him and put him in a trance,
  440. and rode him all over the State, and then set him under the trees again,
  441. and hung his hat on a limb to show who done it.  And next time Jim told
  442. it he said they rode him down to New Orleans; and, after that, every
  443. time he told it he spread it more and more, till by and by he said they
  444. rode him all over the world, and tired him most to death, and his back
  445. was all over saddle-boils.  Jim was monstrous proud about it, and he
  446. got so he wouldn't hardly notice the other niggers.  Niggers would come
  447. miles to hear Jim tell about it, and he was more looked up to than any
  448. nigger in that country.  Strange niggers would stand with their mouths
  449. open and look him all over, same as if he was a wonder.  Niggers is
  450. always talking about witches in the dark by the kitchen fire; but
  451. whenever one was talking and letting on to know all about such things,
  452. Jim would happen in and say, “Hm!  What you know 'bout witches?” and
  453. that nigger was corked up and had to take a back seat.  Jim always kept
  454. that five-center piece round his neck with a string, and said it was a
  455. charm the devil give to him with his own hands, and told him he could
  456. cure anybody with it and fetch witches whenever he wanted to just by
  457. saying something to it; but he never told what it was he said to it.
  458.  Niggers would come from all around there and give Jim anything they
  459. had, just for a sight of that five-center piece; but they wouldn't touch
  460. it, because the devil had had his hands on it.  Jim was most ruined for
  461. a servant, because he got stuck up on account of having seen the devil
  462. and been rode by witches.
  463. Well, when Tom and me got to the edge of the hilltop we looked away down
  464. into the village and could see three or four lights twinkling, where
  465. there was sick folks, maybe; and the stars over us was sparkling ever
  466. so fine; and down by the village was the river, a whole mile broad, and
  467. awful still and grand.  We went down the hill and found Jo Harper and
  468. Ben Rogers, and two or three more of the boys, hid in the old tanyard.
  469.  So we unhitched a skiff and pulled down the river two mile and a half,
  470. to the big scar on the hillside, and went ashore.
  471. We went to a clump of bushes, and Tom made everybody swear to keep the
  472. secret, and then showed them a hole in the hill, right in the thickest
  473. part of the bushes.  Then we lit the candles, and crawled in on our
  474. hands and knees.  We went about two hundred yards, and then the cave
  475. opened up. Tom poked about amongst the passages, and pretty soon ducked
  476. under a wall where you wouldn't a noticed that there was a hole.  We
  477. went along a narrow place and got into a kind of room, all damp and
  478. sweaty and cold, and there we stopped.  Tom says:
  479. “Now, we'll start this band of robbers and call it Tom Sawyer's Gang.
  480. Everybody that wants to join has got to take an oath, and write his name
  481. in blood.”
  482. Everybody was willing.  So Tom got out a sheet of paper that he had
  483. wrote the oath on, and read it.  It swore every boy to stick to the
  484. band, and never tell any of the secrets; and if anybody done anything to
  485. any boy in the band, whichever boy was ordered to kill that person and
  486. his family must do it, and he mustn't eat and he mustn't sleep till he
  487. had killed them and hacked a cross in their breasts, which was the sign
  488. of the band. And nobody that didn't belong to the band could use that
  489. mark, and if he did he must be sued; and if he done it again he must be
  490. killed.  And if anybody that belonged to the band told the secrets, he
  491. must have his throat cut, and then have his carcass burnt up and the
  492. ashes scattered all around, and his name blotted off of the list with
  493. blood and never mentioned again by the gang, but have a curse put on it
  494. and be forgot forever.
  495. Everybody said it was a real beautiful oath, and asked Tom if he got
  496. it out of his own head.  He said, some of it, but the rest was out of
  497. pirate-books and robber-books, and every gang that was high-toned had
  498. it.
  499. Some thought it would be good to kill the _families_ of boys that told
  500. the secrets.  Tom said it was a good idea, so he took a pencil and wrote
  501. it in. Then Ben Rogers says:
  502. “Here's Huck Finn, he hain't got no family; what you going to do 'bout
  503. him?”
  504. “Well, hain't he got a father?” says Tom Sawyer.
  505. “Yes, he's got a father, but you can't never find him these days.  He
  506. used to lay drunk with the hogs in the tanyard, but he hain't been seen
  507. in these parts for a year or more.”
  508. They talked it over, and they was going to rule me out, because they
  509. said every boy must have a family or somebody to kill, or else it
  510. wouldn't be fair and square for the others.  Well, nobody could think of
  511. anything to do--everybody was stumped, and set still.  I was most ready
  512. to cry; but all at once I thought of a way, and so I offered them Miss
  513. Watson--they could kill her.  Everybody said:
  514. “Oh, she'll do.  That's all right.  Huck can come in.”
  515. Then they all stuck a pin in their fingers to get blood to sign with,
  516. and I made my mark on the paper.
  517. “Now,” says Ben Rogers, “what's the line of business of this Gang?”
  518. “Nothing only robbery and murder,” Tom said.
  519. “But who are we going to rob?--houses, or cattle, or--”
  520. “Stuff! stealing cattle and such things ain't robbery; it's burglary,”
  521. says Tom Sawyer. “We ain't burglars.  That ain't no sort of style.  We
  522. are highwaymen.  We stop stages and carriages on the road, with masks
  523. on, and kill the people and take their watches and money.”
  524. “Must we always kill the people?”
  525. “Oh, certainly.  It's best.  Some authorities think different, but
  526. mostly it's considered best to kill them--except some that you bring to
  527. the cave here, and keep them till they're ransomed.”
  528. “Ransomed?  What's that?”
  529. “I don't know.  But that's what they do.  I've seen it in books; and so
  530. of course that's what we've got to do.”
  531. “But how can we do it if we don't know what it is?”
  532. “Why, blame it all, we've _got_ to do it.  Don't I tell you it's in the
  533. books?  Do you want to go to doing different from what's in the books,
  534. and get things all muddled up?”
  535. “Oh, that's all very fine to _say_, Tom Sawyer, but how in the nation
  536. are these fellows going to be ransomed if we don't know how to do it
  537. to them?--that's the thing I want to get at.  Now, what do you reckon it
  538. is?”
  539. “Well, I don't know.  But per'aps if we keep them till they're ransomed,
  540. it means that we keep them till they're dead.”
  541. “Now, that's something _like_.  That'll answer.  Why couldn't you said
  542. that before?  We'll keep them till they're ransomed to death; and a
  543. bothersome lot they'll be, too--eating up everything, and always trying
  544. to get loose.”
  545. “How you talk, Ben Rogers.  How can they get loose when there's a guard
  546. over them, ready to shoot them down if they move a peg?”
  547. “A guard!  Well, that _is_ good.  So somebody's got to set up all night
  548. and never get any sleep, just so as to watch them.  I think that's
  549. foolishness. Why can't a body take a club and ransom them as soon as
  550. they get here?”
  551. “Because it ain't in the books so--that's why.  Now, Ben Rogers, do you
  552. want to do things regular, or don't you?--that's the idea.  Don't you
  553. reckon that the people that made the books knows what's the correct
  554. thing to do?  Do you reckon _you_ can learn 'em anything?  Not by a good
  555. deal. No, sir, we'll just go on and ransom them in the regular way.”
  556. “All right.  I don't mind; but I say it's a fool way, anyhow.  Say, do
  557. we kill the women, too?”
  558. “Well, Ben Rogers, if I was as ignorant as you I wouldn't let on.  Kill
  559. the women?  No; nobody ever saw anything in the books like that.  You
  560. fetch them to the cave, and you're always as polite as pie to them;
  561. and by and by they fall in love with you, and never want to go home any
  562. more.”
  563. “Well, if that's the way I'm agreed, but I don't take no stock in it.
  564. Mighty soon we'll have the cave so cluttered up with women, and fellows
  565. waiting to be ransomed, that there won't be no place for the robbers.
  566. But go ahead, I ain't got nothing to say.”
  567. Little Tommy Barnes was asleep now, and when they waked him up he was
  568. scared, and cried, and said he wanted to go home to his ma, and didn't
  569. want to be a robber any more.
  570. So they all made fun of him, and called him cry-baby, and that made him
  571. mad, and he said he would go straight and tell all the secrets.  But
  572. Tom give him five cents to keep quiet, and said we would all go home and
  573. meet next week, and rob somebody and kill some people.
  574. Ben Rogers said he couldn't get out much, only Sundays, and so he wanted
  575. to begin next Sunday; but all the boys said it would be wicked to do it
  576. on Sunday, and that settled the thing.  They agreed to get together and
  577. fix a day as soon as they could, and then we elected Tom Sawyer first
  578. captain and Jo Harper second captain of the Gang, and so started home.
  579. I clumb up the shed and crept into my window just before day was
  580. breaking. My new clothes was all greased up and clayey, and I was
  581. dog-tired.
  582. CHAPTER III.
  583. WELL, I got a good going-over in the morning from old Miss Watson on
  584. account of my clothes; but the widow she didn't scold, but only cleaned
  585. off the grease and clay, and looked so sorry that I thought I would
  586. behave awhile if I could.  Then Miss Watson she took me in the closet
  587. and prayed, but nothing come of it.  She told me to pray every day, and
  588. whatever I asked for I would get it.  But it warn't so.  I tried it.
  589. Once I got a fish-line, but no hooks.  It warn't any good to me without
  590. hooks.  I tried for the hooks three or four times, but somehow I
  591. couldn't make it work.  By and by, one day, I asked Miss Watson to
  592. try for me, but she said I was a fool.  She never told me why, and I
  593. couldn't make it out no way.
  594. I set down one time back in the woods, and had a long think about it.
  595.  I says to myself, if a body can get anything they pray for, why don't
  596. Deacon Winn get back the money he lost on pork?  Why can't the widow get
  597. back her silver snuffbox that was stole?  Why can't Miss Watson fat up?
  598. No, says I to my self, there ain't nothing in it.  I went and told the
  599. widow about it, and she said the thing a body could get by praying for
  600. it was “spiritual gifts.”  This was too many for me, but she told me
  601. what she meant--I must help other people, and do everything I could for
  602. other people, and look out for them all the time, and never think about
  603. myself. This was including Miss Watson, as I took it.  I went out in the
  604. woods and turned it over in my mind a long time, but I couldn't see no
  605. advantage about it--except for the other people; so at last I reckoned
  606. I wouldn't worry about it any more, but just let it go.  Sometimes the
  607. widow would take me one side and talk about Providence in a way to make
  608. a body's mouth water; but maybe next day Miss Watson would take hold
  609. and knock it all down again.  I judged I could see that there was two
  610. Providences, and a poor chap would stand considerable show with the
  611. widow's Providence, but if Miss Watson's got him there warn't no help
  612. for him any more.  I thought it all out, and reckoned I would belong
  613. to the widow's if he wanted me, though I couldn't make out how he was
  614. a-going to be any better off then than what he was before, seeing I was
  615. so ignorant, and so kind of low-down and ornery.
  616. Pap he hadn't been seen for more than a year, and that was comfortable
  617. for me; I didn't want to see him no more.  He used to always whale me
  618. when he was sober and could get his hands on me; though I used to take
  619. to the woods most of the time when he was around.  Well, about this time
  620. he was found in the river drownded, about twelve mile above town, so
  621. people said.  They judged it was him, anyway; said this drownded man was
  622. just his size, and was ragged, and had uncommon long hair, which was all
  623. like pap; but they couldn't make nothing out of the face, because it had
  624. been in the water so long it warn't much like a face at all.  They said
  625. he was floating on his back in the water.  They took him and buried him
  626. on the bank.  But I warn't comfortable long, because I happened to think
  627. of something.  I knowed mighty well that a drownded man don't float on
  628. his back, but on his face.  So I knowed, then, that this warn't pap, but
  629. a woman dressed up in a man's clothes.  So I was uncomfortable again.
  630.  I judged the old man would turn up again by and by, though I wished he
  631. wouldn't.
  632. We played robber now and then about a month, and then I resigned.  All
  633. the boys did.  We hadn't robbed nobody, hadn't killed any people, but
  634. only just pretended.  We used to hop out of the woods and go charging
  635. down on hog-drivers and women in carts taking garden stuff to market,
  636. but we never hived any of them.  Tom Sawyer called the hogs “ingots,”
  637. and he called the turnips and stuff “julery,” and we would go to the
  638. cave and powwow over what we had done, and how many people we had killed
  639. and marked.  But I couldn't see no profit in it.  One time Tom sent a
  640. boy to run about town with a blazing stick, which he called a slogan
  641. (which was the sign for the Gang to get together), and then he said he
  642. had got secret news by his spies that next day a whole parcel of Spanish
  643. merchants and rich A-rabs was going to camp in Cave Hollow with two
  644. hundred elephants, and six hundred camels, and over a thousand “sumter”
  645. mules, all loaded down with di'monds, and they didn't have only a guard
  646. of four hundred soldiers, and so we would lay in ambuscade, as he called
  647. it, and kill the lot and scoop the things.  He said we must slick up
  648. our swords and guns, and get ready.  He never could go after even a
  649. turnip-cart but he must have the swords and guns all scoured up for it,
  650. though they was only lath and broomsticks, and you might scour at them
  651. till you rotted, and then they warn't worth a mouthful of ashes more
  652. than what they was before.  I didn't believe we could lick such a crowd
  653. of Spaniards and A-rabs, but I wanted to see the camels and elephants,
  654. so I was on hand next day, Saturday, in the ambuscade; and when we got
  655. the word we rushed out of the woods and down the hill.  But there warn't
  656. no Spaniards and A-rabs, and there warn't no camels nor no elephants.
  657.  It warn't anything but a Sunday-school picnic, and only a primer-class
  658. at that.  We busted it up, and chased the children up the hollow; but we
  659. never got anything but some doughnuts and jam, though Ben Rogers got
  660. a rag doll, and Jo Harper got a hymn-book and a tract; and then the
  661. teacher charged in, and made us drop everything and cut.
  662.  I didn't see no di'monds, and I told Tom Sawyer so.  He said there was
  663. loads of them there, anyway; and he said there was A-rabs there, too,
  664. and elephants and things.  I said, why couldn't we see them, then?  He
  665. said if I warn't so ignorant, but had read a book called Don Quixote, I
  666. would know without asking.  He said it was all done by enchantment.  He
  667. said there was hundreds of soldiers there, and elephants and treasure,
  668. and so on, but we had enemies which he called magicians; and they had
  669. turned the whole thing into an infant Sunday-school, just out of spite.
  670.  I said, all right; then the thing for us to do was to go for the
  671. magicians.  Tom Sawyer said I was a numskull.
  672. “Why,” said he, “a magician could call up a lot of genies, and they
  673. would hash you up like nothing before you could say Jack Robinson.  They
  674. are as tall as a tree and as big around as a church.”
  675. “Well,” I says, “s'pose we got some genies to help _us_--can't we lick
  676. the other crowd then?”
  677. “How you going to get them?”
  678. “I don't know.  How do _they_ get them?”
  679. “Why, they rub an old tin lamp or an iron ring, and then the genies
  680. come tearing in, with the thunder and lightning a-ripping around and the
  681. smoke a-rolling, and everything they're told to do they up and do it.
  682.  They don't think nothing of pulling a shot-tower up by the roots, and
  683. belting a Sunday-school superintendent over the head with it--or any
  684. other man.”
  685. “Who makes them tear around so?”
  686. “Why, whoever rubs the lamp or the ring.  They belong to whoever rubs
  687. the lamp or the ring, and they've got to do whatever he says.  If he
  688. tells them to build a palace forty miles long out of di'monds, and fill
  689. it full of chewing-gum, or whatever you want, and fetch an emperor's
  690. daughter from China for you to marry, they've got to do it--and they've
  691. got to do it before sun-up next morning, too.  And more:  they've got
  692. to waltz that palace around over the country wherever you want it, you
  693. understand.”
  694. “Well,” says I, “I think they are a pack of flat-heads for not keeping
  695. the palace themselves 'stead of fooling them away like that.  And what's
  696. more--if I was one of them I would see a man in Jericho before I would
  697. drop my business and come to him for the rubbing of an old tin lamp.”
  698. “How you talk, Huck Finn.  Why, you'd _have_ to come when he rubbed it,
  699. whether you wanted to or not.”
  700. “What! and I as high as a tree and as big as a church?  All right, then;
  701. I _would_ come; but I lay I'd make that man climb the highest tree there
  702. was in the country.”
  703. “Shucks, it ain't no use to talk to you, Huck Finn.  You don't seem to
  704. know anything, somehow--perfect saphead.”
  705. I thought all this over for two or three days, and then I reckoned I
  706. would see if there was anything in it.  I got an old tin lamp and an
  707. iron ring, and went out in the woods and rubbed and rubbed till I sweat
  708. like an Injun, calculating to build a palace and sell it; but it warn't
  709. no use, none of the genies come.  So then I judged that all that stuff
  710. was only just one of Tom Sawyer's lies.  I reckoned he believed in the
  711. A-rabs and the elephants, but as for me I think different.  It had all
  712. the marks of a Sunday-school.
  713. CHAPTER IV.
  714. WELL, three or four months run along, and it was well into the winter
  715. now. I had been to school most all the time and could spell and read and
  716. write just a little, and could say the multiplication table up to six
  717. times seven is thirty-five, and I don't reckon I could ever get any
  718. further than that if I was to live forever.  I don't take no stock in
  719. mathematics, anyway.
  720. At first I hated the school, but by and by I got so I could stand it.
  721. Whenever I got uncommon tired I played hookey, and the hiding I got next
  722. day done me good and cheered me up.  So the longer I went to school the
  723. easier it got to be.  I was getting sort of used to the widow's ways,
  724. too, and they warn't so raspy on me.  Living in a house and sleeping in
  725. a bed pulled on me pretty tight mostly, but before the cold weather I
  726. used to slide out and sleep in the woods sometimes, and so that was a
  727. rest to me.  I liked the old ways best, but I was getting so I liked the
  728. new ones, too, a little bit. The widow said I was coming along slow but
  729. sure, and doing very satisfactory.  She said she warn't ashamed of me.
  730. One morning I happened to turn over the salt-cellar at breakfast.
  731.  I reached for some of it as quick as I could to throw over my left
  732. shoulder and keep off the bad luck, but Miss Watson was in ahead of me,
  733. and crossed me off. She says, “Take your hands away, Huckleberry; what
  734. a mess you are always making!”  The widow put in a good word for me, but
  735. that warn't going to keep off the bad luck, I knowed that well enough.
  736.  I started out, after breakfast, feeling worried and shaky, and
  737. wondering where it was going to fall on me, and what it was going to be.
  738.  There is ways to keep off some kinds of bad luck, but this wasn't one
  739. of them kind; so I never tried to do anything, but just poked along
  740. low-spirited and on the watch-out.
  741. I went down to the front garden and clumb over the stile where you go
  742. through the high board fence.  There was an inch of new snow on the
  743. ground, and I seen somebody's tracks.  They had come up from the quarry
  744. and stood around the stile a while, and then went on around the garden
  745. fence.  It was funny they hadn't come in, after standing around so.  I
  746. couldn't make it out.  It was very curious, somehow.  I was going to
  747. follow around, but I stooped down to look at the tracks first.  I didn't
  748. notice anything at first, but next I did.  There was a cross in the left
  749. boot-heel made with big nails, to keep off the devil.
  750. I was up in a second and shinning down the hill.  I looked over my
  751. shoulder every now and then, but I didn't see nobody.  I was at Judge
  752. Thatcher's as quick as I could get there.  He said:
  753. “Why, my boy, you are all out of breath.  Did you come for your
  754. interest?”
  755. “No, sir,” I says; “is there some for me?”
  756. “Oh, yes, a half-yearly is in last night--over a hundred and fifty
  757. dollars.  Quite a fortune for you.  You had better let me invest it
  758. along with your six thousand, because if you take it you'll spend it.”
  759. “No, sir,” I says, “I don't want to spend it.  I don't want it at
  760. all--nor the six thousand, nuther.  I want you to take it; I want to give
  761. it to you--the six thousand and all.”
  762. He looked surprised.  He couldn't seem to make it out.  He says:
  763. “Why, what can you mean, my boy?”
  764. I says, “Don't you ask me no questions about it, please.  You'll take
  765. it--won't you?”
  766. He says:
  767. “Well, I'm puzzled.  Is something the matter?”
  768. “Please take it,” says I, “and don't ask me nothing--then I won't have to
  769. tell no lies.”
  770. He studied a while, and then he says:
  771. “Oho-o!  I think I see.  You want to _sell_ all your property to me--not
  772. give it.  That's the correct idea.”
  773. Then he wrote something on a paper and read it over, and says:
  774. “There; you see it says 'for a consideration.'  That means I have bought
  775. it of you and paid you for it.  Here's a dollar for you.  Now you sign
  776. it.”
  777. So I signed it, and left.
  778. Miss Watson's nigger, Jim, had a hair-ball as big as your fist, which
  779. had been took out of the fourth stomach of an ox, and he used to do
  780. magic with it.  He said there was a spirit inside of it, and it knowed
  781. everything.  So I went to him that night and told him pap was here
  782. again, for I found his tracks in the snow.  What I wanted to know was,
  783. what he was going to do, and was he going to stay?  Jim got out his
  784. hair-ball and said something over it, and then he held it up and dropped
  785. it on the floor.  It fell pretty solid, and only rolled about an inch.
  786.  Jim tried it again, and then another time, and it acted just the same.
  787.  Jim got down on his knees, and put his ear against it and listened.
  788.  But it warn't no use; he said it wouldn't talk. He said sometimes it
  789. wouldn't talk without money.  I told him I had an old slick counterfeit
  790. quarter that warn't no good because the brass showed through the silver
  791. a little, and it wouldn't pass nohow, even if the brass didn't show,
  792. because it was so slick it felt greasy, and so that would tell on it
  793. every time.  (I reckoned I wouldn't say nothing about the dollar I got
  794. from the judge.) I said it was pretty bad money, but maybe the hair-ball
  795. would take it, because maybe it wouldn't know the difference.  Jim smelt
  796. it and bit it and rubbed it, and said he would manage so the hair-ball
  797. would think it was good.  He said he would split open a raw Irish potato
  798. and stick the quarter in between and keep it there all night, and next
  799. morning you couldn't see no brass, and it wouldn't feel greasy no more,
  800. and so anybody in town would take it in a minute, let alone a hair-ball.
  801.  Well, I knowed a potato would do that before, but I had forgot it.
  802. Jim put the quarter under the hair-ball, and got down and listened
  803. again. This time he said the hair-ball was all right.  He said it
  804. would tell my whole fortune if I wanted it to.  I says, go on.  So the
  805. hair-ball talked to Jim, and Jim told it to me.  He says:
  806. “Yo' ole father doan' know yit what he's a-gwyne to do.  Sometimes he
  807. spec he'll go 'way, en den agin he spec he'll stay.  De bes' way is to
  808. res' easy en let de ole man take his own way.  Dey's two angels hoverin'
  809. roun' 'bout him.  One uv 'em is white en shiny, en t'other one is black.
  810. De white one gits him to go right a little while, den de black one sail
  811. in en bust it all up.  A body can't tell yit which one gwyne to fetch
  812. him at de las'.  But you is all right.  You gwyne to have considable
  813. trouble in yo' life, en considable joy.  Sometimes you gwyne to git
  814. hurt, en sometimes you gwyne to git sick; but every time you's gwyne
  815. to git well agin.  Dey's two gals flyin' 'bout you in yo' life.  One
  816. uv 'em's light en t'other one is dark. One is rich en t'other is po'.
  817.  You's gwyne to marry de po' one fust en de rich one by en by.  You
  818. wants to keep 'way fum de water as much as you kin, en don't run no
  819. resk, 'kase it's down in de bills dat you's gwyne to git hung.”
  820. When I lit my candle and went up to my room that night there sat pap his
  821. own self!
  822. CHAPTER V.
  823. I had shut the door to.  Then I turned around and there he was.  I used
  824. to be scared of him all the time, he tanned me so much.  I reckoned I
  825. was scared now, too; but in a minute I see I was mistaken--that is, after
  826. the first jolt, as you may say, when my breath sort of hitched, he being
  827. so unexpected; but right away after I see I warn't scared of him worth
  828. bothring about.
  829. He was most fifty, and he looked it.  His hair was long and tangled and
  830. greasy, and hung down, and you could see his eyes shining through
  831. like he was behind vines.  It was all black, no gray; so was his long,
  832. mixed-up whiskers.  There warn't no color in his face, where his face
  833. showed; it was white; not like another man's white, but a white to make
  834. a body sick, a white to make a body's flesh crawl--a tree-toad white, a
  835. fish-belly white.  As for his clothes--just rags, that was all.  He had
  836. one ankle resting on t'other knee; the boot on that foot was busted, and
  837. two of his toes stuck through, and he worked them now and then.  His hat
  838. was laying on the floor--an old black slouch with the top caved in, like
  839. a lid.
  840. I stood a-looking at him; he set there a-looking at me, with his chair
  841. tilted back a little.  I set the candle down.  I noticed the window was
  842. up; so he had clumb in by the shed.  He kept a-looking me all over.  By
  843. and by he says:
  844. “Starchy clothes--very.  You think you're a good deal of a big-bug,
  845. _don't_ you?”
  846. “Maybe I am, maybe I ain't,” I says.
  847. “Don't you give me none o' your lip,” says he. “You've put on
  848. considerable many frills since I been away.  I'll take you down a peg
  849. before I get done with you.  You're educated, too, they say--can read and
  850. write.  You think you're better'n your father, now, don't you, because
  851. he can't?  _I'll_ take it out of you.  Who told you you might meddle
  852. with such hifalut'n foolishness, hey?--who told you you could?”
  853. “The widow.  She told me.”
  854. “The widow, hey?--and who told the widow she could put in her shovel
  855. about a thing that ain't none of her business?”
  856. “Nobody never told her.”
  857. “Well, I'll learn her how to meddle.  And looky here--you drop that
  858. school, you hear?  I'll learn people to bring up a boy to put on airs
  859. over his own father and let on to be better'n what _he_ is.  You lemme
  860. catch you fooling around that school again, you hear?  Your mother
  861. couldn't read, and she couldn't write, nuther, before she died.  None
  862. of the family couldn't before _they_ died.  I can't; and here you're
  863. a-swelling yourself up like this.  I ain't the man to stand it--you hear?
  864. Say, lemme hear you read.”
  865. I took up a book and begun something about General Washington and the
  866. wars. When I'd read about a half a minute, he fetched the book a whack
  867. with his hand and knocked it across the house.  He says:
  868. “It's so.  You can do it.  I had my doubts when you told me.  Now looky
  869. here; you stop that putting on frills.  I won't have it.  I'll lay for
  870. you, my smarty; and if I catch you about that school I'll tan you good.
  871. First you know you'll get religion, too.  I never see such a son.”
  872. He took up a little blue and yaller picture of some cows and a boy, and
  873. says:
  874. “What's this?”
  875. “It's something they give me for learning my lessons good.”
  876. He tore it up, and says:
  877. “I'll give you something better--I'll give you a cowhide.”
  878. He set there a-mumbling and a-growling a minute, and then he says:
  879. “_Ain't_ you a sweet-scented dandy, though?  A bed; and bedclothes; and
  880. a look'n'-glass; and a piece of carpet on the floor--and your own father
  881. got to sleep with the hogs in the tanyard.  I never see such a son.  I
  882. bet I'll take some o' these frills out o' you before I'm done with you.
  883. Why, there ain't no end to your airs--they say you're rich.  Hey?--how's
  884. that?”
  885. “They lie--that's how.”
  886. “Looky here--mind how you talk to me; I'm a-standing about all I can
  887. stand now--so don't gimme no sass.  I've been in town two days, and I
  888. hain't heard nothing but about you bein' rich.  I heard about it
  889. away down the river, too.  That's why I come.  You git me that money
  890. to-morrow--I want it.”
  891. “I hain't got no money.”
  892. “It's a lie.  Judge Thatcher's got it.  You git it.  I want it.”
  893. “I hain't got no money, I tell you.  You ask Judge Thatcher; he'll tell
  894. you the same.”
  895. “All right.  I'll ask him; and I'll make him pungle, too, or I'll know
  896. the reason why.  Say, how much you got in your pocket?  I want it.”
  897. “I hain't got only a dollar, and I want that to--”
  898. “It don't make no difference what you want it for--you just shell it
  899. out.”
  900. He took it and bit it to see if it was good, and then he said he was
  901. going down town to get some whisky; said he hadn't had a drink all day.
  902. When he had got out on the shed he put his head in again, and cussed
  903. me for putting on frills and trying to be better than him; and when I
  904. reckoned he was gone he come back and put his head in again, and told me
  905. to mind about that school, because he was going to lay for me and lick
  906. me if I didn't drop that.
  907. Next day he was drunk, and he went to Judge Thatcher's and bullyragged
  908. him, and tried to make him give up the money; but he couldn't, and then
  909. he swore he'd make the law force him.
  910. The judge and the widow went to law to get the court to take me away
  911. from him and let one of them be my guardian; but it was a new judge that
  912. had just come, and he didn't know the old man; so he said courts mustn't
  913. interfere and separate families if they could help it; said he'd druther
  914. not take a child away from its father.  So Judge Thatcher and the widow
  915. had to quit on the business.
  916. That pleased the old man till he couldn't rest.  He said he'd cowhide
  917. me till I was black and blue if I didn't raise some money for him.  I
  918. borrowed three dollars from Judge Thatcher, and pap took it and got
  919. drunk, and went a-blowing around and cussing and whooping and carrying
  920. on; and he kept it up all over town, with a tin pan, till most midnight;
  921. then they jailed him, and next day they had him before court, and jailed
  922. him again for a week.  But he said _he_ was satisfied; said he was boss
  923. of his son, and he'd make it warm for _him_.
  924. When he got out the new judge said he was a-going to make a man of him.
  925. So he took him to his own house, and dressed him up clean and nice, and
  926. had him to breakfast and dinner and supper with the family, and was just
  927. old pie to him, so to speak.  And after supper he talked to him about
  928. temperance and such things till the old man cried, and said he'd been
  929. a fool, and fooled away his life; but now he was a-going to turn over
  930. a new leaf and be a man nobody wouldn't be ashamed of, and he hoped the
  931. judge would help him and not look down on him.  The judge said he could
  932. hug him for them words; so he cried, and his wife she cried again; pap
  933. said he'd been a man that had always been misunderstood before, and the
  934. judge said he believed it.  The old man said that what a man wanted
  935. that was down was sympathy, and the judge said it was so; so they cried
  936. again.  And when it was bedtime the old man rose up and held out his
  937. hand, and says:
  938. “Look at it, gentlemen and ladies all; take a-hold of it; shake it.
  939. There's a hand that was the hand of a hog; but it ain't so no more; it's
  940. the hand of a man that's started in on a new life, and'll die before
  941. he'll go back.  You mark them words--don't forget I said them.  It's a
  942. clean hand now; shake it--don't be afeard.”
  943. So they shook it, one after the other, all around, and cried.  The
  944. judge's wife she kissed it.  Then the old man he signed a pledge--made
  945. his mark. The judge said it was the holiest time on record, or something
  946. like that. Then they tucked the old man into a beautiful room, which was
  947. the spare room, and in the night some time he got powerful thirsty and
  948. clumb out on to the porch-roof and slid down a stanchion and traded his
  949. new coat for a jug of forty-rod, and clumb back again and had a good old
  950. time; and towards daylight he crawled out again, drunk as a fiddler, and
  951. rolled off the porch and broke his left arm in two places, and was most
  952. froze to death when somebody found him after sun-up.  And when they come
  953. to look at that spare room they had to take soundings before they could
  954. navigate it.
  955. The judge he felt kind of sore.  He said he reckoned a body could reform
  956. the old man with a shotgun, maybe, but he didn't know no other way.
  957. CHAPTER VI.
  958. WELL, pretty soon the old man was up and around again, and then he went
  959. for Judge Thatcher in the courts to make him give up that money, and he
  960. went for me, too, for not stopping school.  He catched me a couple of
  961. times and thrashed me, but I went to school just the same, and dodged
  962. him or outrun him most of the time.  I didn't want to go to school much
  963. before, but I reckoned I'd go now to spite pap.  That law trial was a
  964. slow business--appeared like they warn't ever going to get started on it;
  965. so every now and then I'd borrow two or three dollars off of the judge
  966. for him, to keep from getting a cowhiding.  Every time he got money he
  967. got drunk; and every time he got drunk he raised Cain around town; and
  968. every time he raised Cain he got jailed.  He was just suited--this kind
  969. of thing was right in his line.
  970. He got to hanging around the widow's too much and so she told him at
  971. last that if he didn't quit using around there she would make trouble
  972. for him. Well, _wasn't_ he mad?  He said he would show who was Huck
  973. Finn's boss.  So he watched out for me one day in the spring, and
  974. catched me, and took me up the river about three mile in a skiff, and
  975. crossed over to the Illinois shore where it was woody and there warn't
  976. no houses but an old log hut in a place where the timber was so thick
  977. you couldn't find it if you didn't know where it was.
  978. He kept me with him all the time, and I never got a chance to run off.
  979. We lived in that old cabin, and he always locked the door and put the
  980. key under his head nights.  He had a gun which he had stole, I reckon,
  981. and we fished and hunted, and that was what we lived on.  Every little
  982. while he locked me in and went down to the store, three miles, to the
  983. ferry, and traded fish and game for whisky, and fetched it home and got
  984. drunk and had a good time, and licked me.  The widow she found out where
  985. I was by and by, and she sent a man over to try to get hold of me; but
  986. pap drove him off with the gun, and it warn't long after that till I was
  987. used to being where I was, and liked it--all but the cowhide part.
  988. It was kind of lazy and jolly, laying off comfortable all day, smoking
  989. and fishing, and no books nor study.  Two months or more run along, and
  990. my clothes got to be all rags and dirt, and I didn't see how I'd ever
  991. got to like it so well at the widow's, where you had to wash, and eat on
  992. a plate, and comb up, and go to bed and get up regular, and be forever
  993. bothering over a book, and have old Miss Watson pecking at you all the
  994. time.  I didn't want to go back no more.  I had stopped cussing, because
  995. the widow didn't like it; but now I took to it again because pap hadn't
  996. no objections.  It was pretty good times up in the woods there, take it
  997. all around.
  998. But by and by pap got too handy with his hick'ry, and I couldn't stand
  999. it. I was all over welts.  He got to going away so much, too, and
  1000. locking me in.  Once he locked me in and was gone three days.  It was
  1001. dreadful lonesome.  I judged he had got drownded, and I wasn't ever
  1002. going to get out any more.  I was scared.  I made up my mind I would fix
  1003. up some way to leave there.  I had tried to get out of that cabin many
  1004. a time, but I couldn't find no way.  There warn't a window to it big
  1005. enough for a dog to get through.  I couldn't get up the chimbly; it
  1006. was too narrow.  The door was thick, solid oak slabs.  Pap was pretty
  1007. careful not to leave a knife or anything in the cabin when he was away;
  1008. I reckon I had hunted the place over as much as a hundred times; well, I
  1009. was most all the time at it, because it was about the only way to put in
  1010. the time.  But this time I found something at last; I found an old rusty
  1011. wood-saw without any handle; it was laid in between a rafter and the
  1012. clapboards of the roof. I greased it up and went to work.  There was an
  1013. old horse-blanket nailed against the logs at the far end of the cabin
  1014. behind the table, to keep the wind from blowing through the chinks and
  1015. putting the candle out.  I got under the table and raised the blanket,
  1016. and went to work to saw a section of the big bottom log out--big enough
  1017. to let me through.  Well, it was a good long job, but I was getting
  1018. towards the end of it when I heard pap's gun in the woods.  I got rid of
  1019. the signs of my work, and dropped the blanket and hid my saw, and pretty
  1020. soon pap come in.
  1021. Pap warn't in a good humor--so he was his natural self.  He said he was
  1022. down town, and everything was going wrong.  His lawyer said he reckoned
  1023. he would win his lawsuit and get the money if they ever got started on
  1024. the trial; but then there was ways to put it off a long time, and Judge
  1025. Thatcher knowed how to do it. And he said people allowed there'd be
  1026. another trial to get me away from him and give me to the widow for my
  1027. guardian, and they guessed it would win this time.  This shook me up
  1028. considerable, because I didn't want to go back to the widow's any more
  1029. and be so cramped up and sivilized, as they called it.  Then the old man
  1030. got to cussing, and cussed everything and everybody he could think of,
  1031. and then cussed them all over again to make sure he hadn't skipped any,
  1032. and after that he polished off with a kind of a general cuss all round,
  1033. including a considerable parcel of people which he didn't know the names
  1034. of, and so called them what's-his-name when he got to them, and went
  1035. right along with his cussing.
  1036. He said he would like to see the widow get me.  He said he would watch
  1037. out, and if they tried to come any such game on him he knowed of a place
  1038. six or seven mile off to stow me in, where they might hunt till they
  1039. dropped and they couldn't find me.  That made me pretty uneasy again,
  1040. but only for a minute; I reckoned I wouldn't stay on hand till he got
  1041. that chance.
  1042. The old man made me go to the skiff and fetch the things he had
  1043. got. There was a fifty-pound sack of corn meal, and a side of bacon,
  1044. ammunition, and a four-gallon jug of whisky, and an old book and two
  1045. newspapers for wadding, besides some tow.  I toted up a load, and went
  1046. back and set down on the bow of the skiff to rest.  I thought it all
  1047. over, and I reckoned I would walk off with the gun and some lines, and
  1048. take to the woods when I run away.  I guessed I wouldn't stay in one
  1049. place, but just tramp right across the country, mostly night times, and
  1050. hunt and fish to keep alive, and so get so far away that the old man nor
  1051. the widow couldn't ever find me any more.  I judged I would saw out and
  1052. leave that night if pap got drunk enough, and I reckoned he would.  I
  1053. got so full of it I didn't notice how long I was staying till the old
  1054. man hollered and asked me whether I was asleep or drownded.
  1055. I got the things all up to the cabin, and then it was about dark.  While
  1056. I was cooking supper the old man took a swig or two and got sort of
  1057. warmed up, and went to ripping again.  He had been drunk over in town,
  1058. and laid in the gutter all night, and he was a sight to look at.  A body
  1059. would a thought he was Adam--he was just all mud.  Whenever his liquor
  1060. begun to work he most always went for the govment, this time he says:
  1061. “Call this a govment! why, just look at it and see what it's like.
  1062. Here's the law a-standing ready to take a man's son away from him--a
  1063. man's own son, which he has had all the trouble and all the anxiety
  1064. and all the expense of raising.  Yes, just as that man has got that
  1065. son raised at last, and ready to go to work and begin to do suthin' for
  1066. _him_ and give him a rest, the law up and goes for him.  And they call
  1067. _that_ govment!  That ain't all, nuther.  The law backs that old Judge
  1068. Thatcher up and helps him to keep me out o' my property.  Here's what
  1069. the law does:  The law takes a man worth six thousand dollars and
  1070. up'ards, and jams him into an old trap of a cabin like this, and lets
  1071. him go round in clothes that ain't fitten for a hog. They call that
  1072. govment!  A man can't get his rights in a govment like this. Sometimes
  1073. I've a mighty notion to just leave the country for good and all. Yes,
  1074. and I _told_ 'em so; I told old Thatcher so to his face.  Lots of 'em
  1075. heard me, and can tell what I said.  Says I, for two cents I'd leave the
  1076. blamed country and never come a-near it agin.  Them's the very words.  I
  1077. says look at my hat--if you call it a hat--but the lid raises up and the
  1078. rest of it goes down till it's below my chin, and then it ain't rightly
  1079. a hat at all, but more like my head was shoved up through a jint o'
  1080. stove-pipe.  Look at it, says I--such a hat for me to wear--one of the
  1081. wealthiest men in this town if I could git my rights.
  1082. “Oh, yes, this is a wonderful govment, wonderful.  Why, looky here.
  1083. There was a free nigger there from Ohio--a mulatter, most as white as
  1084. a white man.  He had the whitest shirt on you ever see, too, and the
  1085. shiniest hat; and there ain't a man in that town that's got as fine
  1086. clothes as what he had; and he had a gold watch and chain, and a
  1087. silver-headed cane--the awfulest old gray-headed nabob in the State.  And
  1088. what do you think?  They said he was a p'fessor in a college, and could
  1089. talk all kinds of languages, and knowed everything.  And that ain't the
  1090. wust. They said he could _vote_ when he was at home.  Well, that let me
  1091. out. Thinks I, what is the country a-coming to?  It was 'lection day,
  1092. and I was just about to go and vote myself if I warn't too drunk to get
  1093. there; but when they told me there was a State in this country where
  1094. they'd let that nigger vote, I drawed out.  I says I'll never vote agin.
  1095.  Them's the very words I said; they all heard me; and the country may
  1096. rot for all me--I'll never vote agin as long as I live.  And to see the
  1097. cool way of that nigger--why, he wouldn't a give me the road if I hadn't
  1098. shoved him out o' the way.  I says to the people, why ain't this nigger
  1099. put up at auction and sold?--that's what I want to know.  And what do you
  1100. reckon they said? Why, they said he couldn't be sold till he'd been in
  1101. the State six months, and he hadn't been there that long yet.  There,
  1102. now--that's a specimen.  They call that a govment that can't sell a free
  1103. nigger till he's been in the State six months.  Here's a govment that
  1104. calls itself a govment, and lets on to be a govment, and thinks it is a
  1105. govment, and yet's got to set stock-still for six whole months before
  1106. it can take a hold of a prowling, thieving, infernal, white-shirted free
  1107. nigger, and--”
  1108. Pap was agoing on so he never noticed where his old limber legs was
  1109. taking him to, so he went head over heels over the tub of salt pork and
  1110. barked both shins, and the rest of his speech was all the hottest kind
  1111. of language--mostly hove at the nigger and the govment, though he give
  1112. the tub some, too, all along, here and there.  He hopped around the
  1113. cabin considerable, first on one leg and then on the other, holding
  1114. first one shin and then the other one, and at last he let out with his
  1115. left foot all of a sudden and fetched the tub a rattling kick.  But it
  1116. warn't good judgment, because that was the boot that had a couple of his
  1117. toes leaking out of the front end of it; so now he raised a howl that
  1118. fairly made a body's hair raise, and down he went in the dirt, and
  1119. rolled there, and held his toes; and the cussing he done then laid over
  1120. anything he had ever done previous.  He said so his own self afterwards.
  1121.  He had heard old Sowberry Hagan in his best days, and he said it laid
  1122. over him, too; but I reckon that was sort of piling it on, maybe.
  1123. After supper pap took the jug, and said he had enough whisky there
  1124. for two drunks and one delirium tremens.  That was always his word.  I
  1125. judged he would be blind drunk in about an hour, and then I would steal
  1126. the key, or saw myself out, one or t'other.  He drank and drank, and
  1127. tumbled down on his blankets by and by; but luck didn't run my way.
  1128.  He didn't go sound asleep, but was uneasy.  He groaned and moaned and
  1129. thrashed around this way and that for a long time.  At last I got so
  1130. sleepy I couldn't keep my eyes open all I could do, and so before I
  1131. knowed what I was about I was sound asleep, and the candle burning.
  1132. I don't know how long I was asleep, but all of a sudden there was an
  1133. awful scream and I was up.  There was pap looking wild, and skipping
  1134. around every which way and yelling about snakes.  He said they was
  1135. crawling up his legs; and then he would give a jump and scream, and say
  1136. one had bit him on the cheek--but I couldn't see no snakes.  He started
  1137. and run round and round the cabin, hollering “Take him off! take him
  1138. off! he's biting me on the neck!”  I never see a man look so wild in the
  1139. eyes. Pretty soon he was all fagged out, and fell down panting; then he
  1140. rolled over and over wonderful fast, kicking things every which way,
  1141. and striking and grabbing at the air with his hands, and screaming and
  1142. saying there was devils a-hold of him.  He wore out by and by, and laid
  1143. still a while, moaning.  Then he laid stiller, and didn't make a sound.
  1144.  I could hear the owls and the wolves away off in the woods, and it
  1145. seemed terrible still.  He was laying over by the corner. By and by he
  1146. raised up part way and listened, with his head to one side.  He says,
  1147. very low:
  1148. “Tramp--tramp--tramp; that's the dead; tramp--tramp--tramp; they're coming
  1149. after me; but I won't go.  Oh, they're here! don't touch me--don't! hands
  1150. off--they're cold; let go.  Oh, let a poor devil alone!”
  1151. Then he went down on all fours and crawled off, begging them to let him
  1152. alone, and he rolled himself up in his blanket and wallowed in under the
  1153. old pine table, still a-begging; and then he went to crying.  I could
  1154. hear him through the blanket.
  1155. By and by he rolled out and jumped up on his feet looking wild, and he
  1156. see me and went for me.  He chased me round and round the place with a
  1157. clasp-knife, calling me the Angel of Death, and saying he would kill me,
  1158. and then I couldn't come for him no more.  I begged, and told him I
  1159. was only Huck; but he laughed _such_ a screechy laugh, and roared and
  1160. cussed, and kept on chasing me up.  Once when I turned short and
  1161. dodged under his arm he made a grab and got me by the jacket between my
  1162. shoulders, and I thought I was gone; but I slid out of the jacket quick
  1163. as lightning, and saved myself. Pretty soon he was all tired out, and
  1164. dropped down with his back against the door, and said he would rest a
  1165. minute and then kill me. He put his knife under him, and said he would
  1166. sleep and get strong, and then he would see who was who.
  1167. So he dozed off pretty soon.  By and by I got the old split-bottom chair
  1168. and clumb up as easy as I could, not to make any noise, and got down the
  1169. gun.  I slipped the ramrod down it to make sure it was loaded, then I
  1170. laid it across the turnip barrel, pointing towards pap, and set down
  1171. behind it to wait for him to stir.  And how slow and still the time did
  1172. drag along.
  1173. CHAPTER VII.
  1174. “GIT up!  What you 'bout?”
  1175. I opened my eyes and looked around, trying to make out where I was.  It
  1176. was after sun-up, and I had been sound asleep.  Pap was standing over me
  1177. looking sour and sick, too.  He says:
  1178. “What you doin' with this gun?”
  1179. I judged he didn't know nothing about what he had been doing, so I says:
  1180. “Somebody tried to get in, so I was laying for him.”
  1181. “Why didn't you roust me out?”
  1182. “Well, I tried to, but I couldn't; I couldn't budge you.”
  1183. “Well, all right.  Don't stand there palavering all day, but out with
  1184. you and see if there's a fish on the lines for breakfast.  I'll be along
  1185. in a minute.”
  1186. He unlocked the door, and I cleared out up the river-bank.  I noticed
  1187. some pieces of limbs and such things floating down, and a sprinkling of
  1188. bark; so I knowed the river had begun to rise.  I reckoned I would have
  1189. great times now if I was over at the town.  The June rise used to be
  1190. always luck for me; because as soon as that rise begins here comes
  1191. cordwood floating down, and pieces of log rafts--sometimes a dozen logs
  1192. together; so all you have to do is to catch them and sell them to the
  1193. wood-yards and the sawmill.
  1194. I went along up the bank with one eye out for pap and t'other one out
  1195. for what the rise might fetch along.  Well, all at once here comes a
  1196. canoe; just a beauty, too, about thirteen or fourteen foot long, riding
  1197. high like a duck.  I shot head-first off of the bank like a frog,
  1198. clothes and all on, and struck out for the canoe.  I just expected
  1199. there'd be somebody laying down in it, because people often done that
  1200. to fool folks, and when a chap had pulled a skiff out most to it they'd
  1201. raise up and laugh at him.  But it warn't so this time.  It was a
  1202. drift-canoe sure enough, and I clumb in and paddled her ashore.  Thinks
  1203. I, the old man will be glad when he sees this--she's worth ten dollars.
  1204.  But when I got to shore pap wasn't in sight yet, and as I was running
  1205. her into a little creek like a gully, all hung over with vines and
  1206. willows, I struck another idea:  I judged I'd hide her good, and then,
  1207. 'stead of taking to the woods when I run off, I'd go down the river
  1208. about fifty mile and camp in one place for good, and not have such a
  1209. rough time tramping on foot.
  1210. It was pretty close to the shanty, and I thought I heard the old man
  1211. coming all the time; but I got her hid; and then I out and looked around
  1212. a bunch of willows, and there was the old man down the path a piece just
  1213. drawing a bead on a bird with his gun.  So he hadn't seen anything.
  1214. When he got along I was hard at it taking up a “trot” line.  He abused
  1215. me a little for being so slow; but I told him I fell in the river, and
  1216. that was what made me so long.  I knowed he would see I was wet, and
  1217. then he would be asking questions.  We got five catfish off the lines
  1218. and went home.
  1219. While we laid off after breakfast to sleep up, both of us being about
  1220. wore out, I got to thinking that if I could fix up some way to keep pap
  1221. and the widow from trying to follow me, it would be a certainer thing
  1222. than trusting to luck to get far enough off before they missed me; you
  1223. see, all kinds of things might happen.  Well, I didn't see no way for a
  1224. while, but by and by pap raised up a minute to drink another barrel of
  1225. water, and he says:
  1226. “Another time a man comes a-prowling round here you roust me out, you
  1227. hear? That man warn't here for no good.  I'd a shot him.  Next time you
  1228. roust me out, you hear?”
  1229. Then he dropped down and went to sleep again; but what he had been
  1230. saying give me the very idea I wanted.  I says to myself, I can fix it
  1231. now so nobody won't think of following me.
  1232. About twelve o'clock we turned out and went along up the bank.  The
  1233. river was coming up pretty fast, and lots of driftwood going by on the
  1234. rise. By and by along comes part of a log raft--nine logs fast together.
  1235.  We went out with the skiff and towed it ashore.  Then we had dinner.
  1236. Anybody but pap would a waited and seen the day through, so as to catch
  1237. more stuff; but that warn't pap's style.  Nine logs was enough for one
  1238. time; he must shove right over to town and sell.  So he locked me in and
  1239. took the skiff, and started off towing the raft about half-past three.
  1240.  I judged he wouldn't come back that night.  I waited till I reckoned he
  1241. had got a good start; then I out with my saw, and went to work on that
  1242. log again.  Before he was t'other side of the river I was out of the
  1243. hole; him and his raft was just a speck on the water away off yonder.
  1244. I took the sack of corn meal and took it to where the canoe was hid, and
  1245. shoved the vines and branches apart and put it in; then I done the same
  1246. with the side of bacon; then the whisky-jug.  I took all the coffee and
  1247. sugar there was, and all the ammunition; I took the wadding; I took the
  1248. bucket and gourd; I took a dipper and a tin cup, and my old saw and two
  1249. blankets, and the skillet and the coffee-pot.  I took fish-lines and
  1250. matches and other things--everything that was worth a cent.  I cleaned
  1251. out the place.  I wanted an axe, but there wasn't any, only the one out
  1252. at the woodpile, and I knowed why I was going to leave that.  I fetched
  1253. out the gun, and now I was done.
  1254. I had wore the ground a good deal crawling out of the hole and dragging
  1255. out so many things.  So I fixed that as good as I could from the outside
  1256. by scattering dust on the place, which covered up the smoothness and the
  1257. sawdust.  Then I fixed the piece of log back into its place, and put two
  1258. rocks under it and one against it to hold it there, for it was bent up
  1259. at that place and didn't quite touch ground.  If you stood four or five
  1260. foot away and didn't know it was sawed, you wouldn't never notice
  1261. it; and besides, this was the back of the cabin, and it warn't likely
  1262. anybody would go fooling around there.
  1263. It was all grass clear to the canoe, so I hadn't left a track.  I
  1264. followed around to see.  I stood on the bank and looked out over the
  1265. river.  All safe.  So I took the gun and went up a piece into the woods,
  1266. and was hunting around for some birds when I see a wild pig; hogs soon
  1267. went wild in them bottoms after they had got away from the prairie
  1268. farms. I shot this fellow and took him into camp.
  1269. I took the axe and smashed in the door.  I beat it and hacked it
  1270. considerable a-doing it.  I fetched the pig in, and took him back nearly
  1271. to the table and hacked into his throat with the axe, and laid him down
  1272. on the ground to bleed; I say ground because it was ground--hard packed,
  1273. and no boards.  Well, next I took an old sack and put a lot of big rocks
  1274. in it--all I could drag--and I started it from the pig, and dragged it to
  1275. the door and through the woods down to the river and dumped it in, and
  1276. down it sunk, out of sight.  You could easy see that something had been
  1277. dragged over the ground.  I did wish Tom Sawyer was there; I knowed he
  1278. would take an interest in this kind of business, and throw in the fancy
  1279. touches.  Nobody could spread himself like Tom Sawyer in such a thing as
  1280. that.
  1281. Well, last I pulled out some of my hair, and blooded the axe good, and
  1282. stuck it on the back side, and slung the axe in the corner.  Then I
  1283. took up the pig and held him to my breast with my jacket (so he couldn't
  1284. drip) till I got a good piece below the house and then dumped him into
  1285. the river.  Now I thought of something else.  So I went and got the bag
  1286. of meal and my old saw out of the canoe, and fetched them to the house.
  1287.  I took the bag to where it used to stand, and ripped a hole in the
  1288. bottom of it with the saw, for there warn't no knives and forks on the
  1289. place--pap done everything with his clasp-knife about the cooking.  Then
  1290. I carried the sack about a hundred yards across the grass and through
  1291. the willows east of the house, to a shallow lake that was five mile wide
  1292. and full of rushes--and ducks too, you might say, in the season.  There
  1293. was a slough or a creek leading out of it on the other side that went
  1294. miles away, I don't know where, but it didn't go to the river.  The meal
  1295. sifted out and made a little track all the way to the lake.  I dropped
  1296. pap's whetstone there too, so as to look like it had been done by
  1297. accident. Then I tied up the rip in the meal sack with a string, so it
  1298. wouldn't leak no more, and took it and my saw to the canoe again.
  1299. It was about dark now; so I dropped the canoe down the river under some
  1300. willows that hung over the bank, and waited for the moon to rise.  I
  1301. made fast to a willow; then I took a bite to eat, and by and by laid
  1302. down in the canoe to smoke a pipe and lay out a plan.  I says to myself,
  1303. they'll follow the track of that sackful of rocks to the shore and then
  1304. drag the river for me.  And they'll follow that meal track to the lake
  1305. and go browsing down the creek that leads out of it to find the robbers
  1306. that killed me and took the things.  They won't ever hunt the river for
  1307. anything but my dead carcass. They'll soon get tired of that, and won't
  1308. bother no more about me.  All right; I can stop anywhere I want to.
  1309. Jackson's Island is good enough for me; I know that island pretty well,
  1310. and nobody ever comes there.  And then I can paddle over to town nights,
  1311. and slink around and pick up things I want. Jackson's Island's the
  1312. place.
  1313. I was pretty tired, and the first thing I knowed I was asleep.  When
  1314. I woke up I didn't know where I was for a minute.  I set up and looked
  1315. around, a little scared.  Then I remembered.  The river looked miles and
  1316. miles across.  The moon was so bright I could a counted the drift logs
  1317. that went a-slipping along, black and still, hundreds of yards out from
  1318. shore. Everything was dead quiet, and it looked late, and _smelt_ late.
  1319. You know what I mean--I don't know the words to put it in.
  1320. I took a good gap and a stretch, and was just going to unhitch and start
  1321. when I heard a sound away over the water.  I listened.  Pretty soon I
  1322. made it out.  It was that dull kind of a regular sound that comes from
  1323. oars working in rowlocks when it's a still night.  I peeped out through
  1324. the willow branches, and there it was--a skiff, away across the water.
  1325.  I couldn't tell how many was in it.  It kept a-coming, and when it was
  1326. abreast of me I see there warn't but one man in it.  Think's I, maybe
  1327. it's pap, though I warn't expecting him.  He dropped below me with the
  1328. current, and by and by he came a-swinging up shore in the easy water,
  1329. and he went by so close I could a reached out the gun and touched him.
  1330.  Well, it _was_ pap, sure enough--and sober, too, by the way he laid his
  1331. oars.
  1332. I didn't lose no time.  The next minute I was a-spinning down stream
  1333. soft but quick in the shade of the bank.  I made two mile and a half,
  1334. and then struck out a quarter of a mile or more towards the middle of
  1335. the river, because pretty soon I would be passing the ferry landing, and
  1336. people might see me and hail me.  I got out amongst the driftwood, and
  1337. then laid down in the bottom of the canoe and let her float.
  1338.  I laid there, and had a good rest and a smoke out of my pipe, looking
  1339. away into the sky; not a cloud in it.  The sky looks ever so deep when
  1340. you lay down on your back in the moonshine; I never knowed it before.
  1341.  And how far a body can hear on the water such nights!  I heard people
  1342. talking at the ferry landing. I heard what they said, too--every word
  1343. of it.  One man said it was getting towards the long days and the short
  1344. nights now.  T'other one said _this_ warn't one of the short ones, he
  1345. reckoned--and then they laughed, and he said it over again, and they
  1346. laughed again; then they waked up another fellow and told him, and
  1347. laughed, but he didn't laugh; he ripped out something brisk, and said
  1348. let him alone.  The first fellow said he 'lowed to tell it to his
  1349. old woman--she would think it was pretty good; but he said that warn't
  1350. nothing to some things he had said in his time. I heard one man say it
  1351. was nearly three o'clock, and he hoped daylight wouldn't wait more than
  1352. about a week longer.  After that the talk got further and further away,
  1353. and I couldn't make out the words any more; but I could hear the mumble,
  1354. and now and then a laugh, too, but it seemed a long ways off.
  1355. I was away below the ferry now.  I rose up, and there was Jackson's
  1356. Island, about two mile and a half down stream, heavy timbered and
  1357. standing up out of the middle of the river, big and dark and solid, like
  1358. a steamboat without any lights.  There warn't any signs of the bar at
  1359. the head--it was all under water now.
  1360. It didn't take me long to get there.  I shot past the head at a ripping
  1361. rate, the current was so swift, and then I got into the dead water and
  1362. landed on the side towards the Illinois shore.  I run the canoe into
  1363. a deep dent in the bank that I knowed about; I had to part the willow
  1364. branches to get in; and when I made fast nobody could a seen the canoe
  1365. from the outside.
  1366. I went up and set down on a log at the head of the island, and looked
  1367. out on the big river and the black driftwood and away over to the town,
  1368. three mile away, where there was three or four lights twinkling.  A
  1369. monstrous big lumber-raft was about a mile up stream, coming along down,
  1370. with a lantern in the middle of it.  I watched it come creeping down,
  1371. and when it was most abreast of where I stood I heard a man say, “Stern
  1372. oars, there! heave her head to stabboard!”  I heard that just as plain
  1373. as if the man was by my side.
  1374. There was a little gray in the sky now; so I stepped into the woods, and
  1375. laid down for a nap before breakfast.
  1376. CHAPTER VIII.
  1377. THE sun was up so high when I waked that I judged it was after eight
  1378. o'clock.  I laid there in the grass and the cool shade thinking about
  1379. things, and feeling rested and ruther comfortable and satisfied.  I
  1380. could see the sun out at one or two holes, but mostly it was big trees
  1381. all about, and gloomy in there amongst them.  There was freckled places
  1382. on the ground where the light sifted down through the leaves, and the
  1383. freckled places swapped about a little, showing there was a little
  1384. breeze up there.  A couple of squirrels set on a limb and jabbered at me
  1385. very friendly.
  1386. I was powerful lazy and comfortable--didn't want to get up and cook
  1387. breakfast.  Well, I was dozing off again when I thinks I hears a deep
  1388. sound of “boom!” away up the river.  I rouses up, and rests on my elbow
  1389. and listens; pretty soon I hears it again.  I hopped up, and went and
  1390. looked out at a hole in the leaves, and I see a bunch of smoke laying
  1391. on the water a long ways up--about abreast the ferry.  And there was the
  1392. ferryboat full of people floating along down.  I knowed what was the
  1393. matter now. “Boom!” I see the white smoke squirt out of the ferryboat's
  1394. side.  You see, they was firing cannon over the water, trying to make my
  1395. carcass come to the top.
  1396. I was pretty hungry, but it warn't going to do for me to start a fire,
  1397. because they might see the smoke.  So I set there and watched the
  1398. cannon-smoke and listened to the boom.  The river was a mile wide there,
  1399. and it always looks pretty on a summer morning--so I was having a good
  1400. enough time seeing them hunt for my remainders if I only had a bite to
  1401. eat. Well, then I happened to think how they always put quicksilver in
  1402. loaves of bread and float them off, because they always go right to the
  1403. drownded carcass and stop there.  So, says I, I'll keep a lookout, and
  1404. if any of them's floating around after me I'll give them a show.  I
  1405. changed to the Illinois edge of the island to see what luck I could
  1406. have, and I warn't disappointed.  A big double loaf come along, and I
  1407. most got it with a long stick, but my foot slipped and she floated out
  1408. further.  Of course I was where the current set in the closest to the
  1409. shore--I knowed enough for that.  But by and by along comes another one,
  1410. and this time I won.  I took out the plug and shook out the little dab
  1411. of quicksilver, and set my teeth in.  It was “baker's bread”--what the
  1412. quality eat; none of your low-down corn-pone.
  1413. I got a good place amongst the leaves, and set there on a log, munching
  1414. the bread and watching the ferry-boat, and very well satisfied.  And
  1415. then something struck me.  I says, now I reckon the widow or the parson
  1416. or somebody prayed that this bread would find me, and here it has gone
  1417. and done it.  So there ain't no doubt but there is something in that
  1418. thing--that is, there's something in it when a body like the widow or the
  1419. parson prays, but it don't work for me, and I reckon it don't work for
  1420. only just the right kind.
  1421. I lit a pipe and had a good long smoke, and went on watching.  The
  1422. ferryboat was floating with the current, and I allowed I'd have a chance
  1423. to see who was aboard when she come along, because she would come in
  1424. close, where the bread did.  When she'd got pretty well along down
  1425. towards me, I put out my pipe and went to where I fished out the bread,
  1426. and laid down behind a log on the bank in a little open place.  Where
  1427. the log forked I could peep through.
  1428. By and by she come along, and she drifted in so close that they could
  1429. a run out a plank and walked ashore.  Most everybody was on the boat.
  1430.  Pap, and Judge Thatcher, and Bessie Thatcher, and Jo Harper, and Tom
  1431. Sawyer, and his old Aunt Polly, and Sid and Mary, and plenty more.
  1432.  Everybody was talking about the murder, but the captain broke in and
  1433. says:
  1434. “Look sharp, now; the current sets in the closest here, and maybe he's
  1435. washed ashore and got tangled amongst the brush at the water's edge.  I
  1436. hope so, anyway.”
  1437. I didn't hope so.  They all crowded up and leaned over the rails, nearly
  1438. in my face, and kept still, watching with all their might.  I could see
  1439. them first-rate, but they couldn't see me.  Then the captain sung out:
  1440. “Stand away!” and the cannon let off such a blast right before me that
  1441. it made me deef with the noise and pretty near blind with the smoke, and
  1442. I judged I was gone.  If they'd a had some bullets in, I reckon they'd
  1443. a got the corpse they was after.  Well, I see I warn't hurt, thanks to
  1444. goodness. The boat floated on and went out of sight around the shoulder
  1445. of the island.  I could hear the booming now and then, further and
  1446. further off, and by and by, after an hour, I didn't hear it no more.
  1447.  The island was three mile long.  I judged they had got to the foot, and
  1448. was giving it up.  But they didn't yet a while.  They turned around
  1449. the foot of the island and started up the channel on the Missouri side,
  1450. under steam, and booming once in a while as they went.  I crossed over
  1451. to that side and watched them. When they got abreast the head of the
  1452. island they quit shooting and dropped over to the Missouri shore and
  1453. went home to the town.
  1454. I knowed I was all right now.  Nobody else would come a-hunting after
  1455. me. I got my traps out of the canoe and made me a nice camp in the thick
  1456. woods.  I made a kind of a tent out of my blankets to put my things
  1457. under so the rain couldn't get at them.  I catched a catfish and haggled
  1458. him open with my saw, and towards sundown I started my camp fire and had
  1459. supper.  Then I set out a line to catch some fish for breakfast.
  1460. When it was dark I set by my camp fire smoking, and feeling pretty well
  1461. satisfied; but by and by it got sort of lonesome, and so I went and set
  1462. on the bank and listened to the current swashing along, and counted the
  1463. stars and drift logs and rafts that come down, and then went to bed;
  1464. there ain't no better way to put in time when you are lonesome; you
  1465. can't stay so, you soon get over it.
  1466. And so for three days and nights.  No difference--just the same thing.
  1467. But the next day I went exploring around down through the island.  I was
  1468. boss of it; it all belonged to me, so to say, and I wanted to know
  1469. all about it; but mainly I wanted to put in the time.  I found plenty
  1470. strawberries, ripe and prime; and green summer grapes, and green
  1471. razberries; and the green blackberries was just beginning to show.  They
  1472. would all come handy by and by, I judged.
  1473. Well, I went fooling along in the deep woods till I judged I warn't
  1474. far from the foot of the island.  I had my gun along, but I hadn't shot
  1475. nothing; it was for protection; thought I would kill some game nigh
  1476. home. About this time I mighty near stepped on a good-sized snake,
  1477. and it went sliding off through the grass and flowers, and I after
  1478. it, trying to get a shot at it. I clipped along, and all of a sudden I
  1479. bounded right on to the ashes of a camp fire that was still smoking.
  1480. My heart jumped up amongst my lungs.  I never waited for to look
  1481. further, but uncocked my gun and went sneaking back on my tiptoes as
  1482. fast as ever I could.  Every now and then I stopped a second amongst the
  1483. thick leaves and listened, but my breath come so hard I couldn't hear
  1484. nothing else.  I slunk along another piece further, then listened again;
  1485. and so on, and so on.  If I see a stump, I took it for a man; if I trod
  1486. on a stick and broke it, it made me feel like a person had cut one of my
  1487. breaths in two and I only got half, and the short half, too.
  1488. When I got to camp I warn't feeling very brash, there warn't much sand
  1489. in my craw; but I says, this ain't no time to be fooling around.  So I
  1490. got all my traps into my canoe again so as to have them out of sight,
  1491. and I put out the fire and scattered the ashes around to look like an
  1492. old last year's camp, and then clumb a tree.
  1493. I reckon I was up in the tree two hours; but I didn't see nothing,
  1494. I didn't hear nothing--I only _thought_ I heard and seen as much as a
  1495. thousand things.  Well, I couldn't stay up there forever; so at last I
  1496. got down, but I kept in the thick woods and on the lookout all the
  1497. time. All I could get to eat was berries and what was left over from
  1498. breakfast.
  1499. By the time it was night I was pretty hungry.  So when it was good
  1500. and dark I slid out from shore before moonrise and paddled over to the
  1501. Illinois bank--about a quarter of a mile.  I went out in the woods and
  1502. cooked a supper, and I had about made up my mind I would stay there
  1503. all night when I hear a _plunkety-plunk, plunkety-plunk_, and says
  1504. to myself, horses coming; and next I hear people's voices.  I got
  1505. everything into the canoe as quick as I could, and then went creeping
  1506. through the woods to see what I could find out.  I hadn't got far when I
  1507. hear a man say:
  1508. “We better camp here if we can find a good place; the horses is about
  1509. beat out.  Let's look around.”
  1510. I didn't wait, but shoved out and paddled away easy.  I tied up in the
  1511. old place, and reckoned I would sleep in the canoe.
  1512. I didn't sleep much.  I couldn't, somehow, for thinking.  And every time
  1513. I waked up I thought somebody had me by the neck.  So the sleep didn't
  1514. do me no good.  By and by I says to myself, I can't live this way; I'm
  1515. a-going to find out who it is that's here on the island with me; I'll
  1516. find it out or bust.  Well, I felt better right off.
  1517. So I took my paddle and slid out from shore just a step or two, and
  1518. then let the canoe drop along down amongst the shadows.  The moon was
  1519. shining, and outside of the shadows it made it most as light as day.
  1520.  I poked along well on to an hour, everything still as rocks and sound
  1521. asleep. Well, by this time I was most down to the foot of the island.  A
  1522. little ripply, cool breeze begun to blow, and that was as good as saying
  1523. the night was about done.  I give her a turn with the paddle and brung
  1524. her nose to shore; then I got my gun and slipped out and into the edge
  1525. of the woods.  I sat down there on a log, and looked out through the
  1526. leaves.  I see the moon go off watch, and the darkness begin to blanket
  1527. the river. But in a little while I see a pale streak over the treetops,
  1528. and knowed the day was coming.  So I took my gun and slipped off towards
  1529. where I had run across that camp fire, stopping every minute or two
  1530. to listen.  But I hadn't no luck somehow; I couldn't seem to find the
  1531. place.  But by and by, sure enough, I catched a glimpse of fire away
  1532. through the trees.  I went for it, cautious and slow.  By and by I was
  1533. close enough to have a look, and there laid a man on the ground.  It
  1534. most give me the fan-tods. He had a blanket around his head, and his
  1535. head was nearly in the fire.  I set there behind a clump of bushes, in
  1536. about six foot of him, and kept my eyes on him steady.  It was getting
  1537. gray daylight now.  Pretty soon he gapped and stretched himself and hove
  1538. off the blanket, and it was Miss Watson's Jim!  I bet I was glad to see
  1539. him.  I says:
  1540. “Hello, Jim!” and skipped out.
  1541. He bounced up and stared at me wild.  Then he drops down on his knees,
  1542. and puts his hands together and says:
  1543. “Doan' hurt me--don't!  I hain't ever done no harm to a ghos'.  I alwuz
  1544. liked dead people, en done all I could for 'em.  You go en git in de
  1545. river agin, whah you b'longs, en doan' do nuffn to Ole Jim, 'at 'uz
  1546. awluz yo' fren'.”
  1547. Well, I warn't long making him understand I warn't dead.  I was ever so
  1548. glad to see Jim.  I warn't lonesome now.  I told him I warn't afraid of
  1549. _him_ telling the people where I was.  I talked along, but he only set
  1550. there and looked at me; never said nothing.  Then I says:
  1551. “It's good daylight.  Le's get breakfast.  Make up your camp fire good.”
  1552. “What's de use er makin' up de camp fire to cook strawbries en sich
  1553. truck? But you got a gun, hain't you?  Den we kin git sumfn better den
  1554. strawbries.”
  1555. “Strawberries and such truck,” I says. “Is that what you live on?”
  1556. “I couldn' git nuffn else,” he says.
  1557. “Why, how long you been on the island, Jim?”
  1558. “I come heah de night arter you's killed.”
  1559. “What, all that time?”
  1560. “Yes--indeedy.”
  1561. “And ain't you had nothing but that kind of rubbage to eat?”
  1562. “No, sah--nuffn else.”
  1563. “Well, you must be most starved, ain't you?”
  1564. “I reck'n I could eat a hoss.  I think I could. How long you ben on de
  1565. islan'?”
  1566. “Since the night I got killed.”
  1567. “No!  W'y, what has you lived on?  But you got a gun.  Oh, yes, you got
  1568. a gun.  Dat's good.  Now you kill sumfn en I'll make up de fire.”
  1569. So we went over to where the canoe was, and while he built a fire in
  1570. a grassy open place amongst the trees, I fetched meal and bacon and
  1571. coffee, and coffee-pot and frying-pan, and sugar and tin cups, and the
  1572. nigger was set back considerable, because he reckoned it was all done
  1573. with witchcraft. I catched a good big catfish, too, and Jim cleaned him
  1574. with his knife, and fried him.
  1575. When breakfast was ready we lolled on the grass and eat it smoking hot.
  1576. Jim laid it in with all his might, for he was most about starved.  Then
  1577. when we had got pretty well stuffed, we laid off and lazied.  By and by
  1578. Jim says:
  1579. “But looky here, Huck, who wuz it dat 'uz killed in dat shanty ef it
  1580. warn't you?”
  1581. Then I told him the whole thing, and he said it was smart.  He said Tom
  1582. Sawyer couldn't get up no better plan than what I had.  Then I says:
  1583. “How do you come to be here, Jim, and how'd you get here?”
  1584. He looked pretty uneasy, and didn't say nothing for a minute.  Then he
  1585. says:
  1586. “Maybe I better not tell.”
  1587. “Why, Jim?”
  1588. “Well, dey's reasons.  But you wouldn' tell on me ef I uz to tell you,
  1589. would you, Huck?”
  1590. “Blamed if I would, Jim.”
  1591. “Well, I b'lieve you, Huck.  I--_I run off_.”
  1592. “Jim!”
  1593. “But mind, you said you wouldn' tell--you know you said you wouldn' tell,
  1594. Huck.”
  1595. “Well, I did.  I said I wouldn't, and I'll stick to it.  Honest _injun_,
  1596. I will.  People would call me a low-down Abolitionist and despise me for
  1597. keeping mum--but that don't make no difference.  I ain't a-going to tell,
  1598. and I ain't a-going back there, anyways.  So, now, le's know all about
  1599. it.”
  1600. “Well, you see, it 'uz dis way.  Ole missus--dat's Miss Watson--she pecks
  1601. on me all de time, en treats me pooty rough, but she awluz said she
  1602. wouldn' sell me down to Orleans.  But I noticed dey wuz a nigger trader
  1603. roun' de place considable lately, en I begin to git oneasy.  Well, one
  1604. night I creeps to de do' pooty late, en de do' warn't quite shet, en I
  1605. hear old missus tell de widder she gwyne to sell me down to Orleans, but
  1606. she didn' want to, but she could git eight hund'd dollars for me, en it
  1607. 'uz sich a big stack o' money she couldn' resis'.  De widder she try to
  1608. git her to say she wouldn' do it, but I never waited to hear de res'.  I
  1609. lit out mighty quick, I tell you.
  1610. “I tuck out en shin down de hill, en 'spec to steal a skift 'long de
  1611. sho' som'ers 'bove de town, but dey wuz people a-stirring yit, so I hid
  1612. in de ole tumble-down cooper-shop on de bank to wait for everybody to
  1613. go 'way. Well, I wuz dah all night.  Dey wuz somebody roun' all de time.
  1614. 'Long 'bout six in de mawnin' skifts begin to go by, en 'bout eight er
  1615. nine every skift dat went 'long wuz talkin' 'bout how yo' pap come over
  1616. to de town en say you's killed.  Dese las' skifts wuz full o' ladies en
  1617. genlmen a-goin' over for to see de place.  Sometimes dey'd pull up at
  1618. de sho' en take a res' b'fo' dey started acrost, so by de talk I got to
  1619. know all 'bout de killin'.  I 'uz powerful sorry you's killed, Huck, but
  1620. I ain't no mo' now.
  1621. “I laid dah under de shavin's all day.  I 'uz hungry, but I warn't
  1622. afeard; bekase I knowed ole missus en de widder wuz goin' to start to
  1623. de camp-meet'n' right arter breakfas' en be gone all day, en dey knows
  1624. I goes off wid de cattle 'bout daylight, so dey wouldn' 'spec to see me
  1625. roun' de place, en so dey wouldn' miss me tell arter dark in de evenin'.
  1626. De yuther servants wouldn' miss me, kase dey'd shin out en take holiday
  1627. soon as de ole folks 'uz out'n de way.
  1628. “Well, when it come dark I tuck out up de river road, en went 'bout two
  1629. mile er more to whah dey warn't no houses.  I'd made up my mine 'bout
  1630. what I's agwyne to do.  You see, ef I kep' on tryin' to git away afoot,
  1631. de dogs 'ud track me; ef I stole a skift to cross over, dey'd miss dat
  1632. skift, you see, en dey'd know 'bout whah I'd lan' on de yuther side, en
  1633. whah to pick up my track.  So I says, a raff is what I's arter; it doan'
  1634. _make_ no track.
  1635. “I see a light a-comin' roun' de p'int bymeby, so I wade' in en shove'
  1636. a log ahead o' me en swum more'n half way acrost de river, en got in
  1637. 'mongst de drift-wood, en kep' my head down low, en kinder swum agin de
  1638. current tell de raff come along.  Den I swum to de stern uv it en tuck
  1639. a-holt.  It clouded up en 'uz pooty dark for a little while.  So I clumb
  1640. up en laid down on de planks.  De men 'uz all 'way yonder in de middle,
  1641. whah de lantern wuz.  De river wuz a-risin', en dey wuz a good current;
  1642. so I reck'n'd 'at by fo' in de mawnin' I'd be twenty-five mile down de
  1643. river, en den I'd slip in jis b'fo' daylight en swim asho', en take to
  1644. de woods on de Illinois side.
  1645. “But I didn' have no luck.  When we 'uz mos' down to de head er de
  1646. islan' a man begin to come aft wid de lantern, I see it warn't no use
  1647. fer to wait, so I slid overboard en struck out fer de islan'.  Well, I
  1648. had a notion I could lan' mos' anywhers, but I couldn't--bank too bluff.
  1649.  I 'uz mos' to de foot er de islan' b'fo' I found' a good place.  I went
  1650. into de woods en jedged I wouldn' fool wid raffs no mo', long as dey
  1651. move de lantern roun' so.  I had my pipe en a plug er dog-leg, en some
  1652. matches in my cap, en dey warn't wet, so I 'uz all right.”
  1653. “And so you ain't had no meat nor bread to eat all this time?  Why
  1654. didn't you get mud-turkles?”
  1655. “How you gwyne to git 'm?  You can't slip up on um en grab um; en how's
  1656. a body gwyne to hit um wid a rock?  How could a body do it in de night?
  1657.  En I warn't gwyne to show mysef on de bank in de daytime.”
  1658. “Well, that's so.  You've had to keep in the woods all the time, of
  1659. course. Did you hear 'em shooting the cannon?”
  1660. “Oh, yes.  I knowed dey was arter you.  I see um go by heah--watched um
  1661. thoo de bushes.”
  1662. Some young birds come along, flying a yard or two at a time and
  1663. lighting. Jim said it was a sign it was going to rain.  He said it was
  1664. a sign when young chickens flew that way, and so he reckoned it was the
  1665. same way when young birds done it.  I was going to catch some of them,
  1666. but Jim wouldn't let me.  He said it was death.  He said his father laid
  1667. mighty sick once, and some of them catched a bird, and his old granny
  1668. said his father would die, and he did.
  1669. And Jim said you mustn't count the things you are going to cook for
  1670. dinner, because that would bring bad luck.  The same if you shook the
  1671. table-cloth after sundown.  And he said if a man owned a beehive
  1672. and that man died, the bees must be told about it before sun-up next
  1673. morning, or else the bees would all weaken down and quit work and die.
  1674.  Jim said bees wouldn't sting idiots; but I didn't believe that, because
  1675. I had tried them lots of times myself, and they wouldn't sting me.
  1676. I had heard about some of these things before, but not all of them.  Jim
  1677. knowed all kinds of signs.  He said he knowed most everything.  I said
  1678. it looked to me like all the signs was about bad luck, and so I asked
  1679. him if there warn't any good-luck signs.  He says:
  1680. “Mighty few--an' _dey_ ain't no use to a body.  What you want to know
  1681. when good luck's a-comin' for?  Want to keep it off?”  And he said: “Ef
  1682. you's got hairy arms en a hairy breas', it's a sign dat you's agwyne
  1683. to be rich. Well, dey's some use in a sign like dat, 'kase it's so fur
  1684. ahead. You see, maybe you's got to be po' a long time fust, en so you
  1685. might git discourage' en kill yo'sef 'f you didn' know by de sign dat
  1686. you gwyne to be rich bymeby.”
  1687. “Have you got hairy arms and a hairy breast, Jim?”
  1688. “What's de use to ax dat question?  Don't you see I has?”
  1689. “Well, are you rich?”
  1690. “No, but I ben rich wunst, and gwyne to be rich agin.  Wunst I had
  1691. foteen dollars, but I tuck to specalat'n', en got busted out.”
  1692. “What did you speculate in, Jim?”
  1693. “Well, fust I tackled stock.”
  1694. “What kind of stock?”
  1695. “Why, live stock--cattle, you know.  I put ten dollars in a cow.  But
  1696. I ain' gwyne to resk no mo' money in stock.  De cow up 'n' died on my
  1697. han's.”
  1698. “So you lost the ten dollars.”
  1699. “No, I didn't lose it all.  I on'y los' 'bout nine of it.  I sole de
  1700. hide en taller for a dollar en ten cents.”
  1701. “You had five dollars and ten cents left.  Did you speculate any more?”
  1702. “Yes.  You know that one-laigged nigger dat b'longs to old Misto
  1703. Bradish? Well, he sot up a bank, en say anybody dat put in a dollar
  1704. would git fo' dollars mo' at de en' er de year.  Well, all de niggers
  1705. went in, but dey didn't have much.  I wuz de on'y one dat had much.  So
  1706. I stuck out for mo' dan fo' dollars, en I said 'f I didn' git it I'd
  1707. start a bank mysef. Well, o' course dat nigger want' to keep me out er
  1708. de business, bekase he says dey warn't business 'nough for two banks, so
  1709. he say I could put in my five dollars en he pay me thirty-five at de en'
  1710. er de year.
  1711. “So I done it.  Den I reck'n'd I'd inves' de thirty-five dollars right
  1712. off en keep things a-movin'.  Dey wuz a nigger name' Bob, dat had
  1713. ketched a wood-flat, en his marster didn' know it; en I bought it off'n
  1714. him en told him to take de thirty-five dollars when de en' er de
  1715. year come; but somebody stole de wood-flat dat night, en nex day de
  1716. one-laigged nigger say de bank's busted.  So dey didn' none uv us git no
  1717. money.”
  1718. “What did you do with the ten cents, Jim?”
  1719. “Well, I 'uz gwyne to spen' it, but I had a dream, en de dream tole me
  1720. to give it to a nigger name' Balum--Balum's Ass dey call him for short;
  1721. he's one er dem chuckleheads, you know.  But he's lucky, dey say, en I
  1722. see I warn't lucky.  De dream say let Balum inves' de ten cents en he'd
  1723. make a raise for me.  Well, Balum he tuck de money, en when he wuz in
  1724. church he hear de preacher say dat whoever give to de po' len' to de
  1725. Lord, en boun' to git his money back a hund'd times.  So Balum he tuck
  1726. en give de ten cents to de po', en laid low to see what wuz gwyne to
  1727. come of it.”
  1728. “Well, what did come of it, Jim?”
  1729. “Nuffn never come of it.  I couldn' manage to k'leck dat money no way;
  1730. en Balum he couldn'.  I ain' gwyne to len' no mo' money 'dout I see de
  1731. security.  Boun' to git yo' money back a hund'd times, de preacher says!
  1732. Ef I could git de ten _cents_ back, I'd call it squah, en be glad er de
  1733. chanst.”
  1734. “Well, it's all right anyway, Jim, long as you're going to be rich again
  1735. some time or other.”
  1736. “Yes; en I's rich now, come to look at it.  I owns mysef, en I's wuth
  1737. eight hund'd dollars.  I wisht I had de money, I wouldn' want no mo'.”
  1738. CHAPTER IX.
  1739. I wanted to go and look at a place right about the middle of the island
  1740. that I'd found when I was exploring; so we started and soon got to it,
  1741. because the island was only three miles long and a quarter of a mile
  1742. wide.
  1743. This place was a tolerable long, steep hill or ridge about forty foot
  1744. high. We had a rough time getting to the top, the sides was so steep and
  1745. the bushes so thick.  We tramped and clumb around all over it, and by
  1746. and by found a good big cavern in the rock, most up to the top on the
  1747. side towards Illinois.  The cavern was as big as two or three rooms
  1748. bunched together, and Jim could stand up straight in it.  It was cool in
  1749. there. Jim was for putting our traps in there right away, but I said we
  1750. didn't want to be climbing up and down there all the time.
  1751. Jim said if we had the canoe hid in a good place, and had all the traps
  1752. in the cavern, we could rush there if anybody was to come to the island,
  1753. and they would never find us without dogs.  And, besides, he said them
  1754. little birds had said it was going to rain, and did I want the things to
  1755. get wet?
  1756. So we went back and got the canoe, and paddled up abreast the cavern,
  1757. and lugged all the traps up there.  Then we hunted up a place close by
  1758. to hide the canoe in, amongst the thick willows.  We took some fish off
  1759. of the lines and set them again, and begun to get ready for dinner.
  1760. The door of the cavern was big enough to roll a hogshead in, and on one
  1761. side of the door the floor stuck out a little bit, and was flat and a
  1762. good place to build a fire on.  So we built it there and cooked dinner.
  1763. We spread the blankets inside for a carpet, and eat our dinner in there.
  1764. We put all the other things handy at the back of the cavern.  Pretty
  1765. soon it darkened up, and begun to thunder and lighten; so the birds was
  1766. right about it.  Directly it begun to rain, and it rained like all fury,
  1767. too, and I never see the wind blow so.  It was one of these regular
  1768. summer storms.  It would get so dark that it looked all blue-black
  1769. outside, and lovely; and the rain would thrash along by so thick that
  1770. the trees off a little ways looked dim and spider-webby; and here would
  1771. come a blast of wind that would bend the trees down and turn up the
  1772. pale underside of the leaves; and then a perfect ripper of a gust would
  1773. follow along and set the branches to tossing their arms as if they
  1774. was just wild; and next, when it was just about the bluest and
  1775. blackest--_FST_! it was as bright as glory, and you'd have a little
  1776. glimpse of tree-tops a-plunging about away off yonder in the storm,
  1777. hundreds of yards further than you could see before; dark as sin again
  1778. in a second, and now you'd hear the thunder let go with an awful crash,
  1779. and then go rumbling, grumbling, tumbling, down the sky towards the
  1780. under side of the world, like rolling empty barrels down stairs--where
  1781. it's long stairs and they bounce a good deal, you know.
  1782. “Jim, this is nice,” I says. “I wouldn't want to be nowhere else but
  1783. here. Pass me along another hunk of fish and some hot corn-bread.”
  1784. “Well, you wouldn't a ben here 'f it hadn't a ben for Jim.  You'd a ben
  1785. down dah in de woods widout any dinner, en gittn' mos' drownded, too;
  1786. dat you would, honey.  Chickens knows when it's gwyne to rain, en so do
  1787. de birds, chile.”
  1788. The river went on raising and raising for ten or twelve days, till at
  1789. last it was over the banks.  The water was three or four foot deep on
  1790. the island in the low places and on the Illinois bottom.  On that side
  1791. it was a good many miles wide, but on the Missouri side it was the same
  1792. old distance across--a half a mile--because the Missouri shore was just a
  1793. wall of high bluffs.
  1794. Daytimes we paddled all over the island in the canoe, It was mighty cool
  1795. and shady in the deep woods, even if the sun was blazing outside.  We
  1796. went winding in and out amongst the trees, and sometimes the vines hung
  1797. so thick we had to back away and go some other way.  Well, on every old
  1798. broken-down tree you could see rabbits and snakes and such things; and
  1799. when the island had been overflowed a day or two they got so tame, on
  1800. account of being hungry, that you could paddle right up and put your
  1801. hand on them if you wanted to; but not the snakes and turtles--they would
  1802. slide off in the water.  The ridge our cavern was in was full of them.
  1803. We could a had pets enough if we'd wanted them.
  1804. One night we catched a little section of a lumber raft--nice pine planks.
  1805. It was twelve foot wide and about fifteen or sixteen foot long, and
  1806. the top stood above water six or seven inches--a solid, level floor.  We
  1807. could see saw-logs go by in the daylight sometimes, but we let them go;
  1808. we didn't show ourselves in daylight.
  1809. Another night when we was up at the head of the island, just before
  1810. daylight, here comes a frame-house down, on the west side.  She was
  1811. a two-story, and tilted over considerable.  We paddled out and got
  1812. aboard--clumb in at an upstairs window.  But it was too dark to see yet,
  1813. so we made the canoe fast and set in her to wait for daylight.
  1814. The light begun to come before we got to the foot of the island.  Then
  1815. we looked in at the window.  We could make out a bed, and a table, and
  1816. two old chairs, and lots of things around about on the floor, and there
  1817. was clothes hanging against the wall.  There was something laying on the
  1818. floor in the far corner that looked like a man.  So Jim says:
  1819. “Hello, you!”
  1820. But it didn't budge.  So I hollered again, and then Jim says:
  1821. “De man ain't asleep--he's dead.  You hold still--I'll go en see.”
  1822. He went, and bent down and looked, and says:
  1823. “It's a dead man.  Yes, indeedy; naked, too.  He's ben shot in de back.
  1824. I reck'n he's ben dead two er three days.  Come in, Huck, but doan' look
  1825. at his face--it's too gashly.”
  1826. I didn't look at him at all.  Jim throwed some old rags over him, but
  1827. he needn't done it; I didn't want to see him.  There was heaps of old
  1828. greasy cards scattered around over the floor, and old whisky bottles,
  1829. and a couple of masks made out of black cloth; and all over the walls
  1830. was the ignorantest kind of words and pictures made with charcoal.
  1831.  There was two old dirty calico dresses, and a sun-bonnet, and some
  1832. women's underclothes hanging against the wall, and some men's clothing,
  1833. too.  We put the lot into the canoe--it might come good.  There was a
  1834. boy's old speckled straw hat on the floor; I took that, too.  And there
  1835. was a bottle that had had milk in it, and it had a rag stopper for a
  1836. baby to suck.  We would a took the bottle, but it was broke.  There was
  1837. a seedy old chest, and an old hair trunk with the hinges broke.  They
  1838. stood open, but there warn't nothing left in them that was any account.
  1839.  The way things was scattered about we reckoned the people left in a
  1840. hurry, and warn't fixed so as to carry off most of their stuff.
  1841. We got an old tin lantern, and a butcher-knife without any handle, and
  1842. a bran-new Barlow knife worth two bits in any store, and a lot of tallow
  1843. candles, and a tin candlestick, and a gourd, and a tin cup, and a ratty
  1844. old bedquilt off the bed, and a reticule with needles and pins and
  1845. beeswax and buttons and thread and all such truck in it, and a hatchet
  1846. and some nails, and a fishline as thick as my little finger with some
  1847. monstrous hooks on it, and a roll of buckskin, and a leather dog-collar,
  1848. and a horseshoe, and some vials of medicine that didn't have no label
  1849. on them; and just as we was leaving I found a tolerable good curry-comb,
  1850. and Jim he found a ratty old fiddle-bow, and a wooden leg.  The straps
  1851. was broke off of it, but, barring that, it was a good enough leg, though
  1852. it was too long for me and not long enough for Jim, and we couldn't find
  1853. the other one, though we hunted all around.
  1854. And so, take it all around, we made a good haul.  When we was ready to
  1855. shove off we was a quarter of a mile below the island, and it was pretty
  1856. broad day; so I made Jim lay down in the canoe and cover up with the
  1857. quilt, because if he set up people could tell he was a nigger a good
  1858. ways off.  I paddled over to the Illinois shore, and drifted down most
  1859. a half a mile doing it.  I crept up the dead water under the bank, and
  1860. hadn't no accidents and didn't see nobody.  We got home all safe.
  1861. CHAPTER X.
  1862. AFTER breakfast I wanted to talk about the dead man and guess out how he
  1863. come to be killed, but Jim didn't want to.  He said it would fetch bad
  1864. luck; and besides, he said, he might come and ha'nt us; he said a man
  1865. that warn't buried was more likely to go a-ha'nting around than one
  1866. that was planted and comfortable.  That sounded pretty reasonable, so
  1867. I didn't say no more; but I couldn't keep from studying over it and
  1868. wishing I knowed who shot the man, and what they done it for.
  1869. We rummaged the clothes we'd got, and found eight dollars in silver
  1870. sewed up in the lining of an old blanket overcoat.  Jim said he reckoned
  1871. the people in that house stole the coat, because if they'd a knowed the
  1872. money was there they wouldn't a left it.  I said I reckoned they killed
  1873. him, too; but Jim didn't want to talk about that.  I says:
  1874. “Now you think it's bad luck; but what did you say when I fetched in the
  1875. snake-skin that I found on the top of the ridge day before yesterday?
  1876. You said it was the worst bad luck in the world to touch a snake-skin
  1877. with my hands.  Well, here's your bad luck!  We've raked in all this
  1878. truck and eight dollars besides.  I wish we could have some bad luck
  1879. like this every day, Jim.”
  1880. “Never you mind, honey, never you mind.  Don't you git too peart.  It's
  1881. a-comin'.  Mind I tell you, it's a-comin'.”
  1882. It did come, too.  It was a Tuesday that we had that talk.  Well, after
  1883. dinner Friday we was laying around in the grass at the upper end of the
  1884. ridge, and got out of tobacco.  I went to the cavern to get some, and
  1885. found a rattlesnake in there.  I killed him, and curled him up on the
  1886. foot of Jim's blanket, ever so natural, thinking there'd be some fun
  1887. when Jim found him there.  Well, by night I forgot all about the snake,
  1888. and when Jim flung himself down on the blanket while I struck a light
  1889. the snake's mate was there, and bit him.
  1890. He jumped up yelling, and the first thing the light showed was the
  1891. varmint curled up and ready for another spring.  I laid him out in a
  1892. second with a stick, and Jim grabbed pap's whisky-jug and begun to pour
  1893. it down.
  1894. He was barefooted, and the snake bit him right on the heel.  That all
  1895. comes of my being such a fool as to not remember that wherever you leave
  1896. a dead snake its mate always comes there and curls around it.  Jim told
  1897. me to chop off the snake's head and throw it away, and then skin the
  1898. body and roast a piece of it.  I done it, and he eat it and said it
  1899. would help cure him. He made me take off the rattles and tie them around
  1900. his wrist, too.  He said that that would help.  Then I slid out quiet
  1901. and throwed the snakes clear away amongst the bushes; for I warn't going
  1902. to let Jim find out it was all my fault, not if I could help it.
  1903. Jim sucked and sucked at the jug, and now and then he got out of his
  1904. head and pitched around and yelled; but every time he come to himself he
  1905. went to sucking at the jug again.  His foot swelled up pretty big, and
  1906. so did his leg; but by and by the drunk begun to come, and so I judged
  1907. he was all right; but I'd druther been bit with a snake than pap's
  1908. whisky.
  1909. Jim was laid up for four days and nights.  Then the swelling was all
  1910. gone and he was around again.  I made up my mind I wouldn't ever take
  1911. a-holt of a snake-skin again with my hands, now that I see what had come
  1912. of it. Jim said he reckoned I would believe him next time.  And he said
  1913. that handling a snake-skin was such awful bad luck that maybe we hadn't
  1914. got to the end of it yet.  He said he druther see the new moon over his
  1915. left shoulder as much as a thousand times than take up a snake-skin
  1916. in his hand.  Well, I was getting to feel that way myself, though I've
  1917. always reckoned that looking at the new moon over your left shoulder is
  1918. one of the carelessest and foolishest things a body can do.  Old Hank
  1919. Bunker done it once, and bragged about it; and in less than two years he
  1920. got drunk and fell off of the shot-tower, and spread himself out so
  1921. that he was just a kind of a layer, as you may say; and they slid him
  1922. edgeways between two barn doors for a coffin, and buried him so, so
  1923. they say, but I didn't see it.  Pap told me.  But anyway it all come of
  1924. looking at the moon that way, like a fool.
  1925. Well, the days went along, and the river went down between its banks
  1926. again; and about the first thing we done was to bait one of the big
  1927. hooks with a skinned rabbit and set it and catch a catfish that was
  1928. as big as a man, being six foot two inches long, and weighed over two
  1929. hundred pounds. We couldn't handle him, of course; he would a flung us
  1930. into Illinois.  We just set there and watched him rip and tear around
  1931. till he drownded.  We found a brass button in his stomach and a round
  1932. ball, and lots of rubbage.  We split the ball open with the hatchet,
  1933. and there was a spool in it.  Jim said he'd had it there a long time, to
  1934. coat it over so and make a ball of it.  It was as big a fish as was ever
  1935. catched in the Mississippi, I reckon.  Jim said he hadn't ever seen
  1936. a bigger one.  He would a been worth a good deal over at the village.
  1937.  They peddle out such a fish as that by the pound in the market-house
  1938. there; everybody buys some of him; his meat's as white as snow and makes
  1939. a good fry.
  1940. Next morning I said it was getting slow and dull, and I wanted to get a
  1941. stirring up some way.  I said I reckoned I would slip over the river and
  1942. find out what was going on.  Jim liked that notion; but he said I
  1943. must go in the dark and look sharp.  Then he studied it over and said,
  1944. couldn't I put on some of them old things and dress up like a girl?
  1945.  That was a good notion, too.  So we shortened up one of the calico
  1946. gowns, and I turned up my trouser-legs to my knees and got into it.  Jim
  1947. hitched it behind with the hooks, and it was a fair fit.  I put on the
  1948. sun-bonnet and tied it under my chin, and then for a body to look in
  1949. and see my face was like looking down a joint of stove-pipe.  Jim said
  1950. nobody would know me, even in the daytime, hardly.  I practiced around
  1951. all day to get the hang of the things, and by and by I could do pretty
  1952. well in them, only Jim said I didn't walk like a girl; and he said
  1953. I must quit pulling up my gown to get at my britches-pocket.  I took
  1954. notice, and done better.
  1955. I started up the Illinois shore in the canoe just after dark.
  1956. I started across to the town from a little below the ferry-landing, and
  1957. the drift of the current fetched me in at the bottom of the town.  I
  1958. tied up and started along the bank.  There was a light burning in a
  1959. little shanty that hadn't been lived in for a long time, and I wondered
  1960. who had took up quarters there.  I slipped up and peeped in at the
  1961. window.  There was a woman about forty year old in there knitting by
  1962. a candle that was on a pine table.  I didn't know her face; she was a
  1963. stranger, for you couldn't start a face in that town that I didn't know.
  1964.  Now this was lucky, because I was weakening; I was getting afraid I had
  1965. come; people might know my voice and find me out.  But if this woman had
  1966. been in such a little town two days she could tell me all I wanted to
  1967. know; so I knocked at the door, and made up my mind I wouldn't forget I
  1968. was a girl.
  1969. CHAPTER XI.
  1970. “COME in,” says the woman, and I did.  She says: “Take a cheer.”
  1971. I done it.  She looked me all over with her little shiny eyes, and says:
  1972. “What might your name be?”
  1973. “Sarah Williams.”
  1974. “Where 'bouts do you live?  In this neighborhood?'
  1975. “No'm.  In Hookerville, seven mile below.  I've walked all the way and
  1976. I'm all tired out.”
  1977. “Hungry, too, I reckon.  I'll find you something.”
  1978. “No'm, I ain't hungry.  I was so hungry I had to stop two miles below
  1979. here at a farm; so I ain't hungry no more.  It's what makes me so late.
  1980. My mother's down sick, and out of money and everything, and I come to
  1981. tell my uncle Abner Moore.  He lives at the upper end of the town, she
  1982. says.  I hain't ever been here before.  Do you know him?”
  1983. “No; but I don't know everybody yet.  I haven't lived here quite two
  1984. weeks. It's a considerable ways to the upper end of the town.  You
  1985. better stay here all night.  Take off your bonnet.”
  1986. “No,” I says; “I'll rest a while, I reckon, and go on.  I ain't afeared
  1987. of the dark.”
  1988. She said she wouldn't let me go by myself, but her husband would be in
  1989. by and by, maybe in a hour and a half, and she'd send him along with me.
  1990. Then she got to talking about her husband, and about her relations up
  1991. the river, and her relations down the river, and about how much better
  1992. off they used to was, and how they didn't know but they'd made a mistake
  1993. coming to our town, instead of letting well alone--and so on and so on,
  1994. till I was afeard I had made a mistake coming to her to find out what
  1995. was going on in the town; but by and by she dropped on to pap and the
  1996. murder, and then I was pretty willing to let her clatter right along.
  1997.  She told about me and Tom Sawyer finding the six thousand dollars (only
  1998. she got it ten) and all about pap and what a hard lot he was, and what
  1999. a hard lot I was, and at last she got down to where I was murdered.  I
  2000. says:
  2001. “Who done it?  We've heard considerable about these goings on down in
  2002. Hookerville, but we don't know who 'twas that killed Huck Finn.”
  2003. “Well, I reckon there's a right smart chance of people _here_ that'd
  2004. like to know who killed him.  Some think old Finn done it himself.”
  2005. “No--is that so?”
  2006. “Most everybody thought it at first.  He'll never know how nigh he come
  2007. to getting lynched.  But before night they changed around and judged it
  2008. was done by a runaway nigger named Jim.”
  2009. “Why _he_--”
  2010. I stopped.  I reckoned I better keep still.  She run on, and never
  2011. noticed I had put in at all:
  2012. “The nigger run off the very night Huck Finn was killed.  So there's a
  2013. reward out for him--three hundred dollars.  And there's a reward out for
  2014. old Finn, too--two hundred dollars.  You see, he come to town the
  2015. morning after the murder, and told about it, and was out with 'em on the
  2016. ferryboat hunt, and right away after he up and left.  Before night they
  2017. wanted to lynch him, but he was gone, you see.  Well, next day they
  2018. found out the nigger was gone; they found out he hadn't ben seen sence
  2019. ten o'clock the night the murder was done.  So then they put it on him,
  2020. you see; and while they was full of it, next day, back comes old Finn,
  2021. and went boo-hooing to Judge Thatcher to get money to hunt for the
  2022. nigger all over Illinois with. The judge gave him some, and that evening
  2023. he got drunk, and was around till after midnight with a couple of mighty
  2024. hard-looking strangers, and then went off with them.  Well, he hain't
  2025. come back sence, and they ain't looking for him back till this thing
  2026. blows over a little, for people thinks now that he killed his boy and
  2027. fixed things so folks would think robbers done it, and then he'd get
  2028. Huck's money without having to bother a long time with a lawsuit.
  2029.  People do say he warn't any too good to do it.  Oh, he's sly, I reckon.
  2030.  If he don't come back for a year he'll be all right.  You can't prove
  2031. anything on him, you know; everything will be quieted down then, and
  2032. he'll walk in Huck's money as easy as nothing.”
  2033. “Yes, I reckon so, 'm.  I don't see nothing in the way of it.  Has
  2034. everybody quit thinking the nigger done it?”
  2035. “Oh, no, not everybody.  A good many thinks he done it.  But they'll get
  2036. the nigger pretty soon now, and maybe they can scare it out of him.”
  2037. “Why, are they after him yet?”
  2038. “Well, you're innocent, ain't you!  Does three hundred dollars lay
  2039. around every day for people to pick up?  Some folks think the nigger
  2040. ain't far from here.  I'm one of them--but I hain't talked it around.  A
  2041. few days ago I was talking with an old couple that lives next door in
  2042. the log shanty, and they happened to say hardly anybody ever goes to
  2043. that island over yonder that they call Jackson's Island.  Don't anybody
  2044. live there? says I. No, nobody, says they.  I didn't say any more, but
  2045. I done some thinking.  I was pretty near certain I'd seen smoke over
  2046. there, about the head of the island, a day or two before that, so I says
  2047. to myself, like as not that nigger's hiding over there; anyway, says
  2048. I, it's worth the trouble to give the place a hunt.  I hain't seen any
  2049. smoke sence, so I reckon maybe he's gone, if it was him; but husband's
  2050. going over to see--him and another man.  He was gone up the river; but he
  2051. got back to-day, and I told him as soon as he got here two hours ago.”
  2052. I had got so uneasy I couldn't set still.  I had to do something with my
  2053. hands; so I took up a needle off of the table and went to threading
  2054. it. My hands shook, and I was making a bad job of it.  When the woman
  2055. stopped talking I looked up, and she was looking at me pretty curious
  2056. and smiling a little.  I put down the needle and thread, and let on to
  2057. be interested--and I was, too--and says:
  2058. “Three hundred dollars is a power of money.  I wish my mother could get
  2059. it. Is your husband going over there to-night?”
  2060. “Oh, yes.  He went up-town with the man I was telling you of, to get a
  2061. boat and see if they could borrow another gun.  They'll go over after
  2062. midnight.”
  2063. “Couldn't they see better if they was to wait till daytime?”
  2064. “Yes.  And couldn't the nigger see better, too?  After midnight he'll
  2065. likely be asleep, and they can slip around through the woods and hunt up
  2066. his camp fire all the better for the dark, if he's got one.”
  2067. “I didn't think of that.”
  2068. The woman kept looking at me pretty curious, and I didn't feel a bit
  2069. comfortable.  Pretty soon she says,
  2070. “What did you say your name was, honey?”
  2071. “M--Mary Williams.”
  2072. Somehow it didn't seem to me that I said it was Mary before, so I didn't
  2073. look up--seemed to me I said it was Sarah; so I felt sort of cornered,
  2074. and was afeared maybe I was looking it, too.  I wished the woman would
  2075. say something more; the longer she set still the uneasier I was.  But
  2076. now she says:
  2077. “Honey, I thought you said it was Sarah when you first come in?”
  2078. “Oh, yes'm, I did.  Sarah Mary Williams.  Sarah's my first name.  Some
  2079. calls me Sarah, some calls me Mary.”
  2080. “Oh, that's the way of it?”
  2081. “Yes'm.”
  2082. I was feeling better then, but I wished I was out of there, anyway.  I
  2083. couldn't look up yet.
  2084. Well, the woman fell to talking about how hard times was, and how poor
  2085. they had to live, and how the rats was as free as if they owned the
  2086. place, and so forth and so on, and then I got easy again.  She was right
  2087. about the rats. You'd see one stick his nose out of a hole in the corner
  2088. every little while.  She said she had to have things handy to throw at
  2089. them when she was alone, or they wouldn't give her no peace.  She showed
  2090. me a bar of lead twisted up into a knot, and said she was a good shot
  2091. with it generly, but she'd wrenched her arm a day or two ago, and didn't
  2092. know whether she could throw true now.  But she watched for a chance,
  2093. and directly banged away at a rat; but she missed him wide, and said
  2094. “Ouch!” it hurt her arm so.  Then she told me to try for the next one.
  2095.  I wanted to be getting away before the old man got back, but of course
  2096. I didn't let on.  I got the thing, and the first rat that showed his
  2097. nose I let drive, and if he'd a stayed where he was he'd a been a
  2098. tolerable sick rat.  She said that was first-rate, and she reckoned I
  2099. would hive the next one.  She went and got the lump of lead and fetched
  2100. it back, and brought along a hank of yarn which she wanted me to help
  2101. her with.  I held up my two hands and she put the hank over them, and
  2102. went on talking about her and her husband's matters.  But she broke off
  2103. to say:
  2104. “Keep your eye on the rats.  You better have the lead in your lap,
  2105. handy.”
  2106. So she dropped the lump into my lap just at that moment, and I clapped
  2107. my legs together on it and she went on talking.  But only about a
  2108. minute. Then she took off the hank and looked me straight in the face,
  2109. and very pleasant, and says:
  2110. “Come, now, what's your real name?”
  2111. “Wh--what, mum?”
  2112. “What's your real name?  Is it Bill, or Tom, or Bob?--or what is it?”
  2113. I reckon I shook like a leaf, and I didn't know hardly what to do.  But
  2114. I says:
  2115. “Please to don't poke fun at a poor girl like me, mum.  If I'm in the
  2116. way here, I'll--”
  2117. “No, you won't.  Set down and stay where you are.  I ain't going to hurt
  2118. you, and I ain't going to tell on you, nuther.  You just tell me your
  2119. secret, and trust me.  I'll keep it; and, what's more, I'll help
  2120. you. So'll my old man if you want him to.  You see, you're a runaway
  2121. 'prentice, that's all.  It ain't anything.  There ain't no harm in it.
  2122. You've been treated bad, and you made up your mind to cut.  Bless you,
  2123. child, I wouldn't tell on you.  Tell me all about it now, that's a good
  2124. boy.”
  2125. So I said it wouldn't be no use to try to play it any longer, and I
  2126. would just make a clean breast and tell her everything, but she musn't
  2127. go back on her promise.  Then I told her my father and mother was dead,
  2128. and the law had bound me out to a mean old farmer in the country thirty
  2129. mile back from the river, and he treated me so bad I couldn't stand it
  2130. no longer; he went away to be gone a couple of days, and so I took my
  2131. chance and stole some of his daughter's old clothes and cleared out, and
  2132. I had been three nights coming the thirty miles.  I traveled nights,
  2133. and hid daytimes and slept, and the bag of bread and meat I carried from
  2134. home lasted me all the way, and I had a-plenty.  I said I believed my
  2135. uncle Abner Moore would take care of me, and so that was why I struck
  2136. out for this town of Goshen.
  2137. “Goshen, child?  This ain't Goshen.  This is St. Petersburg.  Goshen's
  2138. ten mile further up the river.  Who told you this was Goshen?”
  2139. “Why, a man I met at daybreak this morning, just as I was going to turn
  2140. into the woods for my regular sleep.  He told me when the roads forked I
  2141. must take the right hand, and five mile would fetch me to Goshen.”
  2142. “He was drunk, I reckon.  He told you just exactly wrong.”
  2143. “Well, he did act like he was drunk, but it ain't no matter now.  I got
  2144. to be moving along.  I'll fetch Goshen before daylight.”
  2145. “Hold on a minute.  I'll put you up a snack to eat.  You might want it.”
  2146. So she put me up a snack, and says:
  2147. “Say, when a cow's laying down, which end of her gets up first?  Answer
  2148. up prompt now--don't stop to study over it.  Which end gets up first?”
  2149. “The hind end, mum.”
  2150. “Well, then, a horse?”
  2151. “The for'rard end, mum.”
  2152. “Which side of a tree does the moss grow on?”
  2153. “North side.”
  2154. “If fifteen cows is browsing on a hillside, how many of them eats with
  2155. their heads pointed the same direction?”
  2156. “The whole fifteen, mum.”
  2157. “Well, I reckon you _have_ lived in the country.  I thought maybe you
  2158. was trying to hocus me again.  What's your real name, now?”
  2159. “George Peters, mum.”
  2160. “Well, try to remember it, George.  Don't forget and tell me it's
  2161. Elexander before you go, and then get out by saying it's George
  2162. Elexander when I catch you.  And don't go about women in that old
  2163. calico.  You do a girl tolerable poor, but you might fool men, maybe.
  2164.  Bless you, child, when you set out to thread a needle don't hold the
  2165. thread still and fetch the needle up to it; hold the needle still and
  2166. poke the thread at it; that's the way a woman most always does, but a
  2167. man always does t'other way.  And when you throw at a rat or anything,
  2168. hitch yourself up a tiptoe and fetch your hand up over your head as
  2169. awkward as you can, and miss your rat about six or seven foot. Throw
  2170. stiff-armed from the shoulder, like there was a pivot there for it to
  2171. turn on, like a girl; not from the wrist and elbow, with your arm out
  2172. to one side, like a boy.  And, mind you, when a girl tries to catch
  2173. anything in her lap she throws her knees apart; she don't clap them
  2174. together, the way you did when you catched the lump of lead.  Why, I
  2175. spotted you for a boy when you was threading the needle; and I contrived
  2176. the other things just to make certain.  Now trot along to your uncle,
  2177. Sarah Mary Williams George Elexander Peters, and if you get into trouble
  2178. you send word to Mrs. Judith Loftus, which is me, and I'll do what I can
  2179. to get you out of it.  Keep the river road all the way, and next time
  2180. you tramp take shoes and socks with you. The river road's a rocky one,
  2181. and your feet'll be in a condition when you get to Goshen, I reckon.”
  2182. I went up the bank about fifty yards, and then I doubled on my tracks
  2183. and slipped back to where my canoe was, a good piece below the house.  I
  2184. jumped in, and was off in a hurry.  I went up-stream far enough to
  2185. make the head of the island, and then started across.  I took off the
  2186. sun-bonnet, for I didn't want no blinders on then.  When I was about the
  2187. middle I heard the clock begin to strike, so I stops and listens; the
  2188. sound come faint over the water but clear--eleven.  When I struck the
  2189. head of the island I never waited to blow, though I was most winded, but
  2190. I shoved right into the timber where my old camp used to be, and started
  2191. a good fire there on a high and dry spot.
  2192. Then I jumped in the canoe and dug out for our place, a mile and a half
  2193. below, as hard as I could go.  I landed, and slopped through the timber
  2194. and up the ridge and into the cavern.  There Jim laid, sound asleep on
  2195. the ground.  I roused him out and says:
  2196. “Git up and hump yourself, Jim!  There ain't a minute to lose.  They're
  2197. after us!”
  2198. Jim never asked no questions, he never said a word; but the way he
  2199. worked for the next half an hour showed about how he was scared.  By
  2200. that time everything we had in the world was on our raft, and she was
  2201. ready to be shoved out from the willow cove where she was hid.  We
  2202. put out the camp fire at the cavern the first thing, and didn't show a
  2203. candle outside after that.
  2204. I took the canoe out from the shore a little piece, and took a look;
  2205. but if there was a boat around I couldn't see it, for stars and shadows
  2206. ain't good to see by.  Then we got out the raft and slipped along down
  2207. in the shade, past the foot of the island dead still--never saying a
  2208. word.
  2209. CHAPTER XII.
  2210. IT must a been close on to one o'clock when we got below the island at
  2211. last, and the raft did seem to go mighty slow.  If a boat was to come
  2212. along we was going to take to the canoe and break for the Illinois
  2213. shore; and it was well a boat didn't come, for we hadn't ever thought to
  2214. put the gun in the canoe, or a fishing-line, or anything to eat.  We
  2215. was in ruther too much of a sweat to think of so many things.  It warn't
  2216. good judgment to put _everything_ on the raft.
  2217. If the men went to the island I just expect they found the camp fire I
  2218. built, and watched it all night for Jim to come.  Anyways, they stayed
  2219. away from us, and if my building the fire never fooled them it warn't no
  2220. fault of mine.  I played it as low down on them as I could.
  2221. When the first streak of day began to show we tied up to a towhead in a
  2222. big bend on the Illinois side, and hacked off cottonwood branches with
  2223. the hatchet, and covered up the raft with them so she looked like there
  2224. had been a cave-in in the bank there.  A tow-head is a sandbar that has
  2225. cottonwoods on it as thick as harrow-teeth.
  2226. We had mountains on the Missouri shore and heavy timber on the Illinois
  2227. side, and the channel was down the Missouri shore at that place, so we
  2228. warn't afraid of anybody running across us.  We laid there all day,
  2229. and watched the rafts and steamboats spin down the Missouri shore, and
  2230. up-bound steamboats fight the big river in the middle.  I told Jim all
  2231. about the time I had jabbering with that woman; and Jim said she was
  2232. a smart one, and if she was to start after us herself she wouldn't set
  2233. down and watch a camp fire--no, sir, she'd fetch a dog.  Well, then, I
  2234. said, why couldn't she tell her husband to fetch a dog?  Jim said he
  2235. bet she did think of it by the time the men was ready to start, and he
  2236. believed they must a gone up-town to get a dog and so they lost all that
  2237. time, or else we wouldn't be here on a towhead sixteen or seventeen mile
  2238. below the village--no, indeedy, we would be in that same old town again.
  2239.  So I said I didn't care what was the reason they didn't get us as long
  2240. as they didn't.
  2241. When it was beginning to come on dark we poked our heads out of the
  2242. cottonwood thicket, and looked up and down and across; nothing in sight;
  2243. so Jim took up some of the top planks of the raft and built a snug
  2244. wigwam to get under in blazing weather and rainy, and to keep the things
  2245. dry. Jim made a floor for the wigwam, and raised it a foot or more above
  2246. the level of the raft, so now the blankets and all the traps was out of
  2247. reach of steamboat waves.  Right in the middle of the wigwam we made a
  2248. layer of dirt about five or six inches deep with a frame around it for
  2249. to hold it to its place; this was to build a fire on in sloppy weather
  2250. or chilly; the wigwam would keep it from being seen.  We made an extra
  2251. steering-oar, too, because one of the others might get broke on a snag
  2252. or something. We fixed up a short forked stick to hang the old lantern
  2253. on, because we must always light the lantern whenever we see a steamboat
  2254. coming down-stream, to keep from getting run over; but we wouldn't have
  2255. to light it for up-stream boats unless we see we was in what they call
  2256. a “crossing”; for the river was pretty high yet, very low banks being
  2257. still a little under water; so up-bound boats didn't always run the
  2258. channel, but hunted easy water.
  2259. This second night we run between seven and eight hours, with a current
  2260. that was making over four mile an hour.  We catched fish and talked,
  2261. and we took a swim now and then to keep off sleepiness.  It was kind of
  2262. solemn, drifting down the big, still river, laying on our backs looking
  2263. up at the stars, and we didn't ever feel like talking loud, and it
  2264. warn't often that we laughed--only a little kind of a low chuckle.  We
  2265. had mighty good weather as a general thing, and nothing ever happened to
  2266. us at all--that night, nor the next, nor the next.
  2267. Every night we passed towns, some of them away up on black hillsides,
  2268. nothing but just a shiny bed of lights; not a house could you see.  The
  2269. fifth night we passed St. Louis, and it was like the whole world lit up.
  2270. In St. Petersburg they used to say there was twenty or thirty thousand
  2271. people in St. Louis, but I never believed it till I see that wonderful
  2272. spread of lights at two o'clock that still night.  There warn't a sound
  2273. there; everybody was asleep.
  2274. Every night now I used to slip ashore towards ten o'clock at some little
  2275. village, and buy ten or fifteen cents' worth of meal or bacon or other
  2276. stuff to eat; and sometimes I lifted a chicken that warn't roosting
  2277. comfortable, and took him along.  Pap always said, take a chicken when
  2278. you get a chance, because if you don't want him yourself you can easy
  2279. find somebody that does, and a good deed ain't ever forgot.  I never see
  2280. pap when he didn't want the chicken himself, but that is what he used to
  2281. say, anyway.
  2282. Mornings before daylight I slipped into cornfields and borrowed a
  2283. watermelon, or a mushmelon, or a punkin, or some new corn, or things of
  2284. that kind.  Pap always said it warn't no harm to borrow things if you
  2285. was meaning to pay them back some time; but the widow said it warn't
  2286. anything but a soft name for stealing, and no decent body would do it.
  2287.  Jim said he reckoned the widow was partly right and pap was partly
  2288. right; so the best way would be for us to pick out two or three things
  2289. from the list and say we wouldn't borrow them any more--then he reckoned
  2290. it wouldn't be no harm to borrow the others.  So we talked it over all
  2291. one night, drifting along down the river, trying to make up our minds
  2292. whether to drop the watermelons, or the cantelopes, or the mushmelons,
  2293. or what.  But towards daylight we got it all settled satisfactory, and
  2294. concluded to drop crabapples and p'simmons.  We warn't feeling just
  2295. right before that, but it was all comfortable now.  I was glad the way
  2296. it come out, too, because crabapples ain't ever good, and the p'simmons
  2297. wouldn't be ripe for two or three months yet.
  2298. We shot a water-fowl now and then that got up too early in the morning
  2299. or didn't go to bed early enough in the evening.  Take it all round, we
  2300. lived pretty high.
  2301. The fifth night below St. Louis we had a big storm after midnight, with
  2302. a power of thunder and lightning, and the rain poured down in a solid
  2303. sheet. We stayed in the wigwam and let the raft take care of itself.
  2304. When the lightning glared out we could see a big straight river ahead,
  2305. and high, rocky bluffs on both sides.  By and by says I, “Hel-_lo_, Jim,
  2306. looky yonder!” It was a steamboat that had killed herself on a rock.
  2307.  We was drifting straight down for her.  The lightning showed her very
  2308. distinct.  She was leaning over, with part of her upper deck above
  2309. water, and you could see every little chimbly-guy clean and clear, and a
  2310. chair by the big bell, with an old slouch hat hanging on the back of it,
  2311. when the flashes come.
  2312. Well, it being away in the night and stormy, and all so mysterious-like,
  2313. I felt just the way any other boy would a felt when I see that wreck
  2314. laying there so mournful and lonesome in the middle of the river.  I
  2315. wanted to get aboard of her and slink around a little, and see what
  2316. there was there.  So I says:
  2317. “Le's land on her, Jim.”
  2318. But Jim was dead against it at first.  He says:
  2319. “I doan' want to go fool'n 'long er no wrack.  We's doin' blame' well,
  2320. en we better let blame' well alone, as de good book says.  Like as not
  2321. dey's a watchman on dat wrack.”
  2322. “Watchman your grandmother,” I says; “there ain't nothing to watch but
  2323. the texas and the pilot-house; and do you reckon anybody's going to resk
  2324. his life for a texas and a pilot-house such a night as this, when
  2325. it's likely to break up and wash off down the river any minute?”  Jim
  2326. couldn't say nothing to that, so he didn't try. “And besides,” I says,
  2327. “we might borrow something worth having out of the captain's stateroom.
  2328.  Seegars, I bet you--and cost five cents apiece, solid cash.  Steamboat
  2329. captains is always rich, and get sixty dollars a month, and _they_ don't
  2330. care a cent what a thing costs, you know, long as they want it.  Stick a
  2331. candle in your pocket; I can't rest, Jim, till we give her a rummaging.
  2332.  Do you reckon Tom Sawyer would ever go by this thing?  Not for pie, he
  2333. wouldn't. He'd call it an adventure--that's what he'd call it; and he'd
  2334. land on that wreck if it was his last act.  And wouldn't he throw style
  2335. into it?--wouldn't he spread himself, nor nothing?  Why, you'd think it
  2336. was Christopher C'lumbus discovering Kingdom-Come.  I wish Tom Sawyer
  2337. _was_ here.”
  2338. Jim he grumbled a little, but give in.  He said we mustn't talk any more
  2339. than we could help, and then talk mighty low.  The lightning showed us
  2340. the wreck again just in time, and we fetched the stabboard derrick, and
  2341. made fast there.
  2342. The deck was high out here.  We went sneaking down the slope of it to
  2343. labboard, in the dark, towards the texas, feeling our way slow with our
  2344. feet, and spreading our hands out to fend off the guys, for it was so
  2345. dark we couldn't see no sign of them.  Pretty soon we struck the forward
  2346. end of the skylight, and clumb on to it; and the next step fetched us in
  2347. front of the captain's door, which was open, and by Jimminy, away down
  2348. through the texas-hall we see a light! and all in the same second we
  2349. seem to hear low voices in yonder!
  2350. Jim whispered and said he was feeling powerful sick, and told me to come
  2351. along.  I says, all right, and was going to start for the raft; but just
  2352. then I heard a voice wail out and say:
  2353. “Oh, please don't, boys; I swear I won't ever tell!”
  2354. Another voice said, pretty loud:
  2355. “It's a lie, Jim Turner.  You've acted this way before.  You always want
  2356. more'n your share of the truck, and you've always got it, too, because
  2357. you've swore 't if you didn't you'd tell.  But this time you've said
  2358. it jest one time too many.  You're the meanest, treacherousest hound in
  2359. this country.”
  2360. By this time Jim was gone for the raft.  I was just a-biling with
  2361. curiosity; and I says to myself, Tom Sawyer wouldn't back out now,
  2362. and so I won't either; I'm a-going to see what's going on here.  So I
  2363. dropped on my hands and knees in the little passage, and crept aft
  2364. in the dark till there warn't but one stateroom betwixt me and the
  2365. cross-hall of the texas.  Then in there I see a man stretched on the
  2366. floor and tied hand and foot, and two men standing over him, and one
  2367. of them had a dim lantern in his hand, and the other one had a pistol.
  2368.  This one kept pointing the pistol at the man's head on the floor, and
  2369. saying:
  2370. “I'd _like_ to!  And I orter, too--a mean skunk!”
  2371. The man on the floor would shrivel up and say, “Oh, please don't, Bill;
  2372. I hain't ever goin' to tell.”
  2373. And every time he said that the man with the lantern would laugh and
  2374. say:
  2375. “'Deed you _ain't!_  You never said no truer thing 'n that, you bet
  2376. you.” And once he said: “Hear him beg! and yit if we hadn't got the
  2377. best of him and tied him he'd a killed us both.  And what _for_?  Jist
  2378. for noth'n. Jist because we stood on our _rights_--that's what for.  But
  2379. I lay you ain't a-goin' to threaten nobody any more, Jim Turner.  Put
  2380. _up_ that pistol, Bill.”
  2381. Bill says:
  2382. “I don't want to, Jake Packard.  I'm for killin' him--and didn't he kill
  2383. old Hatfield jist the same way--and don't he deserve it?”
  2384. “But I don't _want_ him killed, and I've got my reasons for it.”
  2385. “Bless yo' heart for them words, Jake Packard!  I'll never forgit you
  2386. long's I live!” says the man on the floor, sort of blubbering.
  2387. Packard didn't take no notice of that, but hung up his lantern on a nail
  2388. and started towards where I was there in the dark, and motioned Bill
  2389. to come.  I crawfished as fast as I could about two yards, but the boat
  2390. slanted so that I couldn't make very good time; so to keep from getting
  2391. run over and catched I crawled into a stateroom on the upper side.
  2392.  The man came a-pawing along in the dark, and when Packard got to my
  2393. stateroom, he says:
  2394. “Here--come in here.”
  2395. And in he come, and Bill after him.  But before they got in I was up
  2396. in the upper berth, cornered, and sorry I come.  Then they stood there,
  2397. with their hands on the ledge of the berth, and talked.  I couldn't see
  2398. them, but I could tell where they was by the whisky they'd been having.
  2399.  I was glad I didn't drink whisky; but it wouldn't made much difference
  2400. anyway, because most of the time they couldn't a treed me because I
  2401. didn't breathe.  I was too scared.  And, besides, a body _couldn't_
  2402. breathe and hear such talk.  They talked low and earnest.  Bill wanted
  2403. to kill Turner.  He says:
  2404. “He's said he'll tell, and he will.  If we was to give both our shares
  2405. to him _now_ it wouldn't make no difference after the row and the way
  2406. we've served him.  Shore's you're born, he'll turn State's evidence; now
  2407. you hear _me_.  I'm for putting him out of his troubles.”
  2408. “So'm I,” says Packard, very quiet.
  2409. “Blame it, I'd sorter begun to think you wasn't.  Well, then, that's all
  2410. right.  Le's go and do it.”
  2411. “Hold on a minute; I hain't had my say yit.  You listen to me.
  2412. Shooting's good, but there's quieter ways if the thing's _got_ to be
  2413. done. But what I say is this:  it ain't good sense to go court'n around
  2414. after a halter if you can git at what you're up to in some way that's
  2415. jist as good and at the same time don't bring you into no resks.  Ain't
  2416. that so?”
  2417. “You bet it is.  But how you goin' to manage it this time?”
  2418. “Well, my idea is this:  we'll rustle around and gather up whatever
  2419. pickins we've overlooked in the staterooms, and shove for shore and hide
  2420. the truck. Then we'll wait.  Now I say it ain't a-goin' to be more'n two
  2421. hours befo' this wrack breaks up and washes off down the river.  See?
  2422. He'll be drownded, and won't have nobody to blame for it but his own
  2423. self.  I reckon that's a considerble sight better 'n killin' of him.
  2424.  I'm unfavorable to killin' a man as long as you can git aroun' it; it
  2425. ain't good sense, it ain't good morals.  Ain't I right?”
  2426. “Yes, I reck'n you are.  But s'pose she _don't_ break up and wash off?”
  2427. “Well, we can wait the two hours anyway and see, can't we?”
  2428. “All right, then; come along.”
  2429. So they started, and I lit out, all in a cold sweat, and scrambled
  2430. forward. It was dark as pitch there; but I said, in a kind of a coarse
  2431. whisper, “Jim!” and he answered up, right at my elbow, with a sort of a
  2432. moan, and I says:
  2433. “Quick, Jim, it ain't no time for fooling around and moaning; there's a
  2434. gang of murderers in yonder, and if we don't hunt up their boat and set
  2435. her drifting down the river so these fellows can't get away from the
  2436. wreck there's one of 'em going to be in a bad fix.  But if we find their
  2437. boat we can put _all_ of 'em in a bad fix--for the sheriff 'll get 'em.
  2438. Quick--hurry!  I'll hunt the labboard side, you hunt the stabboard. You
  2439. start at the raft, and--”
  2440. “Oh, my lordy, lordy!  _raf'_?  Dey ain' no raf' no mo'; she done broke
  2441. loose en gone I--en here we is!”
  2442. CHAPTER XIII.
  2443. WELL, I catched my breath and most fainted.  Shut up on a wreck with
  2444. such a gang as that!  But it warn't no time to be sentimentering.  We'd
  2445. _got_ to find that boat now--had to have it for ourselves.  So we went
  2446. a-quaking and shaking down the stabboard side, and slow work it was,
  2447. too--seemed a week before we got to the stern.  No sign of a boat.  Jim
  2448. said he didn't believe he could go any further--so scared he hadn't
  2449. hardly any strength left, he said.  But I said, come on, if we get left
  2450. on this wreck we are in a fix, sure.  So on we prowled again.  We struck
  2451. for the stern of the texas, and found it, and then scrabbled along
  2452. forwards on the skylight, hanging on from shutter to shutter, for the
  2453. edge of the skylight was in the water.  When we got pretty close to the
  2454. cross-hall door there was the skiff, sure enough!  I could just barely
  2455. see her.  I felt ever so thankful.  In another second I would a been
  2456. aboard of her, but just then the door opened.  One of the men stuck his
  2457. head out only about a couple of foot from me, and I thought I was gone;
  2458. but he jerked it in again, and says:
  2459. “Heave that blame lantern out o' sight, Bill!”
  2460. He flung a bag of something into the boat, and then got in himself and
  2461. set down.  It was Packard.  Then Bill _he_ come out and got in.  Packard
  2462. says, in a low voice:
  2463. “All ready--shove off!”
  2464. I couldn't hardly hang on to the shutters, I was so weak.  But Bill
  2465. says:
  2466. “Hold on--'d you go through him?”
  2467. “No.  Didn't you?”
  2468. “No.  So he's got his share o' the cash yet.”
  2469. “Well, then, come along; no use to take truck and leave money.”
  2470. “Say, won't he suspicion what we're up to?”
  2471. “Maybe he won't.  But we got to have it anyway. Come along.”
  2472. So they got out and went in.
  2473. The door slammed to because it was on the careened side; and in a half
  2474. second I was in the boat, and Jim come tumbling after me.  I out with my
  2475. knife and cut the rope, and away we went!
  2476. We didn't touch an oar, and we didn't speak nor whisper, nor hardly even
  2477. breathe.  We went gliding swift along, dead silent, past the tip of the
  2478. paddle-box, and past the stern; then in a second or two more we was a
  2479. hundred yards below the wreck, and the darkness soaked her up, every
  2480. last sign of her, and we was safe, and knowed it.
  2481. When we was three or four hundred yards down-stream we see the lantern
  2482. show like a little spark at the texas door for a second, and we knowed
  2483. by that that the rascals had missed their boat, and was beginning to
  2484. understand that they was in just as much trouble now as Jim Turner was.
  2485. Then Jim manned the oars, and we took out after our raft.  Now was the
  2486. first time that I begun to worry about the men--I reckon I hadn't
  2487. had time to before.  I begun to think how dreadful it was, even for
  2488. murderers, to be in such a fix.  I says to myself, there ain't no
  2489. telling but I might come to be a murderer myself yet, and then how would
  2490. I like it?  So says I to Jim:
  2491. “The first light we see we'll land a hundred yards below it or above
  2492. it, in a place where it's a good hiding-place for you and the skiff, and
  2493. then I'll go and fix up some kind of a yarn, and get somebody to go for
  2494. that gang and get them out of their scrape, so they can be hung when
  2495. their time comes.”
  2496. But that idea was a failure; for pretty soon it begun to storm again,
  2497. and this time worse than ever.  The rain poured down, and never a light
  2498. showed; everybody in bed, I reckon.  We boomed along down the river,
  2499. watching for lights and watching for our raft.  After a long time the
  2500. rain let up, but the clouds stayed, and the lightning kept whimpering,
  2501. and by and by a flash showed us a black thing ahead, floating, and we
  2502. made for it.
  2503. It was the raft, and mighty glad was we to get aboard of it again.  We
  2504. seen a light now away down to the right, on shore.  So I said I would
  2505. go for it. The skiff was half full of plunder which that gang had stole
  2506. there on the wreck.  We hustled it on to the raft in a pile, and I told
  2507. Jim to float along down, and show a light when he judged he had gone
  2508. about two mile, and keep it burning till I come; then I manned my oars
  2509. and shoved for the light.  As I got down towards it three or four more
  2510. showed--up on a hillside.  It was a village.  I closed in above the shore
  2511. light, and laid on my oars and floated.  As I went by I see it was a
  2512. lantern hanging on the jackstaff of a double-hull ferryboat.  I skimmed
  2513. around for the watchman, a-wondering whereabouts he slept; and by and
  2514. by I found him roosting on the bitts forward, with his head down between
  2515. his knees.  I gave his shoulder two or three little shoves, and begun to
  2516. cry.
  2517. He stirred up in a kind of a startlish way; but when he see it was only
  2518. me he took a good gap and stretch, and then he says:
  2519. “Hello, what's up?  Don't cry, bub.  What's the trouble?”
  2520. I says:
  2521. “Pap, and mam, and sis, and--”
  2522. Then I broke down.  He says:
  2523. “Oh, dang it now, _don't_ take on so; we all has to have our troubles,
  2524. and this 'n 'll come out all right.  What's the matter with 'em?”
  2525. “They're--they're--are you the watchman of the boat?”
  2526. “Yes,” he says, kind of pretty-well-satisfied like. “I'm the captain
  2527. and the owner and the mate and the pilot and watchman and head
  2528. deck-hand; and sometimes I'm the freight and passengers.  I ain't as
  2529. rich as old Jim Hornback, and I can't be so blame' generous and good
  2530. to Tom, Dick, and Harry as what he is, and slam around money the way he
  2531. does; but I've told him a many a time 't I wouldn't trade places with
  2532. him; for, says I, a sailor's life's the life for me, and I'm derned if
  2533. _I'd_ live two mile out o' town, where there ain't nothing ever goin'
  2534. on, not for all his spondulicks and as much more on top of it.  Says I--”
  2535. I broke in and says:
  2536. “They're in an awful peck of trouble, and--”
  2537. “_Who_ is?”
  2538. “Why, pap and mam and sis and Miss Hooker; and if you'd take your
  2539. ferryboat and go up there--”
  2540. “Up where?  Where are they?”
  2541. “On the wreck.”
  2542. “What wreck?”
  2543. “Why, there ain't but one.”
  2544. “What, you don't mean the Walter Scott?”
  2545. “Yes.”
  2546. “Good land! what are they doin' _there_, for gracious sakes?”
  2547. “Well, they didn't go there a-purpose.”
  2548. “I bet they didn't!  Why, great goodness, there ain't no chance for 'em
  2549. if they don't git off mighty quick!  Why, how in the nation did they
  2550. ever git into such a scrape?”
  2551. “Easy enough.  Miss Hooker was a-visiting up there to the town--”
  2552. “Yes, Booth's Landing--go on.”
  2553. “She was a-visiting there at Booth's Landing, and just in the edge of
  2554. the evening she started over with her nigger woman in the horse-ferry
  2555. to stay all night at her friend's house, Miss What-you-may-call-her I
  2556. disremember her name--and they lost their steering-oar, and swung
  2557. around and went a-floating down, stern first, about two mile, and
  2558. saddle-baggsed on the wreck, and the ferryman and the nigger woman and
  2559. the horses was all lost, but Miss Hooker she made a grab and got aboard
  2560. the wreck.  Well, about an hour after dark we come along down in our
  2561. trading-scow, and it was so dark we didn't notice the wreck till we was
  2562. right on it; and so _we_ saddle-baggsed; but all of us was saved but
  2563. Bill Whipple--and oh, he _was_ the best cretur!--I most wish 't it had
  2564. been me, I do.”
  2565. “My George!  It's the beatenest thing I ever struck.  And _then_ what
  2566. did you all do?”
  2567. “Well, we hollered and took on, but it's so wide there we couldn't
  2568. make nobody hear.  So pap said somebody got to get ashore and get help
  2569. somehow. I was the only one that could swim, so I made a dash for it,
  2570. and Miss Hooker she said if I didn't strike help sooner, come here and
  2571. hunt up her uncle, and he'd fix the thing.  I made the land about a mile
  2572. below, and been fooling along ever since, trying to get people to do
  2573. something, but they said, 'What, in such a night and such a current?
  2574. There ain't no sense in it; go for the steam ferry.'  Now if you'll go
  2575. and--”
  2576. “By Jackson, I'd _like_ to, and, blame it, I don't know but I will; but
  2577. who in the dingnation's a-going' to _pay_ for it?  Do you reckon your
  2578. pap--”
  2579. “Why _that's_ all right.  Miss Hooker she tole me, _particular_, that
  2580. her uncle Hornback--”
  2581. “Great guns! is _he_ her uncle?  Looky here, you break for that light
  2582. over yonder-way, and turn out west when you git there, and about a
  2583. quarter of a mile out you'll come to the tavern; tell 'em to dart you
  2584. out to Jim Hornback's, and he'll foot the bill.  And don't you fool
  2585. around any, because he'll want to know the news.  Tell him I'll have
  2586. his niece all safe before he can get to town.  Hump yourself, now; I'm
  2587. a-going up around the corner here to roust out my engineer.”
  2588. I struck for the light, but as soon as he turned the corner I went back
  2589. and got into my skiff and bailed her out, and then pulled up shore in
  2590. the easy water about six hundred yards, and tucked myself in among
  2591. some woodboats; for I couldn't rest easy till I could see the ferryboat
  2592. start. But take it all around, I was feeling ruther comfortable on
  2593. accounts of taking all this trouble for that gang, for not many would
  2594. a done it.  I wished the widow knowed about it.  I judged she would be
  2595. proud of me for helping these rapscallions, because rapscallions and
  2596. dead beats is the kind the widow and good people takes the most interest
  2597. in.
  2598. Well, before long here comes the wreck, dim and dusky, sliding along
  2599. down! A kind of cold shiver went through me, and then I struck out for
  2600. her.  She was very deep, and I see in a minute there warn't much chance
  2601. for anybody being alive in her.  I pulled all around her and hollered
  2602. a little, but there wasn't any answer; all dead still.  I felt a little
  2603. bit heavy-hearted about the gang, but not much, for I reckoned if they
  2604. could stand it I could.
  2605. Then here comes the ferryboat; so I shoved for the middle of the river
  2606. on a long down-stream slant; and when I judged I was out of eye-reach
  2607. I laid on my oars, and looked back and see her go and smell around the
  2608. wreck for Miss Hooker's remainders, because the captain would know her
  2609. uncle Hornback would want them; and then pretty soon the ferryboat give
  2610. it up and went for the shore, and I laid into my work and went a-booming
  2611. down the river.
  2612. It did seem a powerful long time before Jim's light showed up; and when
  2613. it did show it looked like it was a thousand mile off.  By the time I
  2614. got there the sky was beginning to get a little gray in the east; so we
  2615. struck for an island, and hid the raft, and sunk the skiff, and turned
  2616. in and slept like dead people.
  2617. CHAPTER XIV.
  2618. BY and by, when we got up, we turned over the truck the gang had stole
  2619. off of the wreck, and found boots, and blankets, and clothes, and all
  2620. sorts of other things, and a lot of books, and a spyglass, and three
  2621. boxes of seegars.  We hadn't ever been this rich before in neither of
  2622. our lives.  The seegars was prime.  We laid off all the afternoon in the
  2623. woods talking, and me reading the books, and having a general good
  2624. time. I told Jim all about what happened inside the wreck and at the
  2625. ferryboat, and I said these kinds of things was adventures; but he said
  2626. he didn't want no more adventures.  He said that when I went in the
  2627. texas and he crawled back to get on the raft and found her gone he
  2628. nearly died, because he judged it was all up with _him_ anyway it could
  2629. be fixed; for if he didn't get saved he would get drownded; and if he
  2630. did get saved, whoever saved him would send him back home so as to get
  2631. the reward, and then Miss Watson would sell him South, sure.  Well, he
  2632. was right; he was most always right; he had an uncommon level head for a
  2633. nigger.
  2634. I read considerable to Jim about kings and dukes and earls and such, and
  2635. how gaudy they dressed, and how much style they put on, and called each
  2636. other your majesty, and your grace, and your lordship, and so on, 'stead
  2637. of mister; and Jim's eyes bugged out, and he was interested.  He says:
  2638. “I didn' know dey was so many un um.  I hain't hearn 'bout none un um,
  2639. skasely, but ole King Sollermun, onless you counts dem kings dat's in a
  2640. pack er k'yards.  How much do a king git?”
  2641. “Get?”  I says; “why, they get a thousand dollars a month if they want
  2642. it; they can have just as much as they want; everything belongs to
  2643. them.”
  2644. “_Ain'_ dat gay?  En what dey got to do, Huck?”
  2645. “_They_ don't do nothing!  Why, how you talk! They just set around.”
  2646. “No; is dat so?”
  2647. “Of course it is.  They just set around--except, maybe, when there's a
  2648. war; then they go to the war.  But other times they just lazy around; or
  2649. go hawking--just hawking and sp--Sh!--d' you hear a noise?”
  2650. We skipped out and looked; but it warn't nothing but the flutter of a
  2651. steamboat's wheel away down, coming around the point; so we come back.
  2652. “Yes,” says I, “and other times, when things is dull, they fuss with the
  2653. parlyment; and if everybody don't go just so he whacks their heads off.
  2654. But mostly they hang round the harem.”
  2655. “Roun' de which?”
  2656. “Harem.”
  2657. “What's de harem?”
  2658. “The place where he keeps his wives.  Don't you know about the harem?
  2659. Solomon had one; he had about a million wives.”
  2660. “Why, yes, dat's so; I--I'd done forgot it.  A harem's a bo'd'n-house, I
  2661. reck'n.  Mos' likely dey has rackety times in de nussery.  En I reck'n
  2662. de wives quarrels considable; en dat 'crease de racket.  Yit dey say
  2663. Sollermun de wises' man dat ever live'.  I doan' take no stock in
  2664. dat. Bekase why: would a wise man want to live in de mids' er sich a
  2665. blim-blammin' all de time?  No--'deed he wouldn't.  A wise man 'ud take
  2666. en buil' a biler-factry; en den he could shet _down_ de biler-factry
  2667. when he want to res'.”
  2668. “Well, but he _was_ the wisest man, anyway; because the widow she told
  2669. me so, her own self.”
  2670. “I doan k'yer what de widder say, he _warn't_ no wise man nuther.  He
  2671. had some er de dad-fetchedes' ways I ever see.  Does you know 'bout dat
  2672. chile dat he 'uz gwyne to chop in two?”
  2673. “Yes, the widow told me all about it.”
  2674. “_Well_, den!  Warn' dat de beatenes' notion in de worl'?  You jes'
  2675. take en look at it a minute.  Dah's de stump, dah--dat's one er de women;
  2676. heah's you--dat's de yuther one; I's Sollermun; en dish yer dollar bill's
  2677. de chile.  Bofe un you claims it.  What does I do?  Does I shin aroun'
  2678. mongs' de neighbors en fine out which un you de bill _do_ b'long to, en
  2679. han' it over to de right one, all safe en soun', de way dat anybody dat
  2680. had any gumption would?  No; I take en whack de bill in _two_, en give
  2681. half un it to you, en de yuther half to de yuther woman.  Dat's de way
  2682. Sollermun was gwyne to do wid de chile.  Now I want to ast you:  what's
  2683. de use er dat half a bill?--can't buy noth'n wid it.  En what use is a
  2684. half a chile?  I wouldn' give a dern for a million un um.”
  2685. “But hang it, Jim, you've clean missed the point--blame it, you've missed
  2686. it a thousand mile.”
  2687. “Who?  Me?  Go 'long.  Doan' talk to me 'bout yo' pints.  I reck'n I
  2688. knows sense when I sees it; en dey ain' no sense in sich doin's as
  2689. dat. De 'spute warn't 'bout a half a chile, de 'spute was 'bout a whole
  2690. chile; en de man dat think he kin settle a 'spute 'bout a whole chile
  2691. wid a half a chile doan' know enough to come in out'n de rain.  Doan'
  2692. talk to me 'bout Sollermun, Huck, I knows him by de back.”
  2693. “But I tell you you don't get the point.”
  2694. “Blame de point!  I reck'n I knows what I knows.  En mine you, de _real_
  2695. pint is down furder--it's down deeper.  It lays in de way Sollermun was
  2696. raised.  You take a man dat's got on'y one or two chillen; is dat man
  2697. gwyne to be waseful o' chillen?  No, he ain't; he can't 'ford it.  _He_
  2698. know how to value 'em.  But you take a man dat's got 'bout five million
  2699. chillen runnin' roun' de house, en it's diffunt.  _He_ as soon chop a
  2700. chile in two as a cat. Dey's plenty mo'.  A chile er two, mo' er less,
  2701. warn't no consekens to Sollermun, dad fatch him!”
  2702. I never see such a nigger.  If he got a notion in his head once, there
  2703. warn't no getting it out again.  He was the most down on Solomon of
  2704. any nigger I ever see.  So I went to talking about other kings, and let
  2705. Solomon slide.  I told about Louis Sixteenth that got his head cut off
  2706. in France long time ago; and about his little boy the dolphin, that
  2707. would a been a king, but they took and shut him up in jail, and some say
  2708. he died there.
  2709. “Po' little chap.”
  2710. “But some says he got out and got away, and come to America.”
  2711. “Dat's good!  But he'll be pooty lonesome--dey ain' no kings here, is
  2712. dey, Huck?”
  2713. “No.”
  2714. “Den he cain't git no situation.  What he gwyne to do?”
  2715. “Well, I don't know.  Some of them gets on the police, and some of them
  2716. learns people how to talk French.”
  2717. “Why, Huck, doan' de French people talk de same way we does?”
  2718. “_No_, Jim; you couldn't understand a word they said--not a single word.”
  2719. “Well, now, I be ding-busted!  How do dat come?”
  2720. “I don't know; but it's so.  I got some of their jabber out of a book.
  2721. S'pose a man was to come to you and say Polly-voo-franzy--what would you
  2722. think?”
  2723. “I wouldn' think nuff'n; I'd take en bust him over de head--dat is, if he
  2724. warn't white.  I wouldn't 'low no nigger to call me dat.”
  2725. “Shucks, it ain't calling you anything.  It's only saying, do you know
  2726. how to talk French?”
  2727. “Well, den, why couldn't he _say_ it?”
  2728. “Why, he _is_ a-saying it.  That's a Frenchman's _way_ of saying it.”
  2729. “Well, it's a blame ridicklous way, en I doan' want to hear no mo' 'bout
  2730. it.  Dey ain' no sense in it.”
  2731. “Looky here, Jim; does a cat talk like we do?”
  2732. “No, a cat don't.”
  2733. “Well, does a cow?”
  2734. “No, a cow don't, nuther.”
  2735. “Does a cat talk like a cow, or a cow talk like a cat?”
  2736. “No, dey don't.”
  2737. “It's natural and right for 'em to talk different from each other, ain't
  2738. it?”
  2739. “Course.”
  2740. “And ain't it natural and right for a cat and a cow to talk different
  2741. from _us_?”
  2742. “Why, mos' sholy it is.”
  2743. “Well, then, why ain't it natural and right for a _Frenchman_ to talk
  2744. different from us?  You answer me that.”
  2745. “Is a cat a man, Huck?”
  2746. “No.”
  2747. “Well, den, dey ain't no sense in a cat talkin' like a man.  Is a cow a
  2748. man?--er is a cow a cat?”
  2749. “No, she ain't either of them.”
  2750. “Well, den, she ain't got no business to talk like either one er the
  2751. yuther of 'em.  Is a Frenchman a man?”
  2752. “Yes.”
  2753. “_Well_, den!  Dad blame it, why doan' he _talk_ like a man?  You answer
  2754. me _dat_!”
  2755. I see it warn't no use wasting words--you can't learn a nigger to argue.
  2756. So I quit.
  2757. CHAPTER XV.
  2758. WE judged that three nights more would fetch us to Cairo, at the bottom
  2759. of Illinois, where the Ohio River comes in, and that was what we was
  2760. after.  We would sell the raft and get on a steamboat and go way up the
  2761. Ohio amongst the free States, and then be out of trouble.
  2762. Well, the second night a fog begun to come on, and we made for a towhead
  2763. to tie to, for it wouldn't do to try to run in a fog; but when I paddled
  2764. ahead in the canoe, with the line to make fast, there warn't anything
  2765. but little saplings to tie to.  I passed the line around one of them
  2766. right on the edge of the cut bank, but there was a stiff current, and
  2767. the raft come booming down so lively she tore it out by the roots and
  2768. away she went.  I see the fog closing down, and it made me so sick and
  2769. scared I couldn't budge for most a half a minute it seemed to me--and
  2770. then there warn't no raft in sight; you couldn't see twenty yards.  I
  2771. jumped into the canoe and run back to the stern, and grabbed the paddle
  2772. and set her back a stroke.  But she didn't come.  I was in such a hurry
  2773. I hadn't untied her.  I got up and tried to untie her, but I was so
  2774. excited my hands shook so I couldn't hardly do anything with them.
  2775. As soon as I got started I took out after the raft, hot and heavy, right
  2776. down the towhead.  That was all right as far as it went, but the towhead
  2777. warn't sixty yards long, and the minute I flew by the foot of it I shot
  2778. out into the solid white fog, and hadn't no more idea which way I was
  2779. going than a dead man.
  2780. Thinks I, it won't do to paddle; first I know I'll run into the bank
  2781. or a towhead or something; I got to set still and float, and yet it's
  2782. mighty fidgety business to have to hold your hands still at such a time.
  2783.  I whooped and listened.  Away down there somewheres I hears a small
  2784. whoop, and up comes my spirits.  I went tearing after it, listening
  2785. sharp to hear it again.  The next time it come I see I warn't heading
  2786. for it, but heading away to the right of it.  And the next time I was
  2787. heading away to the left of it--and not gaining on it much either, for
  2788. I was flying around, this way and that and t'other, but it was going
  2789. straight ahead all the time.
  2790. I did wish the fool would think to beat a tin pan, and beat it all the
  2791. time, but he never did, and it was the still places between the whoops
  2792. that was making the trouble for me.  Well, I fought along, and directly
  2793. I hears the whoop _behind_ me.  I was tangled good now.  That was
  2794. somebody else's whoop, or else I was turned around.
  2795. I throwed the paddle down.  I heard the whoop again; it was behind me
  2796. yet, but in a different place; it kept coming, and kept changing its
  2797. place, and I kept answering, till by and by it was in front of me again,
  2798. and I knowed the current had swung the canoe's head down-stream, and I
  2799. was all right if that was Jim and not some other raftsman hollering.
  2800.  I couldn't tell nothing about voices in a fog, for nothing don't look
  2801. natural nor sound natural in a fog.
  2802. The whooping went on, and in about a minute I come a-booming down on a
  2803. cut bank with smoky ghosts of big trees on it, and the current throwed
  2804. me off to the left and shot by, amongst a lot of snags that fairly
  2805. roared, the currrent was tearing by them so swift.
  2806. In another second or two it was solid white and still again.  I set
  2807. perfectly still then, listening to my heart thump, and I reckon I didn't
  2808. draw a breath while it thumped a hundred.
  2809. I just give up then.  I knowed what the matter was.  That cut bank
  2810. was an island, and Jim had gone down t'other side of it.  It warn't no
  2811. towhead that you could float by in ten minutes.  It had the big timber
  2812. of a regular island; it might be five or six miles long and more than
  2813. half a mile wide.
  2814. I kept quiet, with my ears cocked, about fifteen minutes, I reckon.  I
  2815. was floating along, of course, four or five miles an hour; but you don't
  2816. ever think of that.  No, you _feel_ like you are laying dead still on
  2817. the water; and if a little glimpse of a snag slips by you don't think to
  2818. yourself how fast _you're_ going, but you catch your breath and think,
  2819. my! how that snag's tearing along.  If you think it ain't dismal and
  2820. lonesome out in a fog that way by yourself in the night, you try it
  2821. once--you'll see.
  2822. Next, for about a half an hour, I whoops now and then; at last I hears
  2823. the answer a long ways off, and tries to follow it, but I couldn't do
  2824. it, and directly I judged I'd got into a nest of towheads, for I had
  2825. little dim glimpses of them on both sides of me--sometimes just a narrow
  2826. channel between, and some that I couldn't see I knowed was there because
  2827. I'd hear the wash of the current against the old dead brush and trash
  2828. that hung over the banks.  Well, I warn't long loosing the whoops down
  2829. amongst the towheads; and I only tried to chase them a little while,
  2830. anyway, because it was worse than chasing a Jack-o'-lantern.  You never
  2831. knowed a sound dodge around so, and swap places so quick and so much.
  2832. I had to claw away from the bank pretty lively four or five times, to
  2833. keep from knocking the islands out of the river; and so I judged the
  2834. raft must be butting into the bank every now and then, or else it would
  2835. get further ahead and clear out of hearing--it was floating a little
  2836. faster than what I was.
  2837. Well, I seemed to be in the open river again by and by, but I couldn't
  2838. hear no sign of a whoop nowheres.  I reckoned Jim had fetched up on a
  2839. snag, maybe, and it was all up with him.  I was good and tired, so I
  2840. laid down in the canoe and said I wouldn't bother no more.  I didn't
  2841. want to go to sleep, of course; but I was so sleepy I couldn't help it;
  2842. so I thought I would take jest one little cat-nap.
  2843. But I reckon it was more than a cat-nap, for when I waked up the stars
  2844. was shining bright, the fog was all gone, and I was spinning down a
  2845. big bend stern first.  First I didn't know where I was; I thought I was
  2846. dreaming; and when things began to come back to me they seemed to come
  2847. up dim out of last week.
  2848. It was a monstrous big river here, with the tallest and the thickest
  2849. kind of timber on both banks; just a solid wall, as well as I could see
  2850. by the stars.  I looked away down-stream, and seen a black speck on the
  2851. water. I took after it; but when I got to it it warn't nothing but a
  2852. couple of sawlogs made fast together.  Then I see another speck, and
  2853. chased that; then another, and this time I was right.  It was the raft.
  2854. When I got to it Jim was setting there with his head down between his
  2855. knees, asleep, with his right arm hanging over the steering-oar.  The
  2856. other oar was smashed off, and the raft was littered up with leaves and
  2857. branches and dirt.  So she'd had a rough time.
  2858. I made fast and laid down under Jim's nose on the raft, and began to
  2859. gap, and stretch my fists out against Jim, and says:
  2860. “Hello, Jim, have I been asleep?  Why didn't you stir me up?”
  2861. “Goodness gracious, is dat you, Huck?  En you ain' dead--you ain'
  2862. drownded--you's back agin?  It's too good for true, honey, it's too good
  2863. for true. Lemme look at you chile, lemme feel o' you.  No, you ain'
  2864. dead! you's back agin, 'live en soun', jis de same ole Huck--de same ole
  2865. Huck, thanks to goodness!”
  2866. “What's the matter with you, Jim?  You been a-drinking?”
  2867. “Drinkin'?  Has I ben a-drinkin'?  Has I had a chance to be a-drinkin'?”
  2868. “Well, then, what makes you talk so wild?”
  2869. “How does I talk wild?”
  2870. “_How_?  Why, hain't you been talking about my coming back, and all that
  2871. stuff, as if I'd been gone away?”
  2872. “Huck--Huck Finn, you look me in de eye; look me in de eye.  _Hain't_ you
  2873. ben gone away?”
  2874. “Gone away?  Why, what in the nation do you mean?  I hain't been gone
  2875. anywheres.  Where would I go to?”
  2876. “Well, looky here, boss, dey's sumf'n wrong, dey is.  Is I _me_, or who
  2877. _is_ I? Is I heah, or whah _is_ I?  Now dat's what I wants to know.”
  2878. “Well, I think you're here, plain enough, but I think you're a
  2879. tangle-headed old fool, Jim.”
  2880. “I is, is I?  Well, you answer me dis:  Didn't you tote out de line in
  2881. de canoe fer to make fas' to de tow-head?”
  2882. “No, I didn't.  What tow-head?  I hain't see no tow-head.”
  2883. “You hain't seen no towhead?  Looky here, didn't de line pull loose en
  2884. de raf' go a-hummin' down de river, en leave you en de canoe behine in
  2885. de fog?”
  2886. “What fog?”
  2887. “Why, de fog!--de fog dat's been aroun' all night.  En didn't you whoop,
  2888. en didn't I whoop, tell we got mix' up in de islands en one un us got
  2889. los' en t'other one was jis' as good as los', 'kase he didn' know whah
  2890. he wuz? En didn't I bust up agin a lot er dem islands en have a turrible
  2891. time en mos' git drownded?  Now ain' dat so, boss--ain't it so?  You
  2892. answer me dat.”
  2893. “Well, this is too many for me, Jim.  I hain't seen no fog, nor no
  2894. islands, nor no troubles, nor nothing.  I been setting here talking with
  2895. you all night till you went to sleep about ten minutes ago, and I reckon
  2896. I done the same.  You couldn't a got drunk in that time, so of course
  2897. you've been dreaming.”
  2898. “Dad fetch it, how is I gwyne to dream all dat in ten minutes?”
  2899. “Well, hang it all, you did dream it, because there didn't any of it
  2900. happen.”
  2901. “But, Huck, it's all jis' as plain to me as--”
  2902. “It don't make no difference how plain it is; there ain't nothing in it.
  2903. I know, because I've been here all the time.”
  2904. Jim didn't say nothing for about five minutes, but set there studying
  2905. over it.  Then he says:
  2906. “Well, den, I reck'n I did dream it, Huck; but dog my cats ef it ain't
  2907. de powerfullest dream I ever see.  En I hain't ever had no dream b'fo'
  2908. dat's tired me like dis one.”
  2909. “Oh, well, that's all right, because a dream does tire a body like
  2910. everything sometimes.  But this one was a staving dream; tell me all
  2911. about it, Jim.”
  2912. So Jim went to work and told me the whole thing right through, just as
  2913. it happened, only he painted it up considerable.  Then he said he must
  2914. start in and “'terpret” it, because it was sent for a warning.  He said
  2915. the first towhead stood for a man that would try to do us some good, but
  2916. the current was another man that would get us away from him.  The whoops
  2917. was warnings that would come to us every now and then, and if we didn't
  2918. try hard to make out to understand them they'd just take us into bad
  2919. luck, 'stead of keeping us out of it.  The lot of towheads was troubles
  2920. we was going to get into with quarrelsome people and all kinds of mean
  2921. folks, but if we minded our business and didn't talk back and aggravate
  2922. them, we would pull through and get out of the fog and into the big
  2923. clear river, which was the free States, and wouldn't have no more
  2924. trouble.
  2925. It had clouded up pretty dark just after I got on to the raft, but it
  2926. was clearing up again now.
  2927. “Oh, well, that's all interpreted well enough as far as it goes, Jim,” I
  2928. says; “but what does _these_ things stand for?”
  2929. It was the leaves and rubbish on the raft and the smashed oar.  You
  2930. could see them first-rate now.
  2931. Jim looked at the trash, and then looked at me, and back at the trash
  2932. again.  He had got the dream fixed so strong in his head that he
  2933. couldn't seem to shake it loose and get the facts back into its place
  2934. again right away.  But when he did get the thing straightened around he
  2935. looked at me steady without ever smiling, and says:
  2936. “What do dey stan' for?  I'se gwyne to tell you.  When I got all wore
  2937. out wid work, en wid de callin' for you, en went to sleep, my heart wuz
  2938. mos' broke bekase you wuz los', en I didn' k'yer no' mo' what become
  2939. er me en de raf'.  En when I wake up en fine you back agin, all safe
  2940. en soun', de tears come, en I could a got down on my knees en kiss yo'
  2941. foot, I's so thankful. En all you wuz thinkin' 'bout wuz how you could
  2942. make a fool uv ole Jim wid a lie.  Dat truck dah is _trash_; en trash
  2943. is what people is dat puts dirt on de head er dey fren's en makes 'em
  2944. ashamed.”
  2945. Then he got up slow and walked to the wigwam, and went in there without
  2946. saying anything but that.  But that was enough.  It made me feel so mean
  2947. I could almost kissed _his_ foot to get him to take it back.
  2948. It was fifteen minutes before I could work myself up to go and humble
  2949. myself to a nigger; but I done it, and I warn't ever sorry for it
  2950. afterwards, neither.  I didn't do him no more mean tricks, and I
  2951. wouldn't done that one if I'd a knowed it would make him feel that way.
  2952. CHAPTER XVI.
  2953. WE slept most all day, and started out at night, a little ways behind a
  2954. monstrous long raft that was as long going by as a procession.  She had
  2955. four long sweeps at each end, so we judged she carried as many as thirty
  2956. men, likely.  She had five big wigwams aboard, wide apart, and an open
  2957. camp fire in the middle, and a tall flag-pole at each end.  There was a
  2958. power of style about her.  It _amounted_ to something being a raftsman
  2959. on such a craft as that.
  2960. We went drifting down into a big bend, and the night clouded up and got
  2961. hot.  The river was very wide, and was walled with solid timber on
  2962. both sides; you couldn't see a break in it hardly ever, or a light.  We
  2963. talked about Cairo, and wondered whether we would know it when we got to
  2964. it.  I said likely we wouldn't, because I had heard say there warn't but
  2965. about a dozen houses there, and if they didn't happen to have them lit
  2966. up, how was we going to know we was passing a town?  Jim said if the two
  2967. big rivers joined together there, that would show.  But I said maybe
  2968. we might think we was passing the foot of an island and coming into the
  2969. same old river again. That disturbed Jim--and me too.  So the question
  2970. was, what to do?  I said, paddle ashore the first time a light showed,
  2971. and tell them pap was behind, coming along with a trading-scow, and
  2972. was a green hand at the business, and wanted to know how far it was to
  2973. Cairo.  Jim thought it was a good idea, so we took a smoke on it and
  2974. waited.
  2975. There warn't nothing to do now but to look out sharp for the town, and
  2976. not pass it without seeing it.  He said he'd be mighty sure to see it,
  2977. because he'd be a free man the minute he seen it, but if he missed it
  2978. he'd be in a slave country again and no more show for freedom.  Every
  2979. little while he jumps up and says:
  2980. “Dah she is?”
  2981. But it warn't.  It was Jack-o'-lanterns, or lightning bugs; so he set
  2982. down again, and went to watching, same as before.  Jim said it made him
  2983. all over trembly and feverish to be so close to freedom.  Well, I can
  2984. tell you it made me all over trembly and feverish, too, to hear him,
  2985. because I begun to get it through my head that he _was_ most free--and
  2986. who was to blame for it?  Why, _me_.  I couldn't get that out of my
  2987. conscience, no how nor no way. It got to troubling me so I couldn't
  2988. rest; I couldn't stay still in one place.  It hadn't ever come home to
  2989. me before, what this thing was that I was doing.  But now it did; and it
  2990. stayed with me, and scorched me more and more.  I tried to make out to
  2991. myself that I warn't to blame, because I didn't run Jim off from his
  2992. rightful owner; but it warn't no use, conscience up and says, every
  2993. time, “But you knowed he was running for his freedom, and you could a
  2994. paddled ashore and told somebody.”  That was so--I couldn't get around
  2995. that noway.  That was where it pinched.  Conscience says to me, “What
  2996. had poor Miss Watson done to you that you could see her nigger go off
  2997. right under your eyes and never say one single word?  What did that poor
  2998. old woman do to you that you could treat her so mean?  Why, she tried to
  2999. learn you your book, she tried to learn you your manners, she tried to
  3000. be good to you every way she knowed how.  _That's_ what she done.”
  3001. I got to feeling so mean and so miserable I most wished I was dead.  I
  3002. fidgeted up and down the raft, abusing myself to myself, and Jim was
  3003. fidgeting up and down past me.  We neither of us could keep still.
  3004.  Every time he danced around and says, “Dah's Cairo!” it went through me
  3005. like a shot, and I thought if it _was_ Cairo I reckoned I would die of
  3006. miserableness.
  3007. Jim talked out loud all the time while I was talking to myself.  He was
  3008. saying how the first thing he would do when he got to a free State he
  3009. would go to saving up money and never spend a single cent, and when he
  3010. got enough he would buy his wife, which was owned on a farm close to
  3011. where Miss Watson lived; and then they would both work to buy the
  3012. two children, and if their master wouldn't sell them, they'd get an
  3013. Ab'litionist to go and steal them.
  3014. It most froze me to hear such talk.  He wouldn't ever dared to talk such
  3015. talk in his life before.  Just see what a difference it made in him the
  3016. minute he judged he was about free.  It was according to the old saying,
  3017. “Give a nigger an inch and he'll take an ell.”  Thinks I, this is what
  3018. comes of my not thinking.  Here was this nigger, which I had as good
  3019. as helped to run away, coming right out flat-footed and saying he would
  3020. steal his children--children that belonged to a man I didn't even know; a
  3021. man that hadn't ever done me no harm.
  3022. I was sorry to hear Jim say that, it was such a lowering of him.  My
  3023. conscience got to stirring me up hotter than ever, until at last I says
  3024. to it, “Let up on me--it ain't too late yet--I'll paddle ashore at the
  3025. first light and tell.”  I felt easy and happy and light as a feather
  3026. right off.  All my troubles was gone.  I went to looking out sharp for a
  3027. light, and sort of singing to myself.  By and by one showed.  Jim sings
  3028. out:
  3029. “We's safe, Huck, we's safe!  Jump up and crack yo' heels!  Dat's de
  3030. good ole Cairo at las', I jis knows it!”
  3031. I says:
  3032. “I'll take the canoe and go and see, Jim.  It mightn't be, you know.”
  3033. He jumped and got the canoe ready, and put his old coat in the bottom
  3034. for me to set on, and give me the paddle; and as I shoved off, he says:
  3035. “Pooty soon I'll be a-shout'n' for joy, en I'll say, it's all on
  3036. accounts o' Huck; I's a free man, en I couldn't ever ben free ef it
  3037. hadn' ben for Huck; Huck done it.  Jim won't ever forgit you, Huck;
  3038. you's de bes' fren' Jim's ever had; en you's de _only_ fren' ole Jim's
  3039. got now.”
  3040. I was paddling off, all in a sweat to tell on him; but when he says
  3041. this, it seemed to kind of take the tuck all out of me.  I went along
  3042. slow then, and I warn't right down certain whether I was glad I started
  3043. or whether I warn't.  When I was fifty yards off, Jim says:
  3044. “Dah you goes, de ole true Huck; de on'y white genlman dat ever kep' his
  3045. promise to ole Jim.”
  3046. Well, I just felt sick.  But I says, I _got_ to do it--I can't get _out_
  3047. of it.  Right then along comes a skiff with two men in it with guns, and
  3048. they stopped and I stopped.  One of them says:
  3049. “What's that yonder?”
  3050. “A piece of a raft,” I says.
  3051. “Do you belong on it?”
  3052. “Yes, sir.”
  3053. “Any men on it?”
  3054. “Only one, sir.”
  3055. “Well, there's five niggers run off to-night up yonder, above the head
  3056. of the bend.  Is your man white or black?”
  3057. I didn't answer up prompt.  I tried to, but the words wouldn't come. I
  3058. tried for a second or two to brace up and out with it, but I warn't man
  3059. enough--hadn't the spunk of a rabbit.  I see I was weakening; so I just
  3060. give up trying, and up and says:
  3061. “He's white.”
  3062. “I reckon we'll go and see for ourselves.”
  3063. “I wish you would,” says I, “because it's pap that's there, and maybe
  3064. you'd help me tow the raft ashore where the light is.  He's sick--and so
  3065. is mam and Mary Ann.”
  3066. “Oh, the devil! we're in a hurry, boy.  But I s'pose we've got to.
  3067.  Come, buckle to your paddle, and let's get along.”
  3068. I buckled to my paddle and they laid to their oars.  When we had made a
  3069. stroke or two, I says:
  3070. “Pap'll be mighty much obleeged to you, I can tell you.  Everybody goes
  3071. away when I want them to help me tow the raft ashore, and I can't do it
  3072. by myself.”
  3073. “Well, that's infernal mean.  Odd, too.  Say, boy, what's the matter
  3074. with your father?”
  3075. “It's the--a--the--well, it ain't anything much.”
  3076. They stopped pulling.  It warn't but a mighty little ways to the raft
  3077. now. One says:
  3078. “Boy, that's a lie.  What _is_ the matter with your pap?  Answer up
  3079. square now, and it'll be the better for you.”
  3080. “I will, sir, I will, honest--but don't leave us, please.  It's
  3081. the--the--Gentlemen, if you'll only pull ahead, and let me heave you the
  3082. headline, you won't have to come a-near the raft--please do.”
  3083. “Set her back, John, set her back!” says one.  They backed water. “Keep
  3084. away, boy--keep to looard.  Confound it, I just expect the wind has
  3085. blowed it to us.  Your pap's got the small-pox, and you know it precious
  3086. well.  Why didn't you come out and say so?  Do you want to spread it all
  3087. over?”
  3088. “Well,” says I, a-blubbering, “I've told everybody before, and they just
  3089. went away and left us.”
  3090. “Poor devil, there's something in that.  We are right down sorry for
  3091. you, but we--well, hang it, we don't want the small-pox, you see.  Look
  3092. here, I'll tell you what to do.  Don't you try to land by yourself, or
  3093. you'll smash everything to pieces.  You float along down about twenty
  3094. miles, and you'll come to a town on the left-hand side of the river.  It
  3095. will be long after sun-up then, and when you ask for help you tell them
  3096. your folks are all down with chills and fever.  Don't be a fool again,
  3097. and let people guess what is the matter.  Now we're trying to do you a
  3098. kindness; so you just put twenty miles between us, that's a good boy.
  3099.  It wouldn't do any good to land yonder where the light is--it's only a
  3100. wood-yard. Say, I reckon your father's poor, and I'm bound to say he's
  3101. in pretty hard luck.  Here, I'll put a twenty-dollar gold piece on this
  3102. board, and you get it when it floats by.  I feel mighty mean to leave
  3103. you; but my kingdom! it won't do to fool with small-pox, don't you see?”
  3104. “Hold on, Parker,” says the other man, “here's a twenty to put on the
  3105. board for me.  Good-bye, boy; you do as Mr. Parker told you, and you'll
  3106. be all right.”
  3107. “That's so, my boy--good-bye, good-bye.  If you see any runaway niggers
  3108. you get help and nab them, and you can make some money by it.”
  3109. “Good-bye, sir,” says I; “I won't let no runaway niggers get by me if I
  3110. can help it.”
  3111. They went off and I got aboard the raft, feeling bad and low, because I
  3112. knowed very well I had done wrong, and I see it warn't no use for me
  3113. to try to learn to do right; a body that don't get _started_ right when
  3114. he's little ain't got no show--when the pinch comes there ain't nothing
  3115. to back him up and keep him to his work, and so he gets beat.  Then I
  3116. thought a minute, and says to myself, hold on; s'pose you'd a done right
  3117. and give Jim up, would you felt better than what you do now?  No, says
  3118. I, I'd feel bad--I'd feel just the same way I do now.  Well, then, says
  3119. I, what's the use you learning to do right when it's troublesome to do
  3120. right and ain't no trouble to do wrong, and the wages is just the same?
  3121.  I was stuck.  I couldn't answer that.  So I reckoned I wouldn't bother
  3122. no more about it, but after this always do whichever come handiest at
  3123. the time.
  3124. I went into the wigwam; Jim warn't there.  I looked all around; he
  3125. warn't anywhere.  I says:
  3126. “Jim!”
  3127. “Here I is, Huck.  Is dey out o' sight yit?  Don't talk loud.”
  3128. He was in the river under the stern oar, with just his nose out.  I told
  3129. him they were out of sight, so he come aboard.  He says:
  3130. “I was a-listenin' to all de talk, en I slips into de river en was gwyne
  3131. to shove for sho' if dey come aboard.  Den I was gwyne to swim to de
  3132. raf' agin when dey was gone.  But lawsy, how you did fool 'em, Huck!
  3133.  Dat _wuz_ de smartes' dodge!  I tell you, chile, I'spec it save' ole
  3134. Jim--ole Jim ain't going to forgit you for dat, honey.”
  3135. Then we talked about the money.  It was a pretty good raise--twenty
  3136. dollars apiece.  Jim said we could take deck passage on a steamboat
  3137. now, and the money would last us as far as we wanted to go in the free
  3138. States. He said twenty mile more warn't far for the raft to go, but he
  3139. wished we was already there.
  3140. Towards daybreak we tied up, and Jim was mighty particular about hiding
  3141. the raft good.  Then he worked all day fixing things in bundles, and
  3142. getting all ready to quit rafting.
  3143. That night about ten we hove in sight of the lights of a town away down
  3144. in a left-hand bend.
  3145. I went off in the canoe to ask about it.  Pretty soon I found a man out
  3146. in the river with a skiff, setting a trot-line.  I ranged up and says:
  3147. “Mister, is that town Cairo?”
  3148. “Cairo? no.  You must be a blame' fool.”
  3149. “What town is it, mister?”
  3150. “If you want to know, go and find out.  If you stay here botherin'
  3151. around me for about a half a minute longer you'll get something you
  3152. won't want.”
  3153. I paddled to the raft.  Jim was awful disappointed, but I said never
  3154. mind, Cairo would be the next place, I reckoned.
  3155. We passed another town before daylight, and I was going out again; but
  3156. it was high ground, so I didn't go.  No high ground about Cairo, Jim
  3157. said. I had forgot it.  We laid up for the day on a towhead tolerable
  3158. close to the left-hand bank.  I begun to suspicion something.  So did
  3159. Jim.  I says:
  3160. “Maybe we went by Cairo in the fog that night.”
  3161. He says:
  3162. “Doan' le's talk about it, Huck.  Po' niggers can't have no luck.  I
  3163. awluz 'spected dat rattlesnake-skin warn't done wid its work.”
  3164. “I wish I'd never seen that snake-skin, Jim--I do wish I'd never laid
  3165. eyes on it.”
  3166. “It ain't yo' fault, Huck; you didn' know.  Don't you blame yo'self
  3167. 'bout it.”
  3168. When it was daylight, here was the clear Ohio water inshore, sure
  3169. enough, and outside was the old regular Muddy!  So it was all up with
  3170. Cairo.
  3171. We talked it all over.  It wouldn't do to take to the shore; we couldn't
  3172. take the raft up the stream, of course.  There warn't no way but to wait
  3173. for dark, and start back in the canoe and take the chances.  So we slept
  3174. all day amongst the cottonwood thicket, so as to be fresh for the work,
  3175. and when we went back to the raft about dark the canoe was gone!
  3176. We didn't say a word for a good while.  There warn't anything to
  3177. say.  We both knowed well enough it was some more work of the
  3178. rattlesnake-skin; so what was the use to talk about it?  It would only
  3179. look like we was finding fault, and that would be bound to fetch more
  3180. bad luck--and keep on fetching it, too, till we knowed enough to keep
  3181. still.
  3182. By and by we talked about what we better do, and found there warn't no
  3183. way but just to go along down with the raft till we got a chance to buy
  3184. a canoe to go back in.  We warn't going to borrow it when there warn't
  3185. anybody around, the way pap would do, for that might set people after
  3186. us.
  3187. So we shoved out after dark on the raft.
  3188. Anybody that don't believe yet that it's foolishness to handle a
  3189. snake-skin, after all that that snake-skin done for us, will believe it
  3190. now if they read on and see what more it done for us.
  3191. The place to buy canoes is off of rafts laying up at shore.  But we
  3192. didn't see no rafts laying up; so we went along during three hours and
  3193. more.  Well, the night got gray and ruther thick, which is the next
  3194. meanest thing to fog.  You can't tell the shape of the river, and you
  3195. can't see no distance. It got to be very late and still, and then along
  3196. comes a steamboat up the river.  We lit the lantern, and judged she
  3197. would see it.  Up-stream boats didn't generly come close to us; they
  3198. go out and follow the bars and hunt for easy water under the reefs; but
  3199. nights like this they bull right up the channel against the whole river.
  3200. We could hear her pounding along, but we didn't see her good till she
  3201. was close.  She aimed right for us.  Often they do that and try to see
  3202. how close they can come without touching; sometimes the wheel bites off
  3203. a sweep, and then the pilot sticks his head out and laughs, and thinks
  3204. he's mighty smart.  Well, here she comes, and we said she was going to
  3205. try and shave us; but she didn't seem to be sheering off a bit.  She
  3206. was a big one, and she was coming in a hurry, too, looking like a black
  3207. cloud with rows of glow-worms around it; but all of a sudden she bulged
  3208. out, big and scary, with a long row of wide-open furnace doors shining
  3209. like red-hot teeth, and her monstrous bows and guards hanging right
  3210. over us.  There was a yell at us, and a jingling of bells to stop the
  3211. engines, a powwow of cussing, and whistling of steam--and as Jim went
  3212. overboard on one side and I on the other, she come smashing straight
  3213. through the raft.
  3214. I dived--and I aimed to find the bottom, too, for a thirty-foot wheel
  3215. had got to go over me, and I wanted it to have plenty of room.  I could
  3216. always stay under water a minute; this time I reckon I stayed under a
  3217. minute and a half.  Then I bounced for the top in a hurry, for I was
  3218. nearly busting.  I popped out to my armpits and blowed the water out of
  3219. my nose, and puffed a bit.  Of course there was a booming current; and
  3220. of course that boat started her engines again ten seconds after she
  3221. stopped them, for they never cared much for raftsmen; so now she was
  3222. churning along up the river, out of sight in the thick weather, though I
  3223. could hear her.
  3224. I sung out for Jim about a dozen times, but I didn't get any answer;
  3225. so I grabbed a plank that touched me while I was “treading water,” and
  3226. struck out for shore, shoving it ahead of me.  But I made out to see
  3227. that the drift of the current was towards the left-hand shore, which
  3228. meant that I was in a crossing; so I changed off and went that way.
  3229. It was one of these long, slanting, two-mile crossings; so I was a good
  3230. long time in getting over.  I made a safe landing, and clumb up the
  3231. bank. I couldn't see but a little ways, but I went poking along over
  3232. rough ground for a quarter of a mile or more, and then I run across a
  3233. big old-fashioned double log-house before I noticed it.  I was going to
  3234. rush by and get away, but a lot of dogs jumped out and went to howling
  3235. and barking at me, and I knowed better than to move another peg.
  3236. CHAPTER XVII.
  3237. IN about a minute somebody spoke out of a window without putting his
  3238. head out, and says:
  3239. “Be done, boys!  Who's there?”
  3240. I says:
  3241. “It's me.”
  3242. “Who's me?”
  3243. “George Jackson, sir.”
  3244. “What do you want?”
  3245. “I don't want nothing, sir.  I only want to go along by, but the dogs
  3246. won't let me.”
  3247. “What are you prowling around here this time of night for--hey?”
  3248. “I warn't prowling around, sir, I fell overboard off of the steamboat.”
  3249. “Oh, you did, did you?  Strike a light there, somebody.  What did you
  3250. say your name was?”
  3251. “George Jackson, sir.  I'm only a boy.”
  3252. “Look here, if you're telling the truth you needn't be afraid--nobody'll
  3253. hurt you.  But don't try to budge; stand right where you are.  Rouse out
  3254. Bob and Tom, some of you, and fetch the guns.  George Jackson, is there
  3255. anybody with you?”
  3256. “No, sir, nobody.”
  3257. I heard the people stirring around in the house now, and see a light.
  3258. The man sung out:
  3259. “Snatch that light away, Betsy, you old fool--ain't you got any sense?
  3260. Put it on the floor behind the front door.  Bob, if you and Tom are
  3261. ready, take your places.”
  3262. “All ready.”
  3263. “Now, George Jackson, do you know the Shepherdsons?”
  3264. “No, sir; I never heard of them.”
  3265. “Well, that may be so, and it mayn't.  Now, all ready.  Step forward,
  3266. George Jackson.  And mind, don't you hurry--come mighty slow.  If there's
  3267. anybody with you, let him keep back--if he shows himself he'll be shot.
  3268. Come along now.  Come slow; push the door open yourself--just enough to
  3269. squeeze in, d' you hear?”
  3270. I didn't hurry; I couldn't if I'd a wanted to.  I took one slow step at
  3271. a time and there warn't a sound, only I thought I could hear my heart.
  3272.  The dogs were as still as the humans, but they followed a little behind
  3273. me. When I got to the three log doorsteps I heard them unlocking and
  3274. unbarring and unbolting.  I put my hand on the door and pushed it a
  3275. little and a little more till somebody said, “There, that's enough--put
  3276. your head in.” I done it, but I judged they would take it off.
  3277. The candle was on the floor, and there they all was, looking at me, and
  3278. me at them, for about a quarter of a minute:  Three big men with guns
  3279. pointed at me, which made me wince, I tell you; the oldest, gray
  3280. and about sixty, the other two thirty or more--all of them fine and
  3281. handsome--and the sweetest old gray-headed lady, and back of her two
  3282. young women which I couldn't see right well.  The old gentleman says:
  3283. “There; I reckon it's all right.  Come in.”
  3284. As soon as I was in the old gentleman he locked the door and barred it
  3285. and bolted it, and told the young men to come in with their guns, and
  3286. they all went in a big parlor that had a new rag carpet on the floor,
  3287. and got together in a corner that was out of the range of the front
  3288. windows--there warn't none on the side.  They held the candle, and took a
  3289. good look at me, and all said, “Why, _he_ ain't a Shepherdson--no, there
  3290. ain't any Shepherdson about him.”  Then the old man said he hoped I
  3291. wouldn't mind being searched for arms, because he didn't mean no harm by
  3292. it--it was only to make sure.  So he didn't pry into my pockets, but only
  3293. felt outside with his hands, and said it was all right.  He told me to
  3294. make myself easy and at home, and tell all about myself; but the old
  3295. lady says:
  3296. “Why, bless you, Saul, the poor thing's as wet as he can be; and don't
  3297. you reckon it may be he's hungry?”
  3298. “True for you, Rachel--I forgot.”
  3299. So the old lady says:
  3300. “Betsy” (this was a nigger woman), “you fly around and get him something
  3301. to eat as quick as you can, poor thing; and one of you girls go and wake
  3302. up Buck and tell him--oh, here he is himself.  Buck, take this little
  3303. stranger and get the wet clothes off from him and dress him up in some
  3304. of yours that's dry.”
  3305. Buck looked about as old as me--thirteen or fourteen or along there,
  3306. though he was a little bigger than me.  He hadn't on anything but a
  3307. shirt, and he was very frowzy-headed.  He came in gaping and digging one
  3308. fist into his eyes, and he was dragging a gun along with the other one.
  3309. He says:
  3310. “Ain't they no Shepherdsons around?”
  3311. They said, no, 'twas a false alarm.
  3312. “Well,” he says, “if they'd a ben some, I reckon I'd a got one.”
  3313. They all laughed, and Bob says:
  3314. “Why, Buck, they might have scalped us all, you've been so slow in
  3315. coming.”
  3316. “Well, nobody come after me, and it ain't right I'm always kept down; I
  3317. don't get no show.”
  3318. “Never mind, Buck, my boy,” says the old man, “you'll have show enough,
  3319. all in good time, don't you fret about that.  Go 'long with you now, and
  3320. do as your mother told you.”
  3321. When we got up-stairs to his room he got me a coarse shirt and a
  3322. roundabout and pants of his, and I put them on.  While I was at it he
  3323. asked me what my name was, but before I could tell him he started to
  3324. tell me about a bluejay and a young rabbit he had catched in the woods
  3325. day before yesterday, and he asked me where Moses was when the candle
  3326. went out.  I said I didn't know; I hadn't heard about it before, no way.
  3327. “Well, guess,” he says.
  3328. “How'm I going to guess,” says I, “when I never heard tell of it
  3329. before?”
  3330. “But you can guess, can't you?  It's just as easy.”
  3331. “_Which_ candle?”  I says.
  3332. “Why, any candle,” he says.
  3333. “I don't know where he was,” says I; “where was he?”
  3334. “Why, he was in the _dark_!  That's where he was!”
  3335. “Well, if you knowed where he was, what did you ask me for?”
  3336. “Why, blame it, it's a riddle, don't you see?  Say, how long are you
  3337. going to stay here?  You got to stay always.  We can just have booming
  3338. times--they don't have no school now.  Do you own a dog?  I've got a
  3339. dog--and he'll go in the river and bring out chips that you throw in.  Do
  3340. you like to comb up Sundays, and all that kind of foolishness?  You bet
  3341. I don't, but ma she makes me.  Confound these ole britches!  I reckon
  3342. I'd better put 'em on, but I'd ruther not, it's so warm.  Are you all
  3343. ready? All right.  Come along, old hoss.”
  3344. Cold corn-pone, cold corn-beef, butter and buttermilk--that is what they
  3345. had for me down there, and there ain't nothing better that ever I've
  3346. come across yet.  Buck and his ma and all of them smoked cob pipes,
  3347. except the nigger woman, which was gone, and the two young women.  They
  3348. all smoked and talked, and I eat and talked.  The young women had
  3349. quilts around them, and their hair down their backs.  They all asked me
  3350. questions, and I told them how pap and me and all the family was living
  3351. on a little farm down at the bottom of Arkansaw, and my sister Mary Ann
  3352. run off and got married and never was heard of no more, and Bill went
  3353. to hunt them and he warn't heard of no more, and Tom and Mort died,
  3354. and then there warn't nobody but just me and pap left, and he was just
  3355. trimmed down to nothing, on account of his troubles; so when he died
  3356. I took what there was left, because the farm didn't belong to us, and
  3357. started up the river, deck passage, and fell overboard; and that was how
  3358. I come to be here.  So they said I could have a home there as long as I
  3359. wanted it.  Then it was most daylight and everybody went to bed, and I
  3360. went to bed with Buck, and when I waked up in the morning, drat it all,
  3361. I had forgot what my name was. So I laid there about an hour trying to
  3362. think, and when Buck waked up I says:
  3363. “Can you spell, Buck?”
  3364. “Yes,” he says.
  3365. “I bet you can't spell my name,” says I.
  3366. “I bet you what you dare I can,” says he.
  3367. “All right,” says I, “go ahead.”
  3368. “G-e-o-r-g-e J-a-x-o-n--there now,” he says.
  3369. “Well,” says I, “you done it, but I didn't think you could.  It ain't no
  3370. slouch of a name to spell--right off without studying.”
  3371. I set it down, private, because somebody might want _me_ to spell it
  3372. next, and so I wanted to be handy with it and rattle it off like I was
  3373. used to it.
  3374. It was a mighty nice family, and a mighty nice house, too.  I hadn't
  3375. seen no house out in the country before that was so nice and had so much
  3376. style.  It didn't have an iron latch on the front door, nor a wooden one
  3377. with a buckskin string, but a brass knob to turn, the same as houses in
  3378. town. There warn't no bed in the parlor, nor a sign of a bed; but heaps
  3379. of parlors in towns has beds in them.  There was a big fireplace that
  3380. was bricked on the bottom, and the bricks was kept clean and red by
  3381. pouring water on them and scrubbing them with another brick; sometimes
  3382. they wash them over with red water-paint that they call Spanish-brown,
  3383. same as they do in town.  They had big brass dog-irons that could hold
  3384. up a saw-log. There was a clock on the middle of the mantelpiece, with
  3385. a picture of a town painted on the bottom half of the glass front, and
  3386. a round place in the middle of it for the sun, and you could see the
  3387. pendulum swinging behind it.  It was beautiful to hear that clock tick;
  3388. and sometimes when one of these peddlers had been along and scoured her
  3389. up and got her in good shape, she would start in and strike a hundred
  3390. and fifty before she got tuckered out.  They wouldn't took any money for
  3391. her.
  3392. Well, there was a big outlandish parrot on each side of the clock,
  3393. made out of something like chalk, and painted up gaudy.  By one of the
  3394. parrots was a cat made of crockery, and a crockery dog by the other;
  3395. and when you pressed down on them they squeaked, but didn't open
  3396. their mouths nor look different nor interested.  They squeaked through
  3397. underneath.  There was a couple of big wild-turkey-wing fans spread out
  3398. behind those things.  On the table in the middle of the room was a kind
  3399. of a lovely crockery basket that had apples and oranges and peaches and
  3400. grapes piled up in it, which was much redder and yellower and prettier
  3401. than real ones is, but they warn't real because you could see where
  3402. pieces had got chipped off and showed the white chalk, or whatever it
  3403. was, underneath.
  3404. This table had a cover made out of beautiful oilcloth, with a red and
  3405. blue spread-eagle painted on it, and a painted border all around.  It
  3406. come all the way from Philadelphia, they said.  There was some books,
  3407. too, piled up perfectly exact, on each corner of the table.  One was a
  3408. big family Bible full of pictures.  One was Pilgrim's Progress, about a
  3409. man that left his family, it didn't say why.  I read considerable in it
  3410. now and then.  The statements was interesting, but tough.  Another was
  3411. Friendship's Offering, full of beautiful stuff and poetry; but I didn't
  3412. read the poetry.  Another was Henry Clay's Speeches, and another was Dr.
  3413. Gunn's Family Medicine, which told you all about what to do if a body
  3414. was sick or dead.  There was a hymn book, and a lot of other books.  And
  3415. there was nice split-bottom chairs, and perfectly sound, too--not bagged
  3416. down in the middle and busted, like an old basket.
  3417. They had pictures hung on the walls--mainly Washingtons and Lafayettes,
  3418. and battles, and Highland Marys, and one called “Signing the
  3419. Declaration.” There was some that they called crayons, which one of the
  3420. daughters which was dead made her own self when she was only
  3421. fifteen years old.  They was different from any pictures I ever see
  3422. before--blacker, mostly, than is common.  One was a woman in a slim black
  3423. dress, belted small under the armpits, with bulges like a cabbage in
  3424. the middle of the sleeves, and a large black scoop-shovel bonnet with
  3425. a black veil, and white slim ankles crossed about with black tape, and
  3426. very wee black slippers, like a chisel, and she was leaning pensive on a
  3427. tombstone on her right elbow, under a weeping willow, and her other hand
  3428. hanging down her side holding a white handkerchief and a reticule,
  3429. and underneath the picture it said “Shall I Never See Thee More Alas.”
  3430.  Another one was a young lady with her hair all combed up straight
  3431. to the top of her head, and knotted there in front of a comb like a
  3432. chair-back, and she was crying into a handkerchief and had a dead bird
  3433. laying on its back in her other hand with its heels up, and underneath
  3434. the picture it said “I Shall Never Hear Thy Sweet Chirrup More Alas.”
  3435.  There was one where a young lady was at a window looking up at the
  3436. moon, and tears running down her cheeks; and she had an open letter in
  3437. one hand with black sealing wax showing on one edge of it, and she was
  3438. mashing a locket with a chain to it against her mouth, and underneath
  3439. the picture it said “And Art Thou Gone Yes Thou Art Gone Alas.”  These
  3440. was all nice pictures, I reckon, but I didn't somehow seem to take
  3441. to them, because if ever I was down a little they always give me the
  3442. fan-tods.  Everybody was sorry she died, because she had laid out a lot
  3443. more of these pictures to do, and a body could see by what she had done
  3444. what they had lost.  But I reckoned that with her disposition she was
  3445. having a better time in the graveyard.  She was at work on what they
  3446. said was her greatest picture when she took sick, and every day and
  3447. every night it was her prayer to be allowed to live till she got it
  3448. done, but she never got the chance.  It was a picture of a young woman
  3449. in a long white gown, standing on the rail of a bridge all ready to jump
  3450. off, with her hair all down her back, and looking up to the moon, with
  3451. the tears running down her face, and she had two arms folded across her
  3452. breast, and two arms stretched out in front, and two more reaching up
  3453. towards the moon--and the idea was to see which pair would look best,
  3454. and then scratch out all the other arms; but, as I was saying, she died
  3455. before she got her mind made up, and now they kept this picture over the
  3456. head of the bed in her room, and every time her birthday come they hung
  3457. flowers on it.  Other times it was hid with a little curtain.  The young
  3458. woman in the picture had a kind of a nice sweet face, but there was so
  3459. many arms it made her look too spidery, seemed to me.
  3460. This young girl kept a scrap-book when she was alive, and used to paste
  3461. obituaries and accidents and cases of patient suffering in it out of the
  3462. Presbyterian Observer, and write poetry after them out of her own head.
  3463. It was very good poetry. This is what she wrote about a boy by the name
  3464. of Stephen Dowling Bots that fell down a well and was drownded:
  3465. ODE TO STEPHEN DOWLING BOTS, DEC'D
  3466. And did young Stephen sicken,    And did young Stephen die? And did the
  3467. sad hearts thicken,    And did the mourners cry?
  3468. No; such was not the fate of    Young Stephen Dowling Bots; Though sad
  3469. hearts round him thickened,   'Twas not from sickness' shots.
  3470. No whooping-cough did rack his frame,    Nor measles drear with spots;
  3471. Not these impaired the sacred name    Of Stephen Dowling Bots.
  3472. Despised love struck not with woe    That head of curly knots, Nor
  3473. stomach troubles laid him low,    Young Stephen Dowling Bots.
  3474. O no. Then list with tearful eye,    Whilst I his fate do tell. His soul
  3475. did from this cold world fly    By falling down a well.
  3476. They got him out and emptied him;    Alas it was too late; His spirit
  3477. was gone for to sport aloft    In the realms of the good and great.
  3478. If Emmeline Grangerford could make poetry like that before she was
  3479. fourteen, there ain't no telling what she could a done by and by.  Buck
  3480. said she could rattle off poetry like nothing.  She didn't ever have to
  3481. stop to think.  He said she would slap down a line, and if she couldn't
  3482. find anything to rhyme with it would just scratch it out and slap down
  3483. another one, and go ahead. She warn't particular; she could write about
  3484. anything you choose to give her to write about just so it was sadful.
  3485. Every time a man died, or a woman died, or a child died, she would be on
  3486. hand with her “tribute” before he was cold.  She called them tributes.
  3487. The neighbors said it was the doctor first, then Emmeline, then the
  3488. undertaker--the undertaker never got in ahead of Emmeline but once, and
  3489. then she hung fire on a rhyme for the dead person's name, which was
  3490. Whistler.  She warn't ever the same after that; she never complained,
  3491. but she kinder pined away and did not live long.  Poor thing, many's the
  3492. time I made myself go up to the little room that used to be hers and get
  3493. out her poor old scrap-book and read in it when her pictures had been
  3494. aggravating me and I had soured on her a little.  I liked all that
  3495. family, dead ones and all, and warn't going to let anything come between
  3496. us.  Poor Emmeline made poetry about all the dead people when she was
  3497. alive, and it didn't seem right that there warn't nobody to make some
  3498. about her now she was gone; so I tried to sweat out a verse or two
  3499. myself, but I couldn't seem to make it go somehow.  They kept Emmeline's
  3500. room trim and nice, and all the things fixed in it just the way she
  3501. liked to have them when she was alive, and nobody ever slept there.
  3502.  The old lady took care of the room herself, though there was plenty
  3503. of niggers, and she sewed there a good deal and read her Bible there
  3504. mostly.
  3505. Well, as I was saying about the parlor, there was beautiful curtains on
  3506. the windows:  white, with pictures painted on them of castles with vines
  3507. all down the walls, and cattle coming down to drink.  There was a little
  3508. old piano, too, that had tin pans in it, I reckon, and nothing was ever
  3509. so lovely as to hear the young ladies sing “The Last Link is Broken”
  3510. and play “The Battle of Prague” on it.  The walls of all the rooms was
  3511. plastered, and most had carpets on the floors, and the whole house was
  3512. whitewashed on the outside.
  3513. It was a double house, and the big open place betwixt them was roofed
  3514. and floored, and sometimes the table was set there in the middle of the
  3515. day, and it was a cool, comfortable place.  Nothing couldn't be better.
  3516.  And warn't the cooking good, and just bushels of it too!
  3517. CHAPTER XVIII.
  3518. COL.  Grangerford was a gentleman, you see.  He was a gentleman all
  3519. over; and so was his family.  He was well born, as the saying is, and
  3520. that's worth as much in a man as it is in a horse, so the Widow Douglas
  3521. said, and nobody ever denied that she was of the first aristocracy
  3522. in our town; and pap he always said it, too, though he warn't no more
  3523. quality than a mudcat himself.  Col.  Grangerford was very tall and
  3524. very slim, and had a darkish-paly complexion, not a sign of red in it
  3525. anywheres; he was clean shaved every morning all over his thin face, and
  3526. he had the thinnest kind of lips, and the thinnest kind of nostrils, and
  3527. a high nose, and heavy eyebrows, and the blackest kind of eyes, sunk so
  3528. deep back that they seemed like they was looking out of caverns at
  3529. you, as you may say.  His forehead was high, and his hair was black and
  3530. straight and hung to his shoulders. His hands was long and thin, and
  3531. every day of his life he put on a clean shirt and a full suit from head
  3532. to foot made out of linen so white it hurt your eyes to look at it;
  3533. and on Sundays he wore a blue tail-coat with brass buttons on it.  He
  3534. carried a mahogany cane with a silver head to it.  There warn't no
  3535. frivolishness about him, not a bit, and he warn't ever loud.  He was
  3536. as kind as he could be--you could feel that, you know, and so you had
  3537. confidence.  Sometimes he smiled, and it was good to see; but when he
  3538. straightened himself up like a liberty-pole, and the lightning begun to
  3539. flicker out from under his eyebrows, you wanted to climb a tree first,
  3540. and find out what the matter was afterwards.  He didn't ever have to
  3541. tell anybody to mind their manners--everybody was always good-mannered
  3542. where he was.  Everybody loved to have him around, too; he was sunshine
  3543. most always--I mean he made it seem like good weather.  When he turned
  3544. into a cloudbank it was awful dark for half a minute, and that was
  3545. enough; there wouldn't nothing go wrong again for a week.
  3546. When him and the old lady come down in the morning all the family got
  3547. up out of their chairs and give them good-day, and didn't set down again
  3548. till they had set down.  Then Tom and Bob went to the sideboard where
  3549. the decanter was, and mixed a glass of bitters and handed it to him, and
  3550. he held it in his hand and waited till Tom's and Bob's was mixed, and
  3551. then they bowed and said, “Our duty to you, sir, and madam;” and _they_
  3552. bowed the least bit in the world and said thank you, and so they drank,
  3553. all three, and Bob and Tom poured a spoonful of water on the sugar and
  3554. the mite of whisky or apple brandy in the bottom of their tumblers, and
  3555. give it to me and Buck, and we drank to the old people too.
  3556. Bob was the oldest and Tom next--tall, beautiful men with very broad
  3557. shoulders and brown faces, and long black hair and black eyes.  They
  3558. dressed in white linen from head to foot, like the old gentleman, and
  3559. wore broad Panama hats.
  3560. Then there was Miss Charlotte; she was twenty-five, and tall and proud
  3561. and grand, but as good as she could be when she warn't stirred up; but
  3562. when she was she had a look that would make you wilt in your tracks,
  3563. like her father.  She was beautiful.
  3564. So was her sister, Miss Sophia, but it was a different kind.  She was
  3565. gentle and sweet like a dove, and she was only twenty.
  3566. Each person had their own nigger to wait on them--Buck too.  My nigger
  3567. had a monstrous easy time, because I warn't used to having anybody do
  3568. anything for me, but Buck's was on the jump most of the time.
  3569. This was all there was of the family now, but there used to be
  3570. more--three sons; they got killed; and Emmeline that died.
  3571. The old gentleman owned a lot of farms and over a hundred niggers.
  3572. Sometimes a stack of people would come there, horseback, from ten or
  3573. fifteen mile around, and stay five or six days, and have such junketings
  3574. round about and on the river, and dances and picnics in the woods
  3575. daytimes, and balls at the house nights.  These people was mostly
  3576. kinfolks of the family.  The men brought their guns with them.  It was a
  3577. handsome lot of quality, I tell you.
  3578. There was another clan of aristocracy around there--five or six
  3579. families--mostly of the name of Shepherdson.  They was as high-toned
  3580. and well born and rich and grand as the tribe of Grangerfords.  The
  3581. Shepherdsons and Grangerfords used the same steamboat landing, which was
  3582. about two mile above our house; so sometimes when I went up there with a
  3583. lot of our folks I used to see a lot of the Shepherdsons there on their
  3584. fine horses.
  3585. One day Buck and me was away out in the woods hunting, and heard a horse
  3586. coming.  We was crossing the road.  Buck says:
  3587. “Quick!  Jump for the woods!”
  3588. We done it, and then peeped down the woods through the leaves.  Pretty
  3589. soon a splendid young man come galloping down the road, setting his
  3590. horse easy and looking like a soldier.  He had his gun across his
  3591. pommel.  I had seen him before.  It was young Harney Shepherdson.  I
  3592. heard Buck's gun go off at my ear, and Harney's hat tumbled off from his
  3593. head.  He grabbed his gun and rode straight to the place where we was
  3594. hid.  But we didn't wait.  We started through the woods on a run.  The
  3595. woods warn't thick, so I looked over my shoulder to dodge the bullet,
  3596. and twice I seen Harney cover Buck with his gun; and then he rode away
  3597. the way he come--to get his hat, I reckon, but I couldn't see.  We never
  3598. stopped running till we got home.  The old gentleman's eyes blazed a
  3599. minute--'twas pleasure, mainly, I judged--then his face sort of smoothed
  3600. down, and he says, kind of gentle:
  3601. “I don't like that shooting from behind a bush.  Why didn't you step
  3602. into the road, my boy?”
  3603. “The Shepherdsons don't, father.  They always take advantage.”
  3604. Miss Charlotte she held her head up like a queen while Buck was telling
  3605. his tale, and her nostrils spread and her eyes snapped.  The two young
  3606. men looked dark, but never said nothing.  Miss Sophia she turned pale,
  3607. but the color come back when she found the man warn't hurt.
  3608. Soon as I could get Buck down by the corn-cribs under the trees by
  3609. ourselves, I says:
  3610. “Did you want to kill him, Buck?”
  3611. “Well, I bet I did.”
  3612. “What did he do to you?”
  3613. “Him?  He never done nothing to me.”
  3614. “Well, then, what did you want to kill him for?”
  3615. “Why, nothing--only it's on account of the feud.”
  3616. “What's a feud?”
  3617. “Why, where was you raised?  Don't you know what a feud is?”
  3618. “Never heard of it before--tell me about it.”
  3619. “Well,” says Buck, “a feud is this way:  A man has a quarrel with
  3620. another man, and kills him; then that other man's brother kills _him_;
  3621. then the other brothers, on both sides, goes for one another; then the
  3622. _cousins_ chip in--and by and by everybody's killed off, and there ain't
  3623. no more feud.  But it's kind of slow, and takes a long time.”
  3624. “Has this one been going on long, Buck?”
  3625. “Well, I should _reckon_!  It started thirty year ago, or som'ers along
  3626. there.  There was trouble 'bout something, and then a lawsuit to settle
  3627. it; and the suit went agin one of the men, and so he up and shot the
  3628. man that won the suit--which he would naturally do, of course.  Anybody
  3629. would.”
  3630. “What was the trouble about, Buck?--land?”
  3631. “I reckon maybe--I don't know.”
  3632. “Well, who done the shooting?  Was it a Grangerford or a Shepherdson?”
  3633. “Laws, how do I know?  It was so long ago.”
  3634. “Don't anybody know?”
  3635. “Oh, yes, pa knows, I reckon, and some of the other old people; but they
  3636. don't know now what the row was about in the first place.”
  3637. “Has there been many killed, Buck?”
  3638. “Yes; right smart chance of funerals.  But they don't always kill.  Pa's
  3639. got a few buckshot in him; but he don't mind it 'cuz he don't weigh
  3640. much, anyway.  Bob's been carved up some with a bowie, and Tom's been
  3641. hurt once or twice.”
  3642. “Has anybody been killed this year, Buck?”
  3643. “Yes; we got one and they got one. 'Bout three months ago my cousin
  3644. Bud, fourteen year old, was riding through the woods on t'other side
  3645. of the river, and didn't have no weapon with him, which was blame'
  3646. foolishness, and in a lonesome place he hears a horse a-coming behind
  3647. him, and sees old Baldy Shepherdson a-linkin' after him with his gun in
  3648. his hand and his white hair a-flying in the wind; and 'stead of jumping
  3649. off and taking to the brush, Bud 'lowed he could out-run him; so they
  3650. had it, nip and tuck, for five mile or more, the old man a-gaining all
  3651. the time; so at last Bud seen it warn't any use, so he stopped and faced
  3652. around so as to have the bullet holes in front, you know, and the old
  3653. man he rode up and shot him down.  But he didn't git much chance to
  3654. enjoy his luck, for inside of a week our folks laid _him_ out.”
  3655. “I reckon that old man was a coward, Buck.”
  3656. “I reckon he _warn't_ a coward.  Not by a blame' sight.  There ain't a
  3657. coward amongst them Shepherdsons--not a one.  And there ain't no cowards
  3658. amongst the Grangerfords either.  Why, that old man kep' up his end in a
  3659. fight one day for half an hour against three Grangerfords, and come
  3660. out winner.  They was all a-horseback; he lit off of his horse and got
  3661. behind a little woodpile, and kep' his horse before him to stop the
  3662. bullets; but the Grangerfords stayed on their horses and capered around
  3663. the old man, and peppered away at him, and he peppered away at them.
  3664.  Him and his horse both went home pretty leaky and crippled, but the
  3665. Grangerfords had to be _fetched_ home--and one of 'em was dead, and
  3666. another died the next day.  No, sir; if a body's out hunting for cowards
  3667. he don't want to fool away any time amongst them Shepherdsons, becuz
  3668. they don't breed any of that _kind_.”
  3669. Next Sunday we all went to church, about three mile, everybody
  3670. a-horseback. The men took their guns along, so did Buck, and kept
  3671. them between their knees or stood them handy against the wall.  The
  3672. Shepherdsons done the same.  It was pretty ornery preaching--all about
  3673. brotherly love, and such-like tiresomeness; but everybody said it was
  3674. a good sermon, and they all talked it over going home, and had such
  3675. a powerful lot to say about faith and good works and free grace and
  3676. preforeordestination, and I don't know what all, that it did seem to me
  3677. to be one of the roughest Sundays I had run across yet.
  3678. About an hour after dinner everybody was dozing around, some in their
  3679. chairs and some in their rooms, and it got to be pretty dull.  Buck and
  3680. a dog was stretched out on the grass in the sun sound asleep.  I went up
  3681. to our room, and judged I would take a nap myself.  I found that sweet
  3682. Miss Sophia standing in her door, which was next to ours, and she took
  3683. me in her room and shut the door very soft, and asked me if I liked her,
  3684. and I said I did; and she asked me if I would do something for her and
  3685. not tell anybody, and I said I would.  Then she said she'd forgot her
  3686. Testament, and left it in the seat at church between two other books,
  3687. and would I slip out quiet and go there and fetch it to her, and not say
  3688. nothing to nobody.  I said I would. So I slid out and slipped off up the
  3689. road, and there warn't anybody at the church, except maybe a hog or two,
  3690. for there warn't any lock on the door, and hogs likes a puncheon floor
  3691. in summer-time because it's cool.  If you notice, most folks don't go to
  3692. church only when they've got to; but a hog is different.
  3693. Says I to myself, something's up; it ain't natural for a girl to be in
  3694. such a sweat about a Testament.  So I give it a shake, and out drops a
  3695. little piece of paper with “HALF-PAST TWO” wrote on it with a pencil.  I
  3696. ransacked it, but couldn't find anything else.  I couldn't make anything
  3697. out of that, so I put the paper in the book again, and when I got home
  3698. and upstairs there was Miss Sophia in her door waiting for me.  She
  3699. pulled me in and shut the door; then she looked in the Testament till
  3700. she found the paper, and as soon as she read it she looked glad; and
  3701. before a body could think she grabbed me and give me a squeeze, and
  3702. said I was the best boy in the world, and not to tell anybody.  She was
  3703. mighty red in the face for a minute, and her eyes lighted up, and it
  3704. made her powerful pretty.  I was a good deal astonished, but when I got
  3705. my breath I asked her what the paper was about, and she asked me if I
  3706. had read it, and I said no, and she asked me if I could read writing,
  3707. and I told her “no, only coarse-hand,” and then she said the paper
  3708. warn't anything but a book-mark to keep her place, and I might go and
  3709. play now.
  3710. I went off down to the river, studying over this thing, and pretty soon
  3711. I noticed that my nigger was following along behind.  When we was out
  3712. of sight of the house he looked back and around a second, and then comes
  3713. a-running, and says:
  3714. “Mars Jawge, if you'll come down into de swamp I'll show you a whole
  3715. stack o' water-moccasins.”
  3716. Thinks I, that's mighty curious; he said that yesterday.  He oughter
  3717. know a body don't love water-moccasins enough to go around hunting for
  3718. them. What is he up to, anyway?  So I says:
  3719. “All right; trot ahead.”
  3720. I followed a half a mile; then he struck out over the swamp, and waded
  3721. ankle deep as much as another half-mile.  We come to a little flat piece
  3722. of land which was dry and very thick with trees and bushes and vines,
  3723. and he says:
  3724. “You shove right in dah jist a few steps, Mars Jawge; dah's whah dey is.
  3725. I's seed 'm befo'; I don't k'yer to see 'em no mo'.”
  3726. Then he slopped right along and went away, and pretty soon the trees hid
  3727. him.  I poked into the place a-ways and come to a little open patch
  3728. as big as a bedroom all hung around with vines, and found a man laying
  3729. there asleep--and, by jings, it was my old Jim!
  3730. I waked him up, and I reckoned it was going to be a grand surprise to
  3731. him to see me again, but it warn't.  He nearly cried he was so glad, but
  3732. he warn't surprised.  Said he swum along behind me that night, and heard
  3733. me yell every time, but dasn't answer, because he didn't want nobody to
  3734. pick _him_ up and take him into slavery again.  Says he:
  3735. “I got hurt a little, en couldn't swim fas', so I wuz a considable ways
  3736. behine you towards de las'; when you landed I reck'ned I could ketch
  3737. up wid you on de lan' 'dout havin' to shout at you, but when I see dat
  3738. house I begin to go slow.  I 'uz off too fur to hear what dey say to
  3739. you--I wuz 'fraid o' de dogs; but when it 'uz all quiet agin I knowed
  3740. you's in de house, so I struck out for de woods to wait for day.  Early
  3741. in de mawnin' some er de niggers come along, gwyne to de fields, en dey
  3742. tuk me en showed me dis place, whah de dogs can't track me on accounts
  3743. o' de water, en dey brings me truck to eat every night, en tells me how
  3744. you's a-gitt'n along.”
  3745. “Why didn't you tell my Jack to fetch me here sooner, Jim?”
  3746. “Well, 'twarn't no use to 'sturb you, Huck, tell we could do sumfn--but
  3747. we's all right now.  I ben a-buyin' pots en pans en vittles, as I got a
  3748. chanst, en a-patchin' up de raf' nights when--”
  3749. “_What_ raft, Jim?”
  3750. “Our ole raf'.”
  3751. “You mean to say our old raft warn't smashed all to flinders?”
  3752. “No, she warn't.  She was tore up a good deal--one en' of her was; but
  3753. dey warn't no great harm done, on'y our traps was mos' all los'.  Ef we
  3754. hadn' dive' so deep en swum so fur under water, en de night hadn' ben
  3755. so dark, en we warn't so sk'yerd, en ben sich punkin-heads, as de sayin'
  3756. is, we'd a seed de raf'.  But it's jis' as well we didn't, 'kase now
  3757. she's all fixed up agin mos' as good as new, en we's got a new lot o'
  3758. stuff, in de place o' what 'uz los'.”
  3759. “Why, how did you get hold of the raft again, Jim--did you catch her?”
  3760. “How I gwyne to ketch her en I out in de woods?  No; some er de niggers
  3761. foun' her ketched on a snag along heah in de ben', en dey hid her in a
  3762. crick 'mongst de willows, en dey wuz so much jawin' 'bout which un 'um
  3763. she b'long to de mos' dat I come to heah 'bout it pooty soon, so I ups
  3764. en settles de trouble by tellin' 'um she don't b'long to none uv um, but
  3765. to you en me; en I ast 'm if dey gwyne to grab a young white genlman's
  3766. propaty, en git a hid'n for it?  Den I gin 'm ten cents apiece, en dey
  3767. 'uz mighty well satisfied, en wisht some mo' raf's 'ud come along en
  3768. make 'm rich agin. Dey's mighty good to me, dese niggers is, en whatever
  3769. I wants 'm to do fur me I doan' have to ast 'm twice, honey.  Dat Jack's
  3770. a good nigger, en pooty smart.”
  3771. “Yes, he is.  He ain't ever told me you was here; told me to come, and
  3772. he'd show me a lot of water-moccasins.  If anything happens _he_ ain't
  3773. mixed up in it.  He can say he never seen us together, and it 'll be the
  3774. truth.”
  3775. I don't want to talk much about the next day.  I reckon I'll cut it
  3776. pretty short.  I waked up about dawn, and was a-going to turn over and
  3777. go to sleep again when I noticed how still it was--didn't seem to be
  3778. anybody stirring.  That warn't usual.  Next I noticed that Buck was
  3779. up and gone. Well, I gets up, a-wondering, and goes down stairs--nobody
  3780. around; everything as still as a mouse.  Just the same outside.  Thinks
  3781. I, what does it mean?  Down by the wood-pile I comes across my Jack, and
  3782. says:
  3783. “What's it all about?”
  3784. Says he:
  3785. “Don't you know, Mars Jawge?”
  3786. “No,” says I, “I don't.”
  3787. “Well, den, Miss Sophia's run off! 'deed she has.  She run off in de
  3788. night some time--nobody don't know jis' when; run off to get married
  3789. to dat young Harney Shepherdson, you know--leastways, so dey 'spec.  De
  3790. fambly foun' it out 'bout half an hour ago--maybe a little mo'--en' I
  3791. _tell_ you dey warn't no time los'.  Sich another hurryin' up guns
  3792. en hosses _you_ never see!  De women folks has gone for to stir up de
  3793. relations, en ole Mars Saul en de boys tuck dey guns en rode up de
  3794. river road for to try to ketch dat young man en kill him 'fo' he kin
  3795. git acrost de river wid Miss Sophia.  I reck'n dey's gwyne to be mighty
  3796. rough times.”
  3797. “Buck went off 'thout waking me up.”
  3798. “Well, I reck'n he _did_!  Dey warn't gwyne to mix you up in it.
  3799.  Mars Buck he loaded up his gun en 'lowed he's gwyne to fetch home a
  3800. Shepherdson or bust. Well, dey'll be plenty un 'm dah, I reck'n, en you
  3801. bet you he'll fetch one ef he gits a chanst.”
  3802. I took up the river road as hard as I could put.  By and by I begin to
  3803. hear guns a good ways off.  When I come in sight of the log store and
  3804. the woodpile where the steamboats lands I worked along under the trees
  3805. and brush till I got to a good place, and then I clumb up into the
  3806. forks of a cottonwood that was out of reach, and watched.  There was a
  3807. wood-rank four foot high a little ways in front of the tree, and first I
  3808. was going to hide behind that; but maybe it was luckier I didn't.
  3809. There was four or five men cavorting around on their horses in the open
  3810. place before the log store, cussing and yelling, and trying to get at
  3811. a couple of young chaps that was behind the wood-rank alongside of the
  3812. steamboat landing; but they couldn't come it.  Every time one of them
  3813. showed himself on the river side of the woodpile he got shot at.  The
  3814. two boys was squatting back to back behind the pile, so they could watch
  3815. both ways.
  3816. By and by the men stopped cavorting around and yelling.  They started
  3817. riding towards the store; then up gets one of the boys, draws a steady
  3818. bead over the wood-rank, and drops one of them out of his saddle.  All
  3819. the men jumped off of their horses and grabbed the hurt one and started
  3820. to carry him to the store; and that minute the two boys started on the
  3821. run.  They got half way to the tree I was in before the men noticed.
  3822. Then the men see them, and jumped on their horses and took out after
  3823. them.  They gained on the boys, but it didn't do no good, the boys had
  3824. too good a start; they got to the woodpile that was in front of my tree,
  3825. and slipped in behind it, and so they had the bulge on the men again.
  3826. One of the boys was Buck, and the other was a slim young chap about
  3827. nineteen years old.
  3828. The men ripped around awhile, and then rode away.  As soon as they was
  3829. out of sight I sung out to Buck and told him.  He didn't know what
  3830. to make of my voice coming out of the tree at first.  He was awful
  3831. surprised.  He told me to watch out sharp and let him know when the
  3832. men come in sight again; said they was up to some devilment or
  3833. other--wouldn't be gone long.  I wished I was out of that tree, but I
  3834. dasn't come down.  Buck begun to cry and rip, and 'lowed that him and
  3835. his cousin Joe (that was the other young chap) would make up for this
  3836. day yet.  He said his father and his two brothers was killed, and two
  3837. or three of the enemy.  Said the Shepherdsons laid for them in
  3838. ambush.  Buck said his father and brothers ought to waited for their
  3839. relations--the Shepherdsons was too strong for them.  I asked him what
  3840. was become of young Harney and Miss Sophia.  He said they'd got across
  3841. the river and was safe.  I was glad of that; but the way Buck did take
  3842. on because he didn't manage to kill Harney that day he shot at him--I
  3843. hain't ever heard anything like it.
  3844. All of a sudden, bang! bang! bang! goes three or four guns--the men had
  3845. slipped around through the woods and come in from behind without their
  3846. horses!  The boys jumped for the river--both of them hurt--and as they
  3847. swum down the current the men run along the bank shooting at them and
  3848. singing out, “Kill them, kill them!”  It made me so sick I most fell out
  3849. of the tree.  I ain't a-going to tell _all_ that happened--it would make
  3850. me sick again if I was to do that.  I wished I hadn't ever come ashore
  3851. that night to see such things.  I ain't ever going to get shut of
  3852. them--lots of times I dream about them.
  3853. I stayed in the tree till it begun to get dark, afraid to come down.
  3854. Sometimes I heard guns away off in the woods; and twice I seen little
  3855. gangs of men gallop past the log store with guns; so I reckoned the
  3856. trouble was still a-going on.  I was mighty downhearted; so I made up my
  3857. mind I wouldn't ever go anear that house again, because I reckoned I
  3858. was to blame, somehow. I judged that that piece of paper meant that Miss
  3859. Sophia was to meet Harney somewheres at half-past two and run off; and
  3860. I judged I ought to told her father about that paper and the curious way
  3861. she acted, and then maybe he would a locked her up, and this awful mess
  3862. wouldn't ever happened.
  3863. When I got down out of the tree I crept along down the river bank a
  3864. piece, and found the two bodies laying in the edge of the water, and
  3865. tugged at them till I got them ashore; then I covered up their faces,
  3866. and got away as quick as I could.  I cried a little when I was covering
  3867. up Buck's face, for he was mighty good to me.
  3868. It was just dark now.  I never went near the house, but struck through
  3869. the woods and made for the swamp.  Jim warn't on his island, so I
  3870. tramped off in a hurry for the crick, and crowded through the willows,
  3871. red-hot to jump aboard and get out of that awful country.  The raft was
  3872. gone!  My souls, but I was scared!  I couldn't get my breath for most
  3873. a minute. Then I raised a yell.  A voice not twenty-five foot from me
  3874. says:
  3875. “Good lan'! is dat you, honey?  Doan' make no noise.”
  3876. It was Jim's voice--nothing ever sounded so good before.  I run along the
  3877. bank a piece and got aboard, and Jim he grabbed me and hugged me, he was
  3878. so glad to see me.  He says:
  3879. “Laws bless you, chile, I 'uz right down sho' you's dead agin.  Jack's
  3880. been heah; he say he reck'n you's ben shot, kase you didn' come home no
  3881. mo'; so I's jes' dis minute a startin' de raf' down towards de mouf er
  3882. de crick, so's to be all ready for to shove out en leave soon as Jack
  3883. comes agin en tells me for certain you _is_ dead.  Lawsy, I's mighty
  3884. glad to git you back again, honey.”
  3885. I says:
  3886. “All right--that's mighty good; they won't find me, and they'll think
  3887. I've been killed, and floated down the river--there's something up there
  3888. that 'll help them think so--so don't you lose no time, Jim, but just
  3889. shove off for the big water as fast as ever you can.”
  3890. I never felt easy till the raft was two mile below there and out in
  3891. the middle of the Mississippi.  Then we hung up our signal lantern, and
  3892. judged that we was free and safe once more.  I hadn't had a bite to eat
  3893. since yesterday, so Jim he got out some corn-dodgers and buttermilk,
  3894. and pork and cabbage and greens--there ain't nothing in the world so good
  3895. when it's cooked right--and whilst I eat my supper we talked and had a
  3896. good time.  I was powerful glad to get away from the feuds, and so was
  3897. Jim to get away from the swamp.  We said there warn't no home like a
  3898. raft, after all.  Other places do seem so cramped up and smothery, but a
  3899. raft don't.  You feel mighty free and easy and comfortable on a raft.
  3900. CHAPTER XIX.
  3901. TWO or three days and nights went by; I reckon I might say they swum by,
  3902. they slid along so quiet and smooth and lovely.  Here is the way we put
  3903. in the time.  It was a monstrous big river down there--sometimes a mile
  3904. and a half wide; we run nights, and laid up and hid daytimes; soon as
  3905. night was most gone we stopped navigating and tied up--nearly always
  3906. in the dead water under a towhead; and then cut young cottonwoods and
  3907. willows, and hid the raft with them.  Then we set out the lines.  Next
  3908. we slid into the river and had a swim, so as to freshen up and cool
  3909. off; then we set down on the sandy bottom where the water was about knee
  3910. deep, and watched the daylight come.  Not a sound anywheres--perfectly
  3911. still--just like the whole world was asleep, only sometimes the bullfrogs
  3912. a-cluttering, maybe.  The first thing to see, looking away over the
  3913. water, was a kind of dull line--that was the woods on t'other side; you
  3914. couldn't make nothing else out; then a pale place in the sky; then more
  3915. paleness spreading around; then the river softened up away off, and
  3916. warn't black any more, but gray; you could see little dark spots
  3917. drifting along ever so far away--trading scows, and such things; and
  3918. long black streaks--rafts; sometimes you could hear a sweep screaking; or
  3919. jumbled up voices, it was so still, and sounds come so far; and by and
  3920. by you could see a streak on the water which you know by the look of the
  3921. streak that there's a snag there in a swift current which breaks on it
  3922. and makes that streak look that way; and you see the mist curl up off
  3923. of the water, and the east reddens up, and the river, and you make out a
  3924. log-cabin in the edge of the woods, away on the bank on t'other side of
  3925. the river, being a woodyard, likely, and piled by them cheats so you can
  3926. throw a dog through it anywheres; then the nice breeze springs up, and
  3927. comes fanning you from over there, so cool and fresh and sweet to smell
  3928. on account of the woods and the flowers; but sometimes not that way,
  3929. because they've left dead fish laying around, gars and such, and they
  3930. do get pretty rank; and next you've got the full day, and everything
  3931. smiling in the sun, and the song-birds just going it!
  3932. A little smoke couldn't be noticed now, so we would take some fish off
  3933. of the lines and cook up a hot breakfast.  And afterwards we would watch
  3934. the lonesomeness of the river, and kind of lazy along, and by and by
  3935. lazy off to sleep.  Wake up by and by, and look to see what done it, and
  3936. maybe see a steamboat coughing along up-stream, so far off towards the
  3937. other side you couldn't tell nothing about her only whether she was
  3938. a stern-wheel or side-wheel; then for about an hour there wouldn't be
  3939. nothing to hear nor nothing to see--just solid lonesomeness.  Next
  3940. you'd see a raft sliding by, away off yonder, and maybe a galoot on it
  3941. chopping, because they're most always doing it on a raft; you'd see the
  3942. axe flash and come down--you don't hear nothing; you see that axe go
  3943. up again, and by the time it's above the man's head then you hear the
  3944. _k'chunk_!--it had took all that time to come over the water.  So we
  3945. would put in the day, lazying around, listening to the stillness.  Once
  3946. there was a thick fog, and the rafts and things that went by was beating
  3947. tin pans so the steamboats wouldn't run over them.  A scow or a
  3948. raft went by so close we could hear them talking and cussing and
  3949. laughing--heard them plain; but we couldn't see no sign of them; it made
  3950. you feel crawly; it was like spirits carrying on that way in the air.
  3951.  Jim said he believed it was spirits; but I says:
  3952. “No; spirits wouldn't say, 'Dern the dern fog.'”
  3953. Soon as it was night out we shoved; when we got her out to about the
  3954. middle we let her alone, and let her float wherever the current wanted
  3955. her to; then we lit the pipes, and dangled our legs in the water, and
  3956. talked about all kinds of things--we was always naked, day and night,
  3957. whenever the mosquitoes would let us--the new clothes Buck's folks made
  3958. for me was too good to be comfortable, and besides I didn't go much on
  3959. clothes, nohow.
  3960. Sometimes we'd have that whole river all to ourselves for the longest
  3961. time. Yonder was the banks and the islands, across the water; and maybe
  3962. a spark--which was a candle in a cabin window; and sometimes on the water
  3963. you could see a spark or two--on a raft or a scow, you know; and maybe
  3964. you could hear a fiddle or a song coming over from one of them crafts.
  3965. It's lovely to live on a raft.  We had the sky up there, all speckled
  3966. with stars, and we used to lay on our backs and look up at them, and
  3967. discuss about whether they was made or only just happened.  Jim he
  3968. allowed they was made, but I allowed they happened; I judged it would
  3969. have took too long to _make_ so many.  Jim said the moon could a _laid_
  3970. them; well, that looked kind of reasonable, so I didn't say nothing
  3971. against it, because I've seen a frog lay most as many, so of course it
  3972. could be done. We used to watch the stars that fell, too, and see them
  3973. streak down.  Jim allowed they'd got spoiled and was hove out of the
  3974. nest.
  3975. Once or twice of a night we would see a steamboat slipping along in the
  3976. dark, and now and then she would belch a whole world of sparks up out
  3977. of her chimbleys, and they would rain down in the river and look awful
  3978. pretty; then she would turn a corner and her lights would wink out and
  3979. her powwow shut off and leave the river still again; and by and by her
  3980. waves would get to us, a long time after she was gone, and joggle the
  3981. raft a bit, and after that you wouldn't hear nothing for you couldn't
  3982. tell how long, except maybe frogs or something.
  3983. After midnight the people on shore went to bed, and then for two or
  3984. three hours the shores was black--no more sparks in the cabin windows.
  3985.  These sparks was our clock--the first one that showed again meant
  3986. morning was coming, so we hunted a place to hide and tie up right away.
  3987. One morning about daybreak I found a canoe and crossed over a chute to
  3988. the main shore--it was only two hundred yards--and paddled about a mile
  3989. up a crick amongst the cypress woods, to see if I couldn't get some
  3990. berries. Just as I was passing a place where a kind of a cowpath crossed
  3991. the crick, here comes a couple of men tearing up the path as tight as
  3992. they could foot it.  I thought I was a goner, for whenever anybody was
  3993. after anybody I judged it was _me_--or maybe Jim.  I was about to dig out
  3994. from there in a hurry, but they was pretty close to me then, and sung
  3995. out and begged me to save their lives--said they hadn't been doing
  3996. nothing, and was being chased for it--said there was men and dogs
  3997. a-coming.  They wanted to jump right in, but I says:
  3998. “Don't you do it.  I don't hear the dogs and horses yet; you've got time
  3999. to crowd through the brush and get up the crick a little ways; then you
  4000. take to the water and wade down to me and get in--that'll throw the dogs
  4001. off the scent.”
  4002. They done it, and soon as they was aboard I lit out for our towhead,
  4003. and in about five or ten minutes we heard the dogs and the men away off,
  4004. shouting. We heard them come along towards the crick, but couldn't
  4005. see them; they seemed to stop and fool around a while; then, as we got
  4006. further and further away all the time, we couldn't hardly hear them at
  4007. all; by the time we had left a mile of woods behind us and struck the
  4008. river, everything was quiet, and we paddled over to the towhead and hid
  4009. in the cottonwoods and was safe.
  4010. One of these fellows was about seventy or upwards, and had a bald head
  4011. and very gray whiskers.  He had an old battered-up slouch hat on, and
  4012. a greasy blue woollen shirt, and ragged old blue jeans britches stuffed
  4013. into his boot-tops, and home-knit galluses--no, he only had one.  He had
  4014. an old long-tailed blue jeans coat with slick brass buttons flung over
  4015. his arm, and both of them had big, fat, ratty-looking carpet-bags.
  4016. The other fellow was about thirty, and dressed about as ornery.  After
  4017. breakfast we all laid off and talked, and the first thing that come out
  4018. was that these chaps didn't know one another.
  4019. “What got you into trouble?” says the baldhead to t'other chap.
  4020. “Well, I'd been selling an article to take the tartar off the teeth--and
  4021. it does take it off, too, and generly the enamel along with it--but I
  4022. stayed about one night longer than I ought to, and was just in the act
  4023. of sliding out when I ran across you on the trail this side of town, and
  4024. you told me they were coming, and begged me to help you to get off.  So
  4025. I told you I was expecting trouble myself, and would scatter out _with_
  4026. you. That's the whole yarn--what's yourn?
  4027. “Well, I'd ben a-running' a little temperance revival thar 'bout a week,
  4028. and was the pet of the women folks, big and little, for I was makin' it
  4029. mighty warm for the rummies, I _tell_ you, and takin' as much as five
  4030. or six dollars a night--ten cents a head, children and niggers free--and
  4031. business a-growin' all the time, when somehow or another a little report
  4032. got around last night that I had a way of puttin' in my time with a
  4033. private jug on the sly.  A nigger rousted me out this mornin', and told
  4034. me the people was getherin' on the quiet with their dogs and horses, and
  4035. they'd be along pretty soon and give me 'bout half an hour's start,
  4036. and then run me down if they could; and if they got me they'd tar
  4037. and feather me and ride me on a rail, sure.  I didn't wait for no
  4038. breakfast--I warn't hungry.”
  4039. “Old man,” said the young one, “I reckon we might double-team it
  4040. together; what do you think?”
  4041. “I ain't undisposed.  What's your line--mainly?”
  4042. “Jour printer by trade; do a little in patent medicines;
  4043. theater-actor--tragedy, you know; take a turn to mesmerism and phrenology
  4044. when there's a chance; teach singing-geography school for a change;
  4045. sling a lecture sometimes--oh, I do lots of things--most anything that
  4046. comes handy, so it ain't work.  What's your lay?”
  4047. “I've done considerble in the doctoring way in my time.  Layin' on o'
  4048. hands is my best holt--for cancer and paralysis, and sich things; and I
  4049. k'n tell a fortune pretty good when I've got somebody along to find out
  4050. the facts for me.  Preachin's my line, too, and workin' camp-meetin's,
  4051. and missionaryin' around.”
  4052. Nobody never said anything for a while; then the young man hove a sigh
  4053. and says:
  4054. “Alas!”
  4055. “What 're you alassin' about?” says the bald-head.
  4056. “To think I should have lived to be leading such a life, and be degraded
  4057. down into such company.”  And he begun to wipe the corner of his eye
  4058. with a rag.
  4059. “Dern your skin, ain't the company good enough for you?” says the
  4060. baldhead, pretty pert and uppish.
  4061. “Yes, it _is_ good enough for me; it's as good as I deserve; for who
  4062. fetched me so low when I was so high?  I did myself.  I don't blame
  4063. _you_, gentlemen--far from it; I don't blame anybody.  I deserve it
  4064. all.  Let the cold world do its worst; one thing I know--there's a grave
  4065. somewhere for me. The world may go on just as it's always done, and take
  4066. everything from me--loved ones, property, everything; but it can't take
  4067. that. Some day I'll lie down in it and forget it all, and my poor broken
  4068. heart will be at rest.”  He went on a-wiping.
  4069. “Drot your pore broken heart,” says the baldhead; “what are you heaving
  4070. your pore broken heart at _us_ f'r?  _we_ hain't done nothing.”
  4071. “No, I know you haven't.  I ain't blaming you, gentlemen.  I brought
  4072. myself down--yes, I did it myself.  It's right I should suffer--perfectly
  4073. right--I don't make any moan.”
  4074. “Brought you down from whar?  Whar was you brought down from?”
  4075. “Ah, you would not believe me; the world never believes--let it pass--'tis
  4076. no matter.  The secret of my birth--”
  4077. “The secret of your birth!  Do you mean to say--”
  4078. “Gentlemen,” says the young man, very solemn, “I will reveal it to you,
  4079. for I feel I may have confidence in you.  By rights I am a duke!”
  4080. Jim's eyes bugged out when he heard that; and I reckon mine did, too.
  4081. Then the baldhead says: “No! you can't mean it?”
  4082. “Yes.  My great-grandfather, eldest son of the Duke of Bridgewater, fled
  4083. to this country about the end of the last century, to breathe the pure
  4084. air of freedom; married here, and died, leaving a son, his own father
  4085. dying about the same time.  The second son of the late duke seized the
  4086. titles and estates--the infant real duke was ignored.  I am the lineal
  4087. descendant of that infant--I am the rightful Duke of Bridgewater; and
  4088. here am I, forlorn, torn from my high estate, hunted of men, despised
  4089. by the cold world, ragged, worn, heart-broken, and degraded to the
  4090. companionship of felons on a raft!”
  4091. Jim pitied him ever so much, and so did I. We tried to comfort him, but
  4092. he said it warn't much use, he couldn't be much comforted; said if we
  4093. was a mind to acknowledge him, that would do him more good than most
  4094. anything else; so we said we would, if he would tell us how.  He said we
  4095. ought to bow when we spoke to him, and say “Your Grace,” or “My Lord,”
  4096. or “Your Lordship”--and he wouldn't mind it if we called him plain
  4097. “Bridgewater,” which, he said, was a title anyway, and not a name; and
  4098. one of us ought to wait on him at dinner, and do any little thing for
  4099. him he wanted done.
  4100. Well, that was all easy, so we done it.  All through dinner Jim stood
  4101. around and waited on him, and says, “Will yo' Grace have some o' dis or
  4102. some o' dat?” and so on, and a body could see it was mighty pleasing to
  4103. him.
  4104. But the old man got pretty silent by and by--didn't have much to say, and
  4105. didn't look pretty comfortable over all that petting that was going on
  4106. around that duke.  He seemed to have something on his mind.  So, along
  4107. in the afternoon, he says:
  4108. “Looky here, Bilgewater,” he says, “I'm nation sorry for you, but you
  4109. ain't the only person that's had troubles like that.”
  4110. “No?”
  4111. “No you ain't.  You ain't the only person that's ben snaked down
  4112. wrongfully out'n a high place.”
  4113. “Alas!”
  4114. “No, you ain't the only person that's had a secret of his birth.”  And,
  4115. by jings, _he_ begins to cry.
  4116. “Hold!  What do you mean?”
  4117. “Bilgewater, kin I trust you?” says the old man, still sort of sobbing.
  4118. “To the bitter death!”  He took the old man by the hand and squeezed it,
  4119. and says, “That secret of your being:  speak!”
  4120. “Bilgewater, I am the late Dauphin!”
  4121. You bet you, Jim and me stared this time.  Then the duke says:
  4122. “You are what?”
  4123. “Yes, my friend, it is too true--your eyes is lookin' at this very moment
  4124. on the pore disappeared Dauphin, Looy the Seventeen, son of Looy the
  4125. Sixteen and Marry Antonette.”
  4126. “You!  At your age!  No!  You mean you're the late Charlemagne; you must
  4127. be six or seven hundred years old, at the very least.”
  4128. “Trouble has done it, Bilgewater, trouble has done it; trouble has brung
  4129. these gray hairs and this premature balditude.  Yes, gentlemen, you
  4130. see before you, in blue jeans and misery, the wanderin', exiled,
  4131. trampled-on, and sufferin' rightful King of France.”
  4132. Well, he cried and took on so that me and Jim didn't know hardly what to
  4133. do, we was so sorry--and so glad and proud we'd got him with us, too.
  4134.  So we set in, like we done before with the duke, and tried to comfort
  4135. _him_. But he said it warn't no use, nothing but to be dead and done
  4136. with it all could do him any good; though he said it often made him feel
  4137. easier and better for a while if people treated him according to his
  4138. rights, and got down on one knee to speak to him, and always called him
  4139. “Your Majesty,” and waited on him first at meals, and didn't set down
  4140. in his presence till he asked them. So Jim and me set to majestying him,
  4141. and doing this and that and t'other for him, and standing up till he
  4142. told us we might set down.  This done him heaps of good, and so he
  4143. got cheerful and comfortable.  But the duke kind of soured on him, and
  4144. didn't look a bit satisfied with the way things was going; still,
  4145. the king acted real friendly towards him, and said the duke's
  4146. great-grandfather and all the other Dukes of Bilgewater was a good
  4147. deal thought of by _his_ father, and was allowed to come to the palace
  4148. considerable; but the duke stayed huffy a good while, till by and by the
  4149. king says:
  4150. “Like as not we got to be together a blamed long time on this h-yer
  4151. raft, Bilgewater, and so what's the use o' your bein' sour?  It 'll only
  4152. make things oncomfortable.  It ain't my fault I warn't born a duke,
  4153. it ain't your fault you warn't born a king--so what's the use to worry?
  4154.  Make the best o' things the way you find 'em, says I--that's my motto.
  4155.  This ain't no bad thing that we've struck here--plenty grub and an easy
  4156. life--come, give us your hand, duke, and le's all be friends.”
  4157. The duke done it, and Jim and me was pretty glad to see it.  It took
  4158. away all the uncomfortableness and we felt mighty good over it, because
  4159. it would a been a miserable business to have any unfriendliness on the
  4160. raft; for what you want, above all things, on a raft, is for everybody
  4161. to be satisfied, and feel right and kind towards the others.
  4162. It didn't take me long to make up my mind that these liars warn't no
  4163. kings nor dukes at all, but just low-down humbugs and frauds.  But I
  4164. never said nothing, never let on; kept it to myself; it's the best way;
  4165. then you don't have no quarrels, and don't get into no trouble.  If they
  4166. wanted us to call them kings and dukes, I hadn't no objections, 'long as
  4167. it would keep peace in the family; and it warn't no use to tell Jim, so
  4168. I didn't tell him.  If I never learnt nothing else out of pap, I learnt
  4169. that the best way to get along with his kind of people is to let them
  4170. have their own way.
  4171. CHAPTER XX.
  4172. THEY asked us considerable many questions; wanted to know what we
  4173. covered up the raft that way for, and laid by in the daytime instead of
  4174. running--was Jim a runaway nigger?  Says I:
  4175. “Goodness sakes! would a runaway nigger run _south_?”
  4176. No, they allowed he wouldn't.  I had to account for things some way, so
  4177. I says:
  4178. “My folks was living in Pike County, in Missouri, where I was born, and
  4179. they all died off but me and pa and my brother Ike.  Pa, he 'lowed
  4180. he'd break up and go down and live with Uncle Ben, who's got a little
  4181. one-horse place on the river, forty-four mile below Orleans.  Pa was
  4182. pretty poor, and had some debts; so when he'd squared up there warn't
  4183. nothing left but sixteen dollars and our nigger, Jim.  That warn't
  4184. enough to take us fourteen hundred mile, deck passage nor no other way.
  4185.  Well, when the river rose pa had a streak of luck one day; he ketched
  4186. this piece of a raft; so we reckoned we'd go down to Orleans on it.
  4187.  Pa's luck didn't hold out; a steamboat run over the forrard corner of
  4188. the raft one night, and we all went overboard and dove under the wheel;
  4189. Jim and me come up all right, but pa was drunk, and Ike was only four
  4190. years old, so they never come up no more.  Well, for the next day or
  4191. two we had considerable trouble, because people was always coming out in
  4192. skiffs and trying to take Jim away from me, saying they believed he was
  4193. a runaway nigger.  We don't run daytimes no more now; nights they don't
  4194. bother us.”
  4195. The duke says:
  4196. “Leave me alone to cipher out a way so we can run in the daytime if we
  4197. want to.  I'll think the thing over--I'll invent a plan that'll fix it.
  4198. We'll let it alone for to-day, because of course we don't want to go by
  4199. that town yonder in daylight--it mightn't be healthy.”
  4200. Towards night it begun to darken up and look like rain; the heat
  4201. lightning was squirting around low down in the sky, and the leaves was
  4202. beginning to shiver--it was going to be pretty ugly, it was easy to see
  4203. that.  So the duke and the king went to overhauling our wigwam, to see
  4204. what the beds was like.  My bed was a straw tick better than Jim's,
  4205. which was a corn-shuck tick; there's always cobs around about in a shuck
  4206. tick, and they poke into you and hurt; and when you roll over the dry
  4207. shucks sound like you was rolling over in a pile of dead leaves; it
  4208. makes such a rustling that you wake up.  Well, the duke allowed he would
  4209. take my bed; but the king allowed he wouldn't.  He says:
  4210. “I should a reckoned the difference in rank would a sejested to you that
  4211. a corn-shuck bed warn't just fitten for me to sleep on.  Your Grace 'll
  4212. take the shuck bed yourself.”
  4213. Jim and me was in a sweat again for a minute, being afraid there was
  4214. going to be some more trouble amongst them; so we was pretty glad when
  4215. the duke says:
  4216. “'Tis my fate to be always ground into the mire under the iron heel of
  4217. oppression.  Misfortune has broken my once haughty spirit; I yield, I
  4218. submit; 'tis my fate.  I am alone in the world--let me suffer; can bear
  4219. it.”
  4220. We got away as soon as it was good and dark.  The king told us to stand
  4221. well out towards the middle of the river, and not show a light till we
  4222. got a long ways below the town.  We come in sight of the little bunch of
  4223. lights by and by--that was the town, you know--and slid by, about a half
  4224. a mile out, all right.  When we was three-quarters of a mile below we
  4225. hoisted up our signal lantern; and about ten o'clock it come on to rain
  4226. and blow and thunder and lighten like everything; so the king told us
  4227. to both stay on watch till the weather got better; then him and the duke
  4228. crawled into the wigwam and turned in for the night.  It was my watch
  4229. below till twelve, but I wouldn't a turned in anyway if I'd had a bed,
  4230. because a body don't see such a storm as that every day in the week, not
  4231. by a long sight.  My souls, how the wind did scream along!  And every
  4232. second or two there'd come a glare that lit up the white-caps for a half
  4233. a mile around, and you'd see the islands looking dusty through the rain,
  4234. and the trees thrashing around in the wind; then comes a H-WHACK!--bum!
  4235. bum! bumble-umble-um-bum-bum-bum-bum--and the thunder would go rumbling
  4236. and grumbling away, and quit--and then RIP comes another flash and
  4237. another sockdolager.  The waves most washed me off the raft sometimes,
  4238. but I hadn't any clothes on, and didn't mind.  We didn't have no trouble
  4239. about snags; the lightning was glaring and flittering around so constant
  4240. that we could see them plenty soon enough to throw her head this way or
  4241. that and miss them.
  4242. I had the middle watch, you know, but I was pretty sleepy by that time,
  4243. so Jim he said he would stand the first half of it for me; he was always
  4244. mighty good that way, Jim was.  I crawled into the wigwam, but the king
  4245. and the duke had their legs sprawled around so there warn't no show for
  4246. me; so I laid outside--I didn't mind the rain, because it was warm, and
  4247. the waves warn't running so high now.  About two they come up again,
  4248. though, and Jim was going to call me; but he changed his mind, because
  4249. he reckoned they warn't high enough yet to do any harm; but he was
  4250. mistaken about that, for pretty soon all of a sudden along comes a
  4251. regular ripper and washed me overboard.  It most killed Jim a-laughing.
  4252.  He was the easiest nigger to laugh that ever was, anyway.
  4253. I took the watch, and Jim he laid down and snored away; and by and by
  4254. the storm let up for good and all; and the first cabin-light that showed
  4255. I rousted him out, and we slid the raft into hiding quarters for the
  4256. day.
  4257. The king got out an old ratty deck of cards after breakfast, and him
  4258. and the duke played seven-up a while, five cents a game.  Then they got
  4259. tired of it, and allowed they would “lay out a campaign,” as they called
  4260. it. The duke went down into his carpet-bag, and fetched up a lot of
  4261. little printed bills and read them out loud.  One bill said, “The
  4262. celebrated Dr. Armand de Montalban, of Paris,” would “lecture on the
  4263. Science of Phrenology” at such and such a place, on the blank day of
  4264. blank, at ten cents admission, and “furnish charts of character at
  4265. twenty-five cents apiece.”  The duke said that was _him_.  In another
  4266. bill he was the “world-renowned Shakespearian tragedian, Garrick the
  4267. Younger, of Drury Lane, London.”  In other bills he had a lot of other
  4268. names and done other wonderful things, like finding water and gold with
  4269. a “divining-rod,” “dissipating witch spells,” and so on.  By and by he
  4270. says:
  4271. “But the histrionic muse is the darling.  Have you ever trod the boards,
  4272. Royalty?”
  4273. “No,” says the king.
  4274. “You shall, then, before you're three days older, Fallen Grandeur,” says
  4275. the duke. “The first good town we come to we'll hire a hall and do the
  4276. sword fight in Richard III. and the balcony scene in Romeo and Juliet.
  4277. How does that strike you?”
  4278. “I'm in, up to the hub, for anything that will pay, Bilgewater; but, you
  4279. see, I don't know nothing about play-actin', and hain't ever seen much
  4280. of it.  I was too small when pap used to have 'em at the palace.  Do you
  4281. reckon you can learn me?”
  4282. “Easy!”
  4283. “All right.  I'm jist a-freezn' for something fresh, anyway.  Le's
  4284. commence right away.”
  4285. So the duke he told him all about who Romeo was and who Juliet was, and
  4286. said he was used to being Romeo, so the king could be Juliet.
  4287. “But if Juliet's such a young gal, duke, my peeled head and my white
  4288. whiskers is goin' to look oncommon odd on her, maybe.”
  4289. “No, don't you worry; these country jakes won't ever think of that.
  4290. Besides, you know, you'll be in costume, and that makes all the
  4291. difference in the world; Juliet's in a balcony, enjoying the moonlight
  4292. before she goes to bed, and she's got on her night-gown and her ruffled
  4293. nightcap.  Here are the costumes for the parts.”
  4294. He got out two or three curtain-calico suits, which he said was
  4295. meedyevil armor for Richard III. and t'other chap, and a long white
  4296. cotton nightshirt and a ruffled nightcap to match.  The king was
  4297. satisfied; so the duke got out his book and read the parts over in the
  4298. most splendid spread-eagle way, prancing around and acting at the same
  4299. time, to show how it had got to be done; then he give the book to the
  4300. king and told him to get his part by heart.
  4301. There was a little one-horse town about three mile down the bend, and
  4302. after dinner the duke said he had ciphered out his idea about how to run
  4303. in daylight without it being dangersome for Jim; so he allowed he would
  4304. go down to the town and fix that thing.  The king allowed he would go,
  4305. too, and see if he couldn't strike something.  We was out of coffee, so
  4306. Jim said I better go along with them in the canoe and get some.
  4307. When we got there there warn't nobody stirring; streets empty, and
  4308. perfectly dead and still, like Sunday.  We found a sick nigger sunning
  4309. himself in a back yard, and he said everybody that warn't too young or
  4310. too sick or too old was gone to camp-meeting, about two mile back in the
  4311. woods.  The king got the directions, and allowed he'd go and work that
  4312. camp-meeting for all it was worth, and I might go, too.
  4313. The duke said what he was after was a printing-office.  We found it;
  4314. a little bit of a concern, up over a carpenter shop--carpenters and
  4315. printers all gone to the meeting, and no doors locked.  It was a dirty,
  4316. littered-up place, and had ink marks, and handbills with pictures of
  4317. horses and runaway niggers on them, all over the walls.  The duke shed
  4318. his coat and said he was all right now.  So me and the king lit out for
  4319. the camp-meeting.
  4320. We got there in about a half an hour fairly dripping, for it was a most
  4321. awful hot day.  There was as much as a thousand people there from
  4322. twenty mile around.  The woods was full of teams and wagons, hitched
  4323. everywheres, feeding out of the wagon-troughs and stomping to keep
  4324. off the flies.  There was sheds made out of poles and roofed over with
  4325. branches, where they had lemonade and gingerbread to sell, and piles of
  4326. watermelons and green corn and such-like truck.
  4327. The preaching was going on under the same kinds of sheds, only they was
  4328. bigger and held crowds of people.  The benches was made out of outside
  4329. slabs of logs, with holes bored in the round side to drive sticks into
  4330. for legs. They didn't have no backs.  The preachers had high platforms
  4331. to stand on at one end of the sheds.  The women had on sun-bonnets;
  4332. and some had linsey-woolsey frocks, some gingham ones, and a few of the
  4333. young ones had on calico.  Some of the young men was barefooted, and
  4334. some of the children didn't have on any clothes but just a tow-linen
  4335. shirt.  Some of the old women was knitting, and some of the young folks
  4336. was courting on the sly.
  4337. The first shed we come to the preacher was lining out a hymn.  He lined
  4338. out two lines, everybody sung it, and it was kind of grand to hear it,
  4339. there was so many of them and they done it in such a rousing way; then
  4340. he lined out two more for them to sing--and so on.  The people woke up
  4341. more and more, and sung louder and louder; and towards the end some
  4342. begun to groan, and some begun to shout.  Then the preacher begun to
  4343. preach, and begun in earnest, too; and went weaving first to one side of
  4344. the platform and then the other, and then a-leaning down over the front
  4345. of it, with his arms and his body going all the time, and shouting his
  4346. words out with all his might; and every now and then he would hold up
  4347. his Bible and spread it open, and kind of pass it around this way and
  4348. that, shouting, “It's the brazen serpent in the wilderness!  Look upon
  4349. it and live!”  And people would shout out, “Glory!--A-a-_men_!”  And so
  4350. he went on, and the people groaning and crying and saying amen:
  4351. “Oh, come to the mourners' bench! come, black with sin! (_Amen_!) come,
  4352. sick and sore! (_Amen_!) come, lame and halt and blind! (_Amen_!) come,
  4353. pore and needy, sunk in shame! (_A-A-Men_!) come, all that's worn and
  4354. soiled and suffering!--come with a broken spirit! come with a contrite
  4355. heart! come in your rags and sin and dirt! the waters that cleanse
  4356. is free, the door of heaven stands open--oh, enter in and be at rest!”
  4357. (_A-A-Men_!  _Glory, Glory Hallelujah!_)
  4358. And so on.  You couldn't make out what the preacher said any more, on
  4359. account of the shouting and crying.  Folks got up everywheres in the
  4360. crowd, and worked their way just by main strength to the mourners'
  4361. bench, with the tears running down their faces; and when all the
  4362. mourners had got up there to the front benches in a crowd, they sung and
  4363. shouted and flung themselves down on the straw, just crazy and wild.
  4364. Well, the first I knowed the king got a-going, and you could hear him
  4365. over everybody; and next he went a-charging up on to the platform, and
  4366. the preacher he begged him to speak to the people, and he done it.  He
  4367. told them he was a pirate--been a pirate for thirty years out in the
  4368. Indian Ocean--and his crew was thinned out considerable last spring in
  4369. a fight, and he was home now to take out some fresh men, and thanks to
  4370. goodness he'd been robbed last night and put ashore off of a steamboat
  4371. without a cent, and he was glad of it; it was the blessedest thing that
  4372. ever happened to him, because he was a changed man now, and happy for
  4373. the first time in his life; and, poor as he was, he was going to start
  4374. right off and work his way back to the Indian Ocean, and put in the rest
  4375. of his life trying to turn the pirates into the true path; for he could
  4376. do it better than anybody else, being acquainted with all pirate crews
  4377. in that ocean; and though it would take him a long time to get there
  4378. without money, he would get there anyway, and every time he convinced
  4379. a pirate he would say to him, “Don't you thank me, don't you give me no
  4380. credit; it all belongs to them dear people in Pokeville camp-meeting,
  4381. natural brothers and benefactors of the race, and that dear preacher
  4382. there, the truest friend a pirate ever had!”
  4383. And then he busted into tears, and so did everybody.  Then somebody
  4384. sings out, “Take up a collection for him, take up a collection!”  Well,
  4385. a half a dozen made a jump to do it, but somebody sings out, “Let _him_
  4386. pass the hat around!”  Then everybody said it, the preacher too.
  4387. So the king went all through the crowd with his hat swabbing his eyes,
  4388. and blessing the people and praising them and thanking them for being
  4389. so good to the poor pirates away off there; and every little while the
  4390. prettiest kind of girls, with the tears running down their cheeks, would
  4391. up and ask him would he let them kiss him for to remember him by; and he
  4392. always done it; and some of them he hugged and kissed as many as five or
  4393. six times--and he was invited to stay a week; and everybody wanted him to
  4394. live in their houses, and said they'd think it was an honor; but he said
  4395. as this was the last day of the camp-meeting he couldn't do no good, and
  4396. besides he was in a sweat to get to the Indian Ocean right off and go to
  4397. work on the pirates.
  4398. When we got back to the raft and he come to count up he found he had
  4399. collected eighty-seven dollars and seventy-five cents.  And then he had
  4400. fetched away a three-gallon jug of whisky, too, that he found under a
  4401. wagon when he was starting home through the woods.  The king said,
  4402. take it all around, it laid over any day he'd ever put in in the
  4403. missionarying line.  He said it warn't no use talking, heathens don't
  4404. amount to shucks alongside of pirates to work a camp-meeting with.
  4405. The duke was thinking _he'd_ been doing pretty well till the king come
  4406. to show up, but after that he didn't think so so much.  He had set
  4407. up and printed off two little jobs for farmers in that
  4408. printing-office--horse bills--and took the money, four dollars.  And he
  4409. had got in ten dollars' worth of advertisements for the paper, which he
  4410. said he would put in for four dollars if they would pay in advance--so
  4411. they done it. The price of the paper was two dollars a year, but he took
  4412. in three subscriptions for half a dollar apiece on condition of them
  4413. paying him in advance; they were going to pay in cordwood and onions as
  4414. usual, but he said he had just bought the concern and knocked down the
  4415. price as low as he could afford it, and was going to run it for cash.
  4416.  He set up a little piece of poetry, which he made, himself, out of
  4417. his own head--three verses--kind of sweet and saddish--the name of it was,
  4418. “Yes, crush, cold world, this breaking heart”--and he left that all set
  4419. up and ready to print in the paper, and didn't charge nothing for it.
  4420.  Well, he took in nine dollars and a half, and said he'd done a pretty
  4421. square day's work for it.
  4422. Then he showed us another little job he'd printed and hadn't charged
  4423. for, because it was for us.  It had a picture of a runaway nigger with
  4424. a bundle on a stick over his shoulder, and “$200 reward” under it.  The
  4425. reading was all about Jim, and just described him to a dot.  It said
  4426. he run away from St. Jacques' plantation, forty mile below New Orleans,
  4427. last winter, and likely went north, and whoever would catch him and send
  4428. him back he could have the reward and expenses.
  4429. “Now,” says the duke, “after to-night we can run in the daytime if we
  4430. want to.  Whenever we see anybody coming we can tie Jim hand and foot
  4431. with a rope, and lay him in the wigwam and show this handbill and say we
  4432. captured him up the river, and were too poor to travel on a steamboat,
  4433. so we got this little raft on credit from our friends and are going down
  4434. to get the reward.  Handcuffs and chains would look still better on Jim,
  4435. but it wouldn't go well with the story of us being so poor.  Too much
  4436. like jewelry.  Ropes are the correct thing--we must preserve the unities,
  4437. as we say on the boards.”
  4438. We all said the duke was pretty smart, and there couldn't be no trouble
  4439. about running daytimes.  We judged we could make miles enough that night
  4440. to get out of the reach of the powwow we reckoned the duke's work in
  4441. the printing office was going to make in that little town; then we could
  4442. boom right along if we wanted to.
  4443. We laid low and kept still, and never shoved out till nearly ten
  4444. o'clock; then we slid by, pretty wide away from the town, and didn't
  4445. hoist our lantern till we was clear out of sight of it.
  4446. When Jim called me to take the watch at four in the morning, he says:
  4447. “Huck, does you reck'n we gwyne to run acrost any mo' kings on dis
  4448. trip?”
  4449. “No,” I says, “I reckon not.”
  4450. “Well,” says he, “dat's all right, den.  I doan' mine one er two kings,
  4451. but dat's enough.  Dis one's powerful drunk, en de duke ain' much
  4452. better.”
  4453. I found Jim had been trying to get him to talk French, so he could hear
  4454. what it was like; but he said he had been in this country so long, and
  4455. had so much trouble, he'd forgot it.
  4456. CHAPTER XXI.
  4457. IT was after sun-up now, but we went right on and didn't tie up.  The
  4458. king and the duke turned out by and by looking pretty rusty; but after
  4459. they'd jumped overboard and took a swim it chippered them up a good
  4460. deal. After breakfast the king he took a seat on the corner of the raft,
  4461. and pulled off his boots and rolled up his britches, and let his legs
  4462. dangle in the water, so as to be comfortable, and lit his pipe, and went
  4463. to getting his Romeo and Juliet by heart.  When he had got it pretty
  4464. good him and the duke begun to practice it together.  The duke had to
  4465. learn him over and over again how to say every speech; and he made him
  4466. sigh, and put his hand on his heart, and after a while he said he done
  4467. it pretty well; “only,” he says, “you mustn't bellow out _Romeo_!
  4468. that way, like a bull--you must say it soft and sick and languishy,
  4469. so--R-o-o-meo! that is the idea; for Juliet's a dear sweet mere child of
  4470. a girl, you know, and she doesn't bray like a jackass.”
  4471. Well, next they got out a couple of long swords that the duke made out
  4472. of oak laths, and begun to practice the sword fight--the duke called
  4473. himself Richard III.; and the way they laid on and pranced around
  4474. the raft was grand to see.  But by and by the king tripped and fell
  4475. overboard, and after that they took a rest, and had a talk about all
  4476. kinds of adventures they'd had in other times along the river.
  4477. After dinner the duke says:
  4478. “Well, Capet, we'll want to make this a first-class show, you know, so
  4479. I guess we'll add a little more to it.  We want a little something to
  4480. answer encores with, anyway.”
  4481. “What's onkores, Bilgewater?”
  4482. The duke told him, and then says:
  4483. “I'll answer by doing the Highland fling or the sailor's hornpipe; and
  4484. you--well, let me see--oh, I've got it--you can do Hamlet's soliloquy.”
  4485. “Hamlet's which?”
  4486. “Hamlet's soliloquy, you know; the most celebrated thing in Shakespeare.
  4487. Ah, it's sublime, sublime!  Always fetches the house.  I haven't got
  4488. it in the book--I've only got one volume--but I reckon I can piece it out
  4489. from memory.  I'll just walk up and down a minute, and see if I can call
  4490. it back from recollection's vaults.”
  4491. So he went to marching up and down, thinking, and frowning horrible
  4492. every now and then; then he would hoist up his eyebrows; next he would
  4493. squeeze his hand on his forehead and stagger back and kind of moan; next
  4494. he would sigh, and next he'd let on to drop a tear.  It was beautiful
  4495. to see him. By and by he got it.  He told us to give attention.  Then
  4496. he strikes a most noble attitude, with one leg shoved forwards, and his
  4497. arms stretched away up, and his head tilted back, looking up at the sky;
  4498. and then he begins to rip and rave and grit his teeth; and after that,
  4499. all through his speech, he howled, and spread around, and swelled up his
  4500. chest, and just knocked the spots out of any acting ever I see before.
  4501.  This is the speech--I learned it, easy enough, while he was learning it
  4502. to the king:
  4503. To be, or not to be; that is the bare bodkin That makes calamity of
  4504. so long life; For who would fardels bear, till Birnam Wood do come
  4505. to Dunsinane, But that the fear of something after death Murders the
  4506. innocent sleep, Great nature's second course, And makes us rather sling
  4507. the arrows of outrageous fortune Than fly to others that we know not of.
  4508. There's the respect must give us pause: Wake Duncan with thy knocking! I
  4509. would thou couldst; For who would bear the whips and scorns of time, The
  4510. oppressor's wrong, the proud man's contumely, The law's delay, and the
  4511. quietus which his pangs might take. In the dead waste and middle of the
  4512. night, when churchyards yawn In customary suits of solemn black, But
  4513. that the undiscovered country from whose bourne no traveler returns,
  4514. Breathes forth contagion on the world, And thus the native hue of
  4515. resolution, like the poor cat i' the adage, Is sicklied o'er with care.
  4516. And all the clouds that lowered o'er our housetops, With this
  4517. regard their currents turn awry, And lose the name of action. 'Tis a
  4518. consummation devoutly to be wished. But soft you, the fair Ophelia: Ope
  4519. not thy ponderous and marble jaws. But get thee to a nunnery—go!
  4520. Well, the old man he liked that speech, and he mighty soon got it so he
  4521. could do it first rate. It seemed like he was just born for it; and when
  4522. he had his hand in and was excited, it was perfectly lovely the way he
  4523. would rip and tear and rair up behind when he was getting it off.
  4524. The first chance we got, the duke he had some show bills printed; and
  4525. after that, for two or three days as we floated along, the raft was a
  4526. most uncommon lively place, for there warn't nothing but sword-fighting
  4527. and rehearsing--as the duke called it--going on all the time. One morning,
  4528. when we was pretty well down the State of Arkansaw, we come in sight
  4529. of a little one-horse town in a big bend; so we tied up about
  4530. three-quarters of a mile above it, in the mouth of a crick which was
  4531. shut in like a tunnel by the cypress trees, and all of us but Jim took
  4532. the canoe and went down there to see if there was any chance in that
  4533. place for our show.
  4534. We struck it mighty lucky; there was going to be a circus there that
  4535. afternoon, and the country people was already beginning to come in, in
  4536. all kinds of old shackly wagons, and on horses. The circus would leave
  4537. before night, so our show would have a pretty good chance. The duke he
  4538. hired the court house, and we went around and stuck up our bills. They
  4539. read like this:
  4540. Shaksperean Revival!!!
  4541. Wonderful Attraction!
  4542. For One Night Only! The world renowned tragedians,
  4543. David Garrick the younger, of Drury Lane Theatre, London,
  4544. and
  4545. Edmund Kean the elder, of the Royal Haymarket Theatre, Whitechapel,
  4546. Pudding Lane, Piccadilly, London, and the Royal Continental Theatres, in
  4547. their sublime Shaksperean Spectacle entitled The Balcony Scene in
  4548. Romeo and Juliet!!!
  4549. Romeo...................................... Mr. Garrick.
  4550. Juliet..................................... Mr. Kean.
  4551. Assisted by the whole strength of the company!
  4552. New costumes, new scenery, new appointments!
  4553. Also:
  4554. The thrilling, masterly, and blood-curdling Broad-sword conflict In
  4555. Richard III.!!!
  4556. Richard III................................ Mr. Garrick.
  4557. Richmond................................... Mr. Kean.
  4558. also:
  4559. (by special request,)
  4560. Hamlet's Immortal Soliloquy!!
  4561. By the Illustrious Kean!
  4562. Done by him 300 consecutive nights in Paris!
  4563. For One Night Only,
  4564. On account of imperative European engagements!
  4565. Admission 25 cents; children and servants, 10 cents.
  4566. Then we went loafing around the town. The stores and houses was most all
  4567. old shackly dried-up frame concerns that hadn't ever been painted; they
  4568. was set up three or four foot above ground on stilts, so as to be out of
  4569. reach of the water when the river was overflowed. The houses had little
  4570. gardens around them, but they didn't seem to raise hardly anything in
  4571. them but jimpson weeds, and sunflowers, and ash-piles, and old curled-up
  4572. boots and shoes, and pieces of bottles, and rags, and played-out
  4573. tin-ware. The fences was made of different kinds of boards, nailed on
  4574. at different times; and they leaned every which-way, and had gates that
  4575. didn't generly have but one hinge--a leather one. Some of the fences
  4576. had been whitewashed, some time or another, but the duke said it was in
  4577. Clumbus's time, like enough. There was generly hogs in the garden, and
  4578. people driving them out.
  4579. All the stores was along one street.  They had white domestic awnings in
  4580. front, and the country people hitched their horses to the awning-posts.
  4581. There was empty drygoods boxes under the awnings, and loafers roosting
  4582. on them all day long, whittling them with their Barlow knives; and
  4583. chawing tobacco, and gaping and yawning and stretching--a mighty ornery
  4584. lot. They generly had on yellow straw hats most as wide as an umbrella,
  4585. but didn't wear no coats nor waistcoats, they called one another Bill,
  4586. and Buck, and Hank, and Joe, and Andy, and talked lazy and drawly, and
  4587. used considerable many cuss words.  There was as many as one loafer
  4588. leaning up against every awning-post, and he most always had his hands
  4589. in his britches-pockets, except when he fetched them out to lend a chaw
  4590. of tobacco or scratch.  What a body was hearing amongst them all the
  4591. time was:
  4592. “Gimme a chaw 'v tobacker, Hank.”
  4593. “Cain't; I hain't got but one chaw left.  Ask Bill.”
  4594. Maybe Bill he gives him a chaw; maybe he lies and says he ain't got
  4595. none. Some of them kinds of loafers never has a cent in the world, nor a
  4596. chaw of tobacco of their own.  They get all their chawing by borrowing;
  4597. they say to a fellow, “I wisht you'd len' me a chaw, Jack, I jist this
  4598. minute give Ben Thompson the last chaw I had”--which is a lie pretty
  4599. much everytime; it don't fool nobody but a stranger; but Jack ain't no
  4600. stranger, so he says:
  4601. “_You_ give him a chaw, did you?  So did your sister's cat's
  4602. grandmother. You pay me back the chaws you've awready borry'd off'n me,
  4603. Lafe Buckner, then I'll loan you one or two ton of it, and won't charge
  4604. you no back intrust, nuther.”
  4605. “Well, I _did_ pay you back some of it wunst.”
  4606. “Yes, you did--'bout six chaws.  You borry'd store tobacker and paid back
  4607. nigger-head.”
  4608. Store tobacco is flat black plug, but these fellows mostly chaws the
  4609. natural leaf twisted.  When they borrow a chaw they don't generly cut it
  4610. off with a knife, but set the plug in between their teeth, and gnaw with
  4611. their teeth and tug at the plug with their hands till they get it in
  4612. two; then sometimes the one that owns the tobacco looks mournful at it
  4613. when it's handed back, and says, sarcastic:
  4614. “Here, gimme the _chaw_, and you take the _plug_.”
  4615. All the streets and lanes was just mud; they warn't nothing else _but_
  4616. mud--mud as black as tar and nigh about a foot deep in some places,
  4617. and two or three inches deep in _all_ the places.  The hogs loafed and
  4618. grunted around everywheres.  You'd see a muddy sow and a litter of pigs
  4619. come lazying along the street and whollop herself right down in the way,
  4620. where folks had to walk around her, and she'd stretch out and shut her
  4621. eyes and wave her ears whilst the pigs was milking her, and look as
  4622. happy as if she was on salary. And pretty soon you'd hear a loafer
  4623. sing out, “Hi!  _so_ boy! sick him, Tige!” and away the sow would go,
  4624. squealing most horrible, with a dog or two swinging to each ear, and
  4625. three or four dozen more a-coming; and then you would see all the
  4626. loafers get up and watch the thing out of sight, and laugh at the fun
  4627. and look grateful for the noise.  Then they'd settle back again till
  4628. there was a dog fight.  There couldn't anything wake them up all over,
  4629. and make them happy all over, like a dog fight--unless it might be
  4630. putting turpentine on a stray dog and setting fire to him, or tying a
  4631. tin pan to his tail and see him run himself to death.
  4632. On the river front some of the houses was sticking out over the bank,
  4633. and they was bowed and bent, and about ready to tumble in. The people
  4634. had moved out of them.  The bank was caved away under one corner of some
  4635. others, and that corner was hanging over.  People lived in them yet, but
  4636. it was dangersome, because sometimes a strip of land as wide as a house
  4637. caves in at a time.  Sometimes a belt of land a quarter of a mile deep
  4638. will start in and cave along and cave along till it all caves into the
  4639. river in one summer. Such a town as that has to be always moving back,
  4640. and back, and back, because the river's always gnawing at it.
  4641. The nearer it got to noon that day the thicker and thicker was the
  4642. wagons and horses in the streets, and more coming all the time.
  4643.  Families fetched their dinners with them from the country, and eat them
  4644. in the wagons.  There was considerable whisky drinking going on, and I
  4645. seen three fights.  By and by somebody sings out:
  4646. “Here comes old Boggs!--in from the country for his little old monthly
  4647. drunk; here he comes, boys!”
  4648. All the loafers looked glad; I reckoned they was used to having fun out
  4649. of Boggs.  One of them says:
  4650. “Wonder who he's a-gwyne to chaw up this time.  If he'd a-chawed up all
  4651. the men he's ben a-gwyne to chaw up in the last twenty year he'd have
  4652. considerable ruputation now.”
  4653. Another one says, “I wisht old Boggs 'd threaten me, 'cuz then I'd know
  4654. I warn't gwyne to die for a thousan' year.”
  4655. Boggs comes a-tearing along on his horse, whooping and yelling like an
  4656. Injun, and singing out:
  4657. “Cler the track, thar.  I'm on the waw-path, and the price uv coffins is
  4658. a-gwyne to raise.”
  4659. He was drunk, and weaving about in his saddle; he was over fifty year
  4660. old, and had a very red face.  Everybody yelled at him and laughed at
  4661. him and sassed him, and he sassed back, and said he'd attend to them and
  4662. lay them out in their regular turns, but he couldn't wait now because
  4663. he'd come to town to kill old Colonel Sherburn, and his motto was, “Meat
  4664. first, and spoon vittles to top off on.”
  4665. He see me, and rode up and says:
  4666. “Whar'd you come f'm, boy?  You prepared to die?”
  4667. Then he rode on.  I was scared, but a man says:
  4668. “He don't mean nothing; he's always a-carryin' on like that when he's
  4669. drunk.  He's the best naturedest old fool in Arkansaw--never hurt nobody,
  4670. drunk nor sober.”
  4671. Boggs rode up before the biggest store in town, and bent his head down
  4672. so he could see under the curtain of the awning and yells:
  4673. “Come out here, Sherburn! Come out and meet the man you've swindled.
  4674. You're the houn' I'm after, and I'm a-gwyne to have you, too!”
  4675. And so he went on, calling Sherburn everything he could lay his tongue
  4676. to, and the whole street packed with people listening and laughing and
  4677. going on.  By and by a proud-looking man about fifty-five--and he was a
  4678. heap the best dressed man in that town, too--steps out of the store, and
  4679. the crowd drops back on each side to let him come.  He says to Boggs,
  4680. mighty ca'm and slow--he says:
  4681. “I'm tired of this, but I'll endure it till one o'clock.  Till one
  4682. o'clock, mind--no longer.  If you open your mouth against me only once
  4683. after that time you can't travel so far but I will find you.”
  4684. Then he turns and goes in.  The crowd looked mighty sober; nobody
  4685. stirred, and there warn't no more laughing.  Boggs rode off
  4686. blackguarding Sherburn as loud as he could yell, all down the street;
  4687. and pretty soon back he comes and stops before the store, still keeping
  4688. it up.  Some men crowded around him and tried to get him to shut up,
  4689. but he wouldn't; they told him it would be one o'clock in about fifteen
  4690. minutes, and so he _must_ go home--he must go right away.  But it didn't
  4691. do no good.  He cussed away with all his might, and throwed his hat down
  4692. in the mud and rode over it, and pretty soon away he went a-raging down
  4693. the street again, with his gray hair a-flying. Everybody that could get
  4694. a chance at him tried their best to coax him off of his horse so they
  4695. could lock him up and get him sober; but it warn't no use--up the street
  4696. he would tear again, and give Sherburn another cussing.  By and by
  4697. somebody says:
  4698. “Go for his daughter!--quick, go for his daughter; sometimes he'll listen
  4699. to her.  If anybody can persuade him, she can.”
  4700. So somebody started on a run.  I walked down street a ways and stopped.
  4701. In about five or ten minutes here comes Boggs again, but not on his
  4702. horse.  He was a-reeling across the street towards me, bare-headed, with
  4703. a friend on both sides of him a-holt of his arms and hurrying him along.
  4704. He was quiet, and looked uneasy; and he warn't hanging back any, but was
  4705. doing some of the hurrying himself.  Somebody sings out:
  4706. “Boggs!”
  4707. I looked over there to see who said it, and it was that Colonel
  4708. Sherburn. He was standing perfectly still in the street, and had a
  4709. pistol raised in his right hand--not aiming it, but holding it out with
  4710. the barrel tilted up towards the sky.  The same second I see a young
  4711. girl coming on the run, and two men with her.  Boggs and the men turned
  4712. round to see who called him, and when they see the pistol the men
  4713. jumped to one side, and the pistol-barrel come down slow and steady to
  4714. a level--both barrels cocked. Boggs throws up both of his hands and says,
  4715. “O Lord, don't shoot!”  Bang! goes the first shot, and he staggers back,
  4716. clawing at the air--bang! goes the second one, and he tumbles backwards
  4717. on to the ground, heavy and solid, with his arms spread out.  That young
  4718. girl screamed out and comes rushing, and down she throws herself on her
  4719. father, crying, and saying, “Oh, he's killed him, he's killed him!”  The
  4720. crowd closed up around them, and shouldered and jammed one another, with
  4721. their necks stretched, trying to see, and people on the inside trying to
  4722. shove them back and shouting, “Back, back! give him air, give him air!”
  4723. Colonel Sherburn he tossed his pistol on to the ground, and turned
  4724. around on his heels and walked off.
  4725. They took Boggs to a little drug store, the crowd pressing around just
  4726. the same, and the whole town following, and I rushed and got a good
  4727. place at the window, where I was close to him and could see in.  They
  4728. laid him on the floor and put one large Bible under his head, and opened
  4729. another one and spread it on his breast; but they tore open his shirt
  4730. first, and I seen where one of the bullets went in.  He made about a
  4731. dozen long gasps, his breast lifting the Bible up when he drawed in his
  4732. breath, and letting it down again when he breathed it out--and after that
  4733. he laid still; he was dead.  Then they pulled his daughter away from
  4734. him, screaming and crying, and took her off.  She was about sixteen, and
  4735. very sweet and gentle looking, but awful pale and scared.
  4736. Well, pretty soon the whole town was there, squirming and scrouging and
  4737. pushing and shoving to get at the window and have a look, but people
  4738. that had the places wouldn't give them up, and folks behind them was
  4739. saying all the time, “Say, now, you've looked enough, you fellows;
  4740. 'tain't right and 'tain't fair for you to stay thar all the time, and
  4741. never give nobody a chance; other folks has their rights as well as
  4742. you.”
  4743. There was considerable jawing back, so I slid out, thinking maybe
  4744. there was going to be trouble.  The streets was full, and everybody was
  4745. excited. Everybody that seen the shooting was telling how it happened,
  4746. and there was a big crowd packed around each one of these fellows,
  4747. stretching their necks and listening.  One long, lanky man, with long
  4748. hair and a big white fur stovepipe hat on the back of his head, and a
  4749. crooked-handled cane, marked out the places on the ground where Boggs
  4750. stood and where Sherburn stood, and the people following him around from
  4751. one place to t'other and watching everything he done, and bobbing their
  4752. heads to show they understood, and stooping a little and resting their
  4753. hands on their thighs to watch him mark the places on the ground with
  4754. his cane; and then he stood up straight and stiff where Sherburn had
  4755. stood, frowning and having his hat-brim down over his eyes, and sung
  4756. out, “Boggs!” and then fetched his cane down slow to a level, and says
  4757. “Bang!” staggered backwards, says “Bang!” again, and fell down flat on
  4758. his back. The people that had seen the thing said he done it perfect;
  4759. said it was just exactly the way it all happened.  Then as much as a
  4760. dozen people got out their bottles and treated him.
  4761. Well, by and by somebody said Sherburn ought to be lynched.  In about a
  4762. minute everybody was saying it; so away they went, mad and yelling, and
  4763. snatching down every clothes-line they come to to do the hanging with.
  4764. CHAPTER XXII.
  4765. THEY swarmed up towards Sherburn's house, a-whooping and raging like
  4766. Injuns, and everything had to clear the way or get run over and tromped
  4767. to mush, and it was awful to see.  Children was heeling it ahead of the
  4768. mob, screaming and trying to get out of the way; and every window along
  4769. the road was full of women's heads, and there was nigger boys in every
  4770. tree, and bucks and wenches looking over every fence; and as soon as the
  4771. mob would get nearly to them they would break and skaddle back out of
  4772. reach.  Lots of the women and girls was crying and taking on, scared
  4773. most to death.
  4774. They swarmed up in front of Sherburn's palings as thick as they could
  4775. jam together, and you couldn't hear yourself think for the noise.  It
  4776. was a little twenty-foot yard.  Some sung out “Tear down the fence! tear
  4777. down the fence!”  Then there was a racket of ripping and tearing and
  4778. smashing, and down she goes, and the front wall of the crowd begins to
  4779. roll in like a wave.
  4780. Just then Sherburn steps out on to the roof of his little front porch,
  4781. with a double-barrel gun in his hand, and takes his stand, perfectly
  4782. ca'm and deliberate, not saying a word.  The racket stopped, and the
  4783. wave sucked back.
  4784. Sherburn never said a word--just stood there, looking down.  The
  4785. stillness was awful creepy and uncomfortable.  Sherburn run his eye slow
  4786. along the crowd; and wherever it struck the people tried a little to
  4787. out-gaze him, but they couldn't; they dropped their eyes and looked
  4788. sneaky. Then pretty soon Sherburn sort of laughed; not the pleasant
  4789. kind, but the kind that makes you feel like when you are eating bread
  4790. that's got sand in it.
  4791. Then he says, slow and scornful:
  4792. “The idea of _you_ lynching anybody!  It's amusing.  The idea of you
  4793. thinking you had pluck enough to lynch a _man_!  Because you're brave
  4794. enough to tar and feather poor friendless cast-out women that come along
  4795. here, did that make you think you had grit enough to lay your hands on a
  4796. _man_?  Why, a _man's_ safe in the hands of ten thousand of your kind--as
  4797. long as it's daytime and you're not behind him.
  4798. “Do I know you?  I know you clear through. I was born and raised in the
  4799. South, and I've lived in the North; so I know the average all around.
  4800. The average man's a coward.  In the North he lets anybody walk over him
  4801. that wants to, and goes home and prays for a humble spirit to bear it.
  4802. In the South one man all by himself, has stopped a stage full of men
  4803. in the daytime, and robbed the lot.  Your newspapers call you a
  4804. brave people so much that you think you are braver than any other
  4805. people--whereas you're just _as_ brave, and no braver.  Why don't your
  4806. juries hang murderers?  Because they're afraid the man's friends will
  4807. shoot them in the back, in the dark--and it's just what they _would_ do.
  4808. “So they always acquit; and then a _man_ goes in the night, with a
  4809. hundred masked cowards at his back and lynches the rascal.  Your mistake
  4810. is, that you didn't bring a man with you; that's one mistake, and the
  4811. other is that you didn't come in the dark and fetch your masks.  You
  4812. brought _part_ of a man--Buck Harkness, there--and if you hadn't had him
  4813. to start you, you'd a taken it out in blowing.
  4814. “You didn't want to come.  The average man don't like trouble and
  4815. danger. _You_ don't like trouble and danger.  But if only _half_ a
  4816. man--like Buck Harkness, there--shouts 'Lynch him! lynch him!' you're
  4817. afraid to back down--afraid you'll be found out to be what you
  4818. are--_cowards_--and so you raise a yell, and hang yourselves on to that
  4819. half-a-man's coat-tail, and come raging up here, swearing what big
  4820. things you're going to do. The pitifulest thing out is a mob; that's
  4821. what an army is--a mob; they don't fight with courage that's born in
  4822. them, but with courage that's borrowed from their mass, and from their
  4823. officers.  But a mob without any _man_ at the head of it is _beneath_
  4824. pitifulness.  Now the thing for _you_ to do is to droop your tails and
  4825. go home and crawl in a hole.  If any real lynching's going to be done it
  4826. will be done in the dark, Southern fashion; and when they come they'll
  4827. bring their masks, and fetch a _man_ along.  Now _leave_--and take your
  4828. half-a-man with you”--tossing his gun up across his left arm and cocking
  4829. it when he says this.
  4830. The crowd washed back sudden, and then broke all apart, and went tearing
  4831. off every which way, and Buck Harkness he heeled it after them, looking
  4832. tolerable cheap.  I could a stayed if I wanted to, but I didn't want to.
  4833. I went to the circus and loafed around the back side till the watchman
  4834. went by, and then dived in under the tent.  I had my twenty-dollar gold
  4835. piece and some other money, but I reckoned I better save it, because
  4836. there ain't no telling how soon you are going to need it, away from
  4837. home and amongst strangers that way.  You can't be too careful.  I ain't
  4838. opposed to spending money on circuses when there ain't no other way, but
  4839. there ain't no use in _wasting_ it on them.
  4840. It was a real bully circus.  It was the splendidest sight that ever was
  4841. when they all come riding in, two and two, a gentleman and lady, side
  4842. by side, the men just in their drawers and undershirts, and no shoes
  4843. nor stirrups, and resting their hands on their thighs easy and
  4844. comfortable--there must a been twenty of them--and every lady with a
  4845. lovely complexion, and perfectly beautiful, and looking just like a gang
  4846. of real sure-enough queens, and dressed in clothes that cost millions of
  4847. dollars, and just littered with diamonds.  It was a powerful fine sight;
  4848. I never see anything so lovely.  And then one by one they got up
  4849. and stood, and went a-weaving around the ring so gentle and wavy and
  4850. graceful, the men looking ever so tall and airy and straight, with their
  4851. heads bobbing and skimming along, away up there under the tent-roof, and
  4852. every lady's rose-leafy dress flapping soft and silky around her hips,
  4853. and she looking like the most loveliest parasol.
  4854. And then faster and faster they went, all of them dancing, first one
  4855. foot out in the air and then the other, the horses leaning more and
  4856. more, and the ringmaster going round and round the center-pole, cracking
  4857. his whip and shouting “Hi!--hi!” and the clown cracking jokes behind
  4858. him; and by and by all hands dropped the reins, and every lady put her
  4859. knuckles on her hips and every gentleman folded his arms, and then how
  4860. the horses did lean over and hump themselves!  And so one after the
  4861. other they all skipped off into the ring, and made the sweetest bow I
  4862. ever see, and then scampered out, and everybody clapped their hands and
  4863. went just about wild.
  4864. Well, all through the circus they done the most astonishing things; and
  4865. all the time that clown carried on so it most killed the people.  The
  4866. ringmaster couldn't ever say a word to him but he was back at him quick
  4867. as a wink with the funniest things a body ever said; and how he ever
  4868. _could_ think of so many of them, and so sudden and so pat, was what I
  4869. couldn't noway understand. Why, I couldn't a thought of them in a year.
  4870. And by and by a drunk man tried to get into the ring--said he wanted to
  4871. ride; said he could ride as well as anybody that ever was.  They argued
  4872. and tried to keep him out, but he wouldn't listen, and the whole show
  4873. come to a standstill.  Then the people begun to holler at him and make
  4874. fun of him, and that made him mad, and he begun to rip and tear; so that
  4875. stirred up the people, and a lot of men begun to pile down off of the
  4876. benches and swarm towards the ring, saying, “Knock him down! throw him
  4877. out!” and one or two women begun to scream.  So, then, the ringmaster
  4878. he made a little speech, and said he hoped there wouldn't be no
  4879. disturbance, and if the man would promise he wouldn't make no more
  4880. trouble he would let him ride if he thought he could stay on the horse.
  4881.  So everybody laughed and said all right, and the man got on. The minute
  4882. he was on, the horse begun to rip and tear and jump and cavort around,
  4883. with two circus men hanging on to his bridle trying to hold him, and the
  4884. drunk man hanging on to his neck, and his heels flying in the air every
  4885. jump, and the whole crowd of people standing up shouting and laughing
  4886. till tears rolled down.  And at last, sure enough, all the circus men
  4887. could do, the horse broke loose, and away he went like the very nation,
  4888. round and round the ring, with that sot laying down on him and hanging
  4889. to his neck, with first one leg hanging most to the ground on one side,
  4890. and then t'other one on t'other side, and the people just crazy.  It
  4891. warn't funny to me, though; I was all of a tremble to see his danger.
  4892.  But pretty soon he struggled up astraddle and grabbed the bridle,
  4893. a-reeling this way and that; and the next minute he sprung up and
  4894. dropped the bridle and stood! and the horse a-going like a house afire
  4895. too.  He just stood up there, a-sailing around as easy and comfortable
  4896. as if he warn't ever drunk in his life--and then he begun to pull off his
  4897. clothes and sling them.  He shed them so thick they kind of clogged up
  4898. the air, and altogether he shed seventeen suits. And, then, there he
  4899. was, slim and handsome, and dressed the gaudiest and prettiest you
  4900. ever saw, and he lit into that horse with his whip and made him fairly
  4901. hum--and finally skipped off, and made his bow and danced off to
  4902. the dressing-room, and everybody just a-howling with pleasure and
  4903. astonishment.
  4904. Then the ringmaster he see how he had been fooled, and he _was_ the
  4905. sickest ringmaster you ever see, I reckon.  Why, it was one of his own
  4906. men!  He had got up that joke all out of his own head, and never let on
  4907. to nobody. Well, I felt sheepish enough to be took in so, but I wouldn't
  4908. a been in that ringmaster's place, not for a thousand dollars.  I don't
  4909. know; there may be bullier circuses than what that one was, but I
  4910. never struck them yet. Anyways, it was plenty good enough for _me_; and
  4911. wherever I run across it, it can have all of _my_ custom every time.
  4912. Well, that night we had _our_ show; but there warn't only about twelve
  4913. people there--just enough to pay expenses.  And they laughed all the
  4914. time, and that made the duke mad; and everybody left, anyway, before
  4915. the show was over, but one boy which was asleep.  So the duke said these
  4916. Arkansaw lunkheads couldn't come up to Shakespeare; what they wanted
  4917. was low comedy--and maybe something ruther worse than low comedy, he
  4918. reckoned.  He said he could size their style.  So next morning he got
  4919. some big sheets of wrapping paper and some black paint, and drawed off
  4920. some handbills, and stuck them up all over the village.  The bills said:
  4921. CHAPTER XXIII.
  4922. WELL, all day him and the king was hard at it, rigging up a stage and
  4923. a curtain and a row of candles for footlights; and that night the house
  4924. was jam full of men in no time.  When the place couldn't hold no more,
  4925. the duke he quit tending door and went around the back way and come on
  4926. to the stage and stood up before the curtain and made a little speech,
  4927. and praised up this tragedy, and said it was the most thrillingest one
  4928. that ever was; and so he went on a-bragging about the tragedy, and about
  4929. Edmund Kean the Elder, which was to play the main principal part in it;
  4930. and at last when he'd got everybody's expectations up high enough, he
  4931. rolled up the curtain, and the next minute the king come a-prancing
  4932. out on all fours, naked; and he was painted all over,
  4933. ring-streaked-and-striped, all sorts of colors, as splendid as a
  4934. rainbow.  And--but never mind the rest of his outfit; it was just wild,
  4935. but it was awful funny. The people most killed themselves laughing; and
  4936. when the king got done capering and capered off behind the scenes, they
  4937. roared and clapped and stormed and haw-hawed till he come back and done
  4938. it over again, and after that they made him do it another time. Well, it
  4939. would make a cow laugh to see the shines that old idiot cut.
  4940. Then the duke he lets the curtain down, and bows to the people, and says
  4941. the great tragedy will be performed only two nights more, on accounts of
  4942. pressing London engagements, where the seats is all sold already for it
  4943. in Drury Lane; and then he makes them another bow, and says if he has
  4944. succeeded in pleasing them and instructing them, he will be deeply
  4945. obleeged if they will mention it to their friends and get them to come
  4946. and see it.
  4947. Twenty people sings out:
  4948. “What, is it over?  Is that _all_?”
  4949. The duke says yes.  Then there was a fine time.  Everybody sings
  4950. out, “Sold!” and rose up mad, and was a-going for that stage and them
  4951. tragedians.  But a big, fine looking man jumps up on a bench and shouts:
  4952. “Hold on!  Just a word, gentlemen.”  They stopped to listen. “We are
  4953. sold--mighty badly sold.  But we don't want to be the laughing stock of
  4954. this whole town, I reckon, and never hear the last of this thing as long
  4955. as we live.  _No_.  What we want is to go out of here quiet, and talk
  4956. this show up, and sell the _rest_ of the town!  Then we'll all be in the
  4957. same boat.  Ain't that sensible?” (“You bet it is!--the jedge is right!”
  4958. everybody sings out.) “All right, then--not a word about any sell.  Go
  4959. along home, and advise everybody to come and see the tragedy.”
  4960. Next day you couldn't hear nothing around that town but how splendid
  4961. that show was.  House was jammed again that night, and we sold this
  4962. crowd the same way.  When me and the king and the duke got home to the
  4963. raft we all had a supper; and by and by, about midnight, they made Jim
  4964. and me back her out and float her down the middle of the river, and
  4965. fetch her in and hide her about two mile below town.
  4966. The third night the house was crammed again--and they warn't new-comers
  4967. this time, but people that was at the show the other two nights.  I
  4968. stood by the duke at the door, and I see that every man that went in had
  4969. his pockets bulging, or something muffled up under his coat--and I see it
  4970. warn't no perfumery, neither, not by a long sight.  I smelt sickly eggs
  4971. by the barrel, and rotten cabbages, and such things; and if I know the
  4972. signs of a dead cat being around, and I bet I do, there was sixty-four
  4973. of them went in.  I shoved in there for a minute, but it was too various
  4974. for me; I couldn't stand it.  Well, when the place couldn't hold no more
  4975. people the duke he give a fellow a quarter and told him to tend door
  4976. for him a minute, and then he started around for the stage door, I after
  4977. him; but the minute we turned the corner and was in the dark he says:
  4978. “Walk fast now till you get away from the houses, and then shin for the
  4979. raft like the dickens was after you!”
  4980. I done it, and he done the same.  We struck the raft at the same time,
  4981. and in less than two seconds we was gliding down stream, all dark and
  4982. still, and edging towards the middle of the river, nobody saying a
  4983. word. I reckoned the poor king was in for a gaudy time of it with the
  4984. audience, but nothing of the sort; pretty soon he crawls out from under
  4985. the wigwam, and says:
  4986. “Well, how'd the old thing pan out this time, duke?”  He hadn't been
  4987. up-town at all.
  4988. We never showed a light till we was about ten mile below the village.
  4989. Then we lit up and had a supper, and the king and the duke fairly
  4990. laughed their bones loose over the way they'd served them people.  The
  4991. duke says:
  4992. “Greenhorns, flatheads!  I knew the first house would keep mum and let
  4993. the rest of the town get roped in; and I knew they'd lay for us the
  4994. third night, and consider it was _their_ turn now.  Well, it _is_ their
  4995. turn, and I'd give something to know how much they'd take for it.  I
  4996. _would_ just like to know how they're putting in their opportunity.
  4997.  They can turn it into a picnic if they want to--they brought plenty
  4998. provisions.”
  4999. Them rapscallions took in four hundred and sixty-five dollars in that
  5000. three nights.  I never see money hauled in by the wagon-load like that
  5001. before.  By and by, when they was asleep and snoring, Jim says:
  5002. “Don't it s'prise you de way dem kings carries on, Huck?”
  5003. “No,” I says, “it don't.”
  5004. “Why don't it, Huck?”
  5005. “Well, it don't, because it's in the breed.  I reckon they're all
  5006. alike.”
  5007. “But, Huck, dese kings o' ourn is reglar rapscallions; dat's jist what
  5008. dey is; dey's reglar rapscallions.”
  5009. “Well, that's what I'm a-saying; all kings is mostly rapscallions, as
  5010. fur as I can make out.”
  5011. “Is dat so?”
  5012. “You read about them once--you'll see.  Look at Henry the Eight; this 'n
  5013. 's a Sunday-school Superintendent to _him_.  And look at Charles Second,
  5014. and Louis Fourteen, and Louis Fifteen, and James Second, and Edward
  5015. Second, and Richard Third, and forty more; besides all them Saxon
  5016. heptarchies that used to rip around so in old times and raise Cain.  My,
  5017. you ought to seen old Henry the Eight when he was in bloom.  He _was_ a
  5018. blossom.  He used to marry a new wife every day, and chop off her head
  5019. next morning.  And he would do it just as indifferent as if he was
  5020. ordering up eggs. 'Fetch up Nell Gwynn,' he says.  They fetch her up.
  5021. Next morning, 'Chop off her head!'  And they chop it off. 'Fetch up
  5022. Jane Shore,' he says; and up she comes, Next morning, 'Chop off her
  5023. head'--and they chop it off. 'Ring up Fair Rosamun.'  Fair Rosamun
  5024. answers the bell.  Next morning, 'Chop off her head.'  And he made every
  5025. one of them tell him a tale every night; and he kept that up till he had
  5026. hogged a thousand and one tales that way, and then he put them all in a
  5027. book, and called it Domesday Book--which was a good name and stated the
  5028. case.  You don't know kings, Jim, but I know them; and this old rip
  5029. of ourn is one of the cleanest I've struck in history.  Well, Henry he
  5030. takes a notion he wants to get up some trouble with this country. How
  5031. does he go at it--give notice?--give the country a show?  No.  All of a
  5032. sudden he heaves all the tea in Boston Harbor overboard, and whacks
  5033. out a declaration of independence, and dares them to come on.  That was
  5034. _his_ style--he never give anybody a chance.  He had suspicions of his
  5035. father, the Duke of Wellington.  Well, what did he do?  Ask him to show
  5036. up?  No--drownded him in a butt of mamsey, like a cat.  S'pose people
  5037. left money laying around where he was--what did he do?  He collared it.
  5038.  S'pose he contracted to do a thing, and you paid him, and didn't set
  5039. down there and see that he done it--what did he do?  He always done the
  5040. other thing. S'pose he opened his mouth--what then?  If he didn't shut it
  5041. up powerful quick he'd lose a lie every time.  That's the kind of a bug
  5042. Henry was; and if we'd a had him along 'stead of our kings he'd a fooled
  5043. that town a heap worse than ourn done.  I don't say that ourn is lambs,
  5044. because they ain't, when you come right down to the cold facts; but they
  5045. ain't nothing to _that_ old ram, anyway.  All I say is, kings is kings,
  5046. and you got to make allowances.  Take them all around, they're a mighty
  5047. ornery lot. It's the way they're raised.”
  5048. “But dis one do _smell_ so like de nation, Huck.”
  5049. “Well, they all do, Jim.  We can't help the way a king smells; history
  5050. don't tell no way.”
  5051. “Now de duke, he's a tolerble likely man in some ways.”
  5052. “Yes, a duke's different.  But not very different.  This one's
  5053. a middling hard lot for a duke.  When he's drunk there ain't no
  5054. near-sighted man could tell him from a king.”
  5055. “Well, anyways, I doan' hanker for no mo' un um, Huck.  Dese is all I
  5056. kin stan'.”
  5057. “It's the way I feel, too, Jim.  But we've got them on our hands, and we
  5058. got to remember what they are, and make allowances.  Sometimes I wish we
  5059. could hear of a country that's out of kings.”
  5060. What was the use to tell Jim these warn't real kings and dukes?  It
  5061. wouldn't a done no good; and, besides, it was just as I said:  you
  5062. couldn't tell them from the real kind.
  5063. I went to sleep, and Jim didn't call me when it was my turn.  He often
  5064. done that.  When I waked up just at daybreak he was sitting there with
  5065. his head down betwixt his knees, moaning and mourning to himself.  I
  5066. didn't take notice nor let on.  I knowed what it was about.  He was
  5067. thinking about his wife and his children, away up yonder, and he was low
  5068. and homesick; because he hadn't ever been away from home before in his
  5069. life; and I do believe he cared just as much for his people as white
  5070. folks does for their'n.  It don't seem natural, but I reckon it's so.
  5071.  He was often moaning and mourning that way nights, when he judged I
  5072. was asleep, and saying, “Po' little 'Lizabeth! po' little Johnny! it's
  5073. mighty hard; I spec' I ain't ever gwyne to see you no mo', no mo'!”  He
  5074. was a mighty good nigger, Jim was.
  5075. But this time I somehow got to talking to him about his wife and young
  5076. ones; and by and by he says:
  5077. “What makes me feel so bad dis time 'uz bekase I hear sumpn over yonder
  5078. on de bank like a whack, er a slam, while ago, en it mine me er de time
  5079. I treat my little 'Lizabeth so ornery.  She warn't on'y 'bout fo' year
  5080. ole, en she tuck de sk'yarlet fever, en had a powful rough spell; but
  5081. she got well, en one day she was a-stannin' aroun', en I says to her, I
  5082. says:
  5083. “'Shet de do'.'
  5084. “She never done it; jis' stood dah, kiner smilin' up at me.  It make me
  5085. mad; en I says agin, mighty loud, I says:
  5086. “'Doan' you hear me?  Shet de do'!'
  5087. “She jis stood de same way, kiner smilin' up.  I was a-bilin'!  I says:
  5088. “'I lay I _make_ you mine!'
  5089. “En wid dat I fetch' her a slap side de head dat sont her a-sprawlin'.
  5090. Den I went into de yuther room, en 'uz gone 'bout ten minutes; en when
  5091. I come back dah was dat do' a-stannin' open _yit_, en dat chile stannin'
  5092. mos' right in it, a-lookin' down and mournin', en de tears runnin' down.
  5093.  My, but I _wuz_ mad!  I was a-gwyne for de chile, but jis' den--it was a
  5094. do' dat open innerds--jis' den, 'long come de wind en slam it to, behine
  5095. de chile, ker-BLAM!--en my lan', de chile never move'!  My breff mos'
  5096. hop outer me; en I feel so--so--I doan' know HOW I feel.  I crope out,
  5097. all a-tremblin', en crope aroun' en open de do' easy en slow, en poke my
  5098. head in behine de chile, sof' en still, en all uv a sudden I says POW!
  5099. jis' as loud as I could yell.  _She never budge!_  Oh, Huck, I bust out
  5100. a-cryin' en grab her up in my arms, en say, 'Oh, de po' little thing!
  5101.  De Lord God Amighty fogive po' ole Jim, kaze he never gwyne to fogive
  5102. hisself as long's he live!'  Oh, she was plumb deef en dumb, Huck, plumb
  5103. deef en dumb--en I'd ben a-treat'n her so!”
  5104. CHAPTER XXIV.
  5105. NEXT day, towards night, we laid up under a little willow towhead out in
  5106. the middle, where there was a village on each side of the river, and the
  5107. duke and the king begun to lay out a plan for working them towns.  Jim
  5108. he spoke to the duke, and said he hoped it wouldn't take but a few
  5109. hours, because it got mighty heavy and tiresome to him when he had to
  5110. lay all day in the wigwam tied with the rope.  You see, when we left him
  5111. all alone we had to tie him, because if anybody happened on to him all
  5112. by himself and not tied it wouldn't look much like he was a runaway
  5113. nigger, you know. So the duke said it _was_ kind of hard to have to lay
  5114. roped all day, and he'd cipher out some way to get around it.
  5115. He was uncommon bright, the duke was, and he soon struck it.  He dressed
  5116. Jim up in King Lear's outfit--it was a long curtain-calico gown, and a
  5117. white horse-hair wig and whiskers; and then he took his theater paint
  5118. and painted Jim's face and hands and ears and neck all over a dead,
  5119. dull, solid blue, like a man that's been drownded nine days.  Blamed if
  5120. he warn't the horriblest looking outrage I ever see.  Then the duke took
  5121. and wrote out a sign on a shingle so:
  5122. Sick Arab--but harmless when not out of his head.
  5123. And he nailed that shingle to a lath, and stood the lath up four or five
  5124. foot in front of the wigwam.  Jim was satisfied.  He said it was a sight
  5125. better than lying tied a couple of years every day, and trembling all
  5126. over every time there was a sound.  The duke told him to make himself
  5127. free and easy, and if anybody ever come meddling around, he must hop
  5128. out of the wigwam, and carry on a little, and fetch a howl or two like
  5129. a wild beast, and he reckoned they would light out and leave him alone.
  5130.  Which was sound enough judgment; but you take the average man, and he
  5131. wouldn't wait for him to howl.  Why, he didn't only look like he was
  5132. dead, he looked considerable more than that.
  5133. These rapscallions wanted to try the Nonesuch again, because there was
  5134. so much money in it, but they judged it wouldn't be safe, because maybe
  5135. the news might a worked along down by this time.  They couldn't hit no
  5136. project that suited exactly; so at last the duke said he reckoned he'd
  5137. lay off and work his brains an hour or two and see if he couldn't put up
  5138. something on the Arkansaw village; and the king he allowed he would drop
  5139. over to t'other village without any plan, but just trust in Providence
  5140. to lead him the profitable way--meaning the devil, I reckon.  We had all
  5141. bought store clothes where we stopped last; and now the king put his'n
  5142. on, and he told me to put mine on.  I done it, of course.  The king's
  5143. duds was all black, and he did look real swell and starchy.  I never
  5144. knowed how clothes could change a body before.  Why, before, he looked
  5145. like the orneriest old rip that ever was; but now, when he'd take off
  5146. his new white beaver and make a bow and do a smile, he looked that grand
  5147. and good and pious that you'd say he had walked right out of the ark,
  5148. and maybe was old Leviticus himself.  Jim cleaned up the canoe, and I
  5149. got my paddle ready.  There was a big steamboat laying at the shore away
  5150. up under the point, about three mile above the town--been there a couple
  5151. of hours, taking on freight.  Says the king:
  5152. “Seein' how I'm dressed, I reckon maybe I better arrive down from St.
  5153. Louis or Cincinnati, or some other big place.  Go for the steamboat,
  5154. Huckleberry; we'll come down to the village on her.”
  5155. I didn't have to be ordered twice to go and take a steamboat ride.
  5156.  I fetched the shore a half a mile above the village, and then went
  5157. scooting along the bluff bank in the easy water.  Pretty soon we come to
  5158. a nice innocent-looking young country jake setting on a log swabbing the
  5159. sweat off of his face, for it was powerful warm weather; and he had a
  5160. couple of big carpet-bags by him.
  5161. “Run her nose in shore,” says the king.  I done it. “Wher' you bound
  5162. for, young man?”
  5163. “For the steamboat; going to Orleans.”
  5164. “Git aboard,” says the king. “Hold on a minute, my servant 'll he'p you
  5165. with them bags.  Jump out and he'p the gentleman, Adolphus”--meaning me,
  5166. I see.
  5167. I done so, and then we all three started on again.  The young chap was
  5168. mighty thankful; said it was tough work toting his baggage such weather.
  5169. He asked the king where he was going, and the king told him he'd come
  5170. down the river and landed at the other village this morning, and now he
  5171. was going up a few mile to see an old friend on a farm up there.  The
  5172. young fellow says:
  5173. “When I first see you I says to myself, 'It's Mr. Wilks, sure, and he
  5174. come mighty near getting here in time.'  But then I says again, 'No, I
  5175. reckon it ain't him, or else he wouldn't be paddling up the river.'  You
  5176. _ain't_ him, are you?”
  5177. “No, my name's Blodgett--Elexander Blodgett--_Reverend_ Elexander
  5178. Blodgett, I s'pose I must say, as I'm one o' the Lord's poor servants.
  5179.  But still I'm jist as able to be sorry for Mr. Wilks for not arriving
  5180. in time, all the same, if he's missed anything by it--which I hope he
  5181. hasn't.”
  5182. “Well, he don't miss any property by it, because he'll get that all
  5183. right; but he's missed seeing his brother Peter die--which he mayn't
  5184. mind, nobody can tell as to that--but his brother would a give anything
  5185. in this world to see _him_ before he died; never talked about nothing
  5186. else all these three weeks; hadn't seen him since they was boys
  5187. together--and hadn't ever seen his brother William at all--that's the deef
  5188. and dumb one--William ain't more than thirty or thirty-five.  Peter and
  5189. George were the only ones that come out here; George was the married
  5190. brother; him and his wife both died last year.  Harvey and William's the
  5191. only ones that's left now; and, as I was saying, they haven't got here
  5192. in time.”
  5193. “Did anybody send 'em word?”
  5194. “Oh, yes; a month or two ago, when Peter was first took; because Peter
  5195. said then that he sorter felt like he warn't going to get well this
  5196. time. You see, he was pretty old, and George's g'yirls was too young to
  5197. be much company for him, except Mary Jane, the red-headed one; and so he
  5198. was kinder lonesome after George and his wife died, and didn't seem
  5199. to care much to live.  He most desperately wanted to see Harvey--and
  5200. William, too, for that matter--because he was one of them kind that can't
  5201. bear to make a will.  He left a letter behind for Harvey, and said he'd
  5202. told in it where his money was hid, and how he wanted the rest of the
  5203. property divided up so George's g'yirls would be all right--for George
  5204. didn't leave nothing.  And that letter was all they could get him to put
  5205. a pen to.”
  5206. “Why do you reckon Harvey don't come?  Wher' does he live?”
  5207. “Oh, he lives in England--Sheffield--preaches there--hasn't ever been in
  5208. this country.  He hasn't had any too much time--and besides he mightn't a
  5209. got the letter at all, you know.”
  5210. “Too bad, too bad he couldn't a lived to see his brothers, poor soul.
  5211. You going to Orleans, you say?”
  5212. “Yes, but that ain't only a part of it.  I'm going in a ship, next
  5213. Wednesday, for Ryo Janeero, where my uncle lives.”
  5214. “It's a pretty long journey.  But it'll be lovely; wisht I was a-going.
  5215. Is Mary Jane the oldest?  How old is the others?”
  5216. “Mary Jane's nineteen, Susan's fifteen, and Joanna's about
  5217. fourteen--that's the one that gives herself to good works and has a
  5218. hare-lip.”
  5219. “Poor things! to be left alone in the cold world so.”
  5220. “Well, they could be worse off.  Old Peter had friends, and they
  5221. ain't going to let them come to no harm.  There's Hobson, the Babtis'
  5222. preacher; and Deacon Lot Hovey, and Ben Rucker, and Abner Shackleford,
  5223. and Levi Bell, the lawyer; and Dr. Robinson, and their wives, and the
  5224. widow Bartley, and--well, there's a lot of them; but these are the ones
  5225. that Peter was thickest with, and used to write about sometimes, when
  5226. he wrote home; so Harvey 'll know where to look for friends when he gets
  5227. here.”
  5228. Well, the old man went on asking questions till he just fairly emptied
  5229. that young fellow.  Blamed if he didn't inquire about everybody and
  5230. everything in that blessed town, and all about the Wilkses; and about
  5231. Peter's business--which was a tanner; and about George's--which was a
  5232. carpenter; and about Harvey's--which was a dissentering minister; and so
  5233. on, and so on.  Then he says:
  5234. “What did you want to walk all the way up to the steamboat for?”
  5235. “Because she's a big Orleans boat, and I was afeard she mightn't stop
  5236. there.  When they're deep they won't stop for a hail.  A Cincinnati boat
  5237. will, but this is a St. Louis one.”
  5238. “Was Peter Wilks well off?”
  5239. “Oh, yes, pretty well off.  He had houses and land, and it's reckoned he
  5240. left three or four thousand in cash hid up som'ers.”
  5241. “When did you say he died?”
  5242. “I didn't say, but it was last night.”
  5243. “Funeral to-morrow, likely?”
  5244. “Yes, 'bout the middle of the day.”
  5245. “Well, it's all terrible sad; but we've all got to go, one time or
  5246. another. So what we want to do is to be prepared; then we're all right.”
  5247. “Yes, sir, it's the best way.  Ma used to always say that.”
  5248. When we struck the boat she was about done loading, and pretty soon she
  5249. got off.  The king never said nothing about going aboard, so I lost
  5250. my ride, after all.  When the boat was gone the king made me paddle up
  5251. another mile to a lonesome place, and then he got ashore and says:
  5252. “Now hustle back, right off, and fetch the duke up here, and the new
  5253. carpet-bags.  And if he's gone over to t'other side, go over there and
  5254. git him.  And tell him to git himself up regardless.  Shove along, now.”
  5255. I see what _he_ was up to; but I never said nothing, of course.  When
  5256. I got back with the duke we hid the canoe, and then they set down on a
  5257. log, and the king told him everything, just like the young fellow had
  5258. said it--every last word of it.  And all the time he was a-doing it he
  5259. tried to talk like an Englishman; and he done it pretty well, too, for
  5260. a slouch. I can't imitate him, and so I ain't a-going to try to; but he
  5261. really done it pretty good.  Then he says:
  5262. “How are you on the deef and dumb, Bilgewater?”
  5263. The duke said, leave him alone for that; said he had played a deef
  5264. and dumb person on the histronic boards.  So then they waited for a
  5265. steamboat.
  5266. About the middle of the afternoon a couple of little boats come along,
  5267. but they didn't come from high enough up the river; but at last there
  5268. was a big one, and they hailed her.  She sent out her yawl, and we went
  5269. aboard, and she was from Cincinnati; and when they found we only wanted
  5270. to go four or five mile they was booming mad, and gave us a cussing, and
  5271. said they wouldn't land us.  But the king was ca'm.  He says:
  5272. “If gentlemen kin afford to pay a dollar a mile apiece to be took on and
  5273. put off in a yawl, a steamboat kin afford to carry 'em, can't it?”
  5274. So they softened down and said it was all right; and when we got to the
  5275. village they yawled us ashore.  About two dozen men flocked down when
  5276. they see the yawl a-coming, and when the king says:
  5277. “Kin any of you gentlemen tell me wher' Mr. Peter Wilks lives?” they
  5278. give a glance at one another, and nodded their heads, as much as to say,
  5279. “What d' I tell you?”  Then one of them says, kind of soft and gentle:
  5280. “I'm sorry sir, but the best we can do is to tell you where he _did_
  5281. live yesterday evening.”
  5282. Sudden as winking the ornery old cretur went an to smash, and fell up
  5283. against the man, and put his chin on his shoulder, and cried down his
  5284. back, and says:
  5285. “Alas, alas, our poor brother--gone, and we never got to see him; oh,
  5286. it's too, too hard!”
  5287. Then he turns around, blubbering, and makes a lot of idiotic signs to
  5288. the duke on his hands, and blamed if he didn't drop a carpet-bag and
  5289. bust out a-crying.  If they warn't the beatenest lot, them two frauds,
  5290. that ever I struck.
  5291. Well, the men gathered around and sympathized with them, and said all
  5292. sorts of kind things to them, and carried their carpet-bags up the hill
  5293. for them, and let them lean on them and cry, and told the king all about
  5294. his brother's last moments, and the king he told it all over again on
  5295. his hands to the duke, and both of them took on about that dead tanner
  5296. like they'd lost the twelve disciples.  Well, if ever I struck anything
  5297. like it, I'm a nigger. It was enough to make a body ashamed of the human
  5298. race.
  5299. CHAPTER XXV.
  5300. THE news was all over town in two minutes, and you could see the people
  5301. tearing down on the run from every which way, some of them putting on
  5302. their coats as they come.  Pretty soon we was in the middle of a crowd,
  5303. and the noise of the tramping was like a soldier march.  The windows and
  5304. dooryards was full; and every minute somebody would say, over a fence:
  5305. “Is it _them_?”
  5306. And somebody trotting along with the gang would answer back and say:
  5307. “You bet it is.”
  5308. When we got to the house the street in front of it was packed, and the
  5309. three girls was standing in the door.  Mary Jane _was_ red-headed, but
  5310. that don't make no difference, she was most awful beautiful, and her
  5311. face and her eyes was all lit up like glory, she was so glad her uncles
  5312. was come. The king he spread his arms, and Mary Jane she jumped for
  5313. them, and the hare-lip jumped for the duke, and there they had it!
  5314.  Everybody most, leastways women, cried for joy to see them meet again
  5315. at last and have such good times.
  5316. Then the king he hunched the duke private--I see him do it--and then he
  5317. looked around and see the coffin, over in the corner on two chairs; so
  5318. then him and the duke, with a hand across each other's shoulder, and
  5319. t'other hand to their eyes, walked slow and solemn over there, everybody
  5320. dropping back to give them room, and all the talk and noise stopping,
  5321. people saying “Sh!” and all the men taking their hats off and drooping
  5322. their heads, so you could a heard a pin fall.  And when they got there
  5323. they bent over and looked in the coffin, and took one sight, and then
  5324. they bust out a-crying so you could a heard them to Orleans, most; and
  5325. then they put their arms around each other's necks, and hung their chins
  5326. over each other's shoulders; and then for three minutes, or maybe four,
  5327. I never see two men leak the way they done.  And, mind you, everybody
  5328. was doing the same; and the place was that damp I never see anything
  5329. like it. Then one of them got on one side of the coffin, and t'other on
  5330. t'other side, and they kneeled down and rested their foreheads on the
  5331. coffin, and let on to pray all to themselves.  Well, when it come
  5332. to that it worked the crowd like you never see anything like it, and
  5333. everybody broke down and went to sobbing right out loud--the poor girls,
  5334. too; and every woman, nearly, went up to the girls, without saying a
  5335. word, and kissed them, solemn, on the forehead, and then put their hand
  5336. on their head, and looked up towards the sky, with the tears running
  5337. down, and then busted out and went off sobbing and swabbing, and give
  5338. the next woman a show.  I never see anything so disgusting.
  5339. Well, by and by the king he gets up and comes forward a little, and
  5340. works himself up and slobbers out a speech, all full of tears and
  5341. flapdoodle about its being a sore trial for him and his poor brother
  5342. to lose the diseased, and to miss seeing diseased alive after the long
  5343. journey of four thousand mile, but it's a trial that's sweetened and
  5344. sanctified to us by this dear sympathy and these holy tears, and so he
  5345. thanks them out of his heart and out of his brother's heart, because out
  5346. of their mouths they can't, words being too weak and cold, and all that
  5347. kind of rot and slush, till it was just sickening; and then he blubbers
  5348. out a pious goody-goody Amen, and turns himself loose and goes to crying
  5349. fit to bust.
  5350. And the minute the words were out of his mouth somebody over in the
  5351. crowd struck up the doxolojer, and everybody joined in with all their
  5352. might, and it just warmed you up and made you feel as good as church
  5353. letting out. Music is a good thing; and after all that soul-butter and
  5354. hogwash I never see it freshen up things so, and sound so honest and
  5355. bully.
  5356. Then the king begins to work his jaw again, and says how him and his
  5357. nieces would be glad if a few of the main principal friends of the
  5358. family would take supper here with them this evening, and help set up
  5359. with the ashes of the diseased; and says if his poor brother laying
  5360. yonder could speak he knows who he would name, for they was names that
  5361. was very dear to him, and mentioned often in his letters; and so he will
  5362. name the same, to wit, as follows, vizz.:--Rev. Mr. Hobson, and Deacon
  5363. Lot Hovey, and Mr. Ben Rucker, and Abner Shackleford, and Levi Bell, and
  5364. Dr. Robinson, and their wives, and the widow Bartley.
  5365. Rev. Hobson and Dr. Robinson was down to the end of the town a-hunting
  5366. together--that is, I mean the doctor was shipping a sick man to t'other
  5367. world, and the preacher was pinting him right.  Lawyer Bell was away up
  5368. to Louisville on business.  But the rest was on hand, and so they all
  5369. come and shook hands with the king and thanked him and talked to him;
  5370. and then they shook hands with the duke and didn't say nothing, but just
  5371. kept a-smiling and bobbing their heads like a passel of sapheads whilst
  5372. he made all sorts of signs with his hands and said “Goo-goo--goo-goo-goo”
  5373. all the time, like a baby that can't talk.
  5374. So the king he blattered along, and managed to inquire about pretty
  5375. much everybody and dog in town, by his name, and mentioned all sorts
  5376. of little things that happened one time or another in the town, or to
  5377. George's family, or to Peter.  And he always let on that Peter wrote him
  5378. the things; but that was a lie:  he got every blessed one of them out of
  5379. that young flathead that we canoed up to the steamboat.
  5380. Then Mary Jane she fetched the letter her father left behind, and the
  5381. king he read it out loud and cried over it.  It give the dwelling-house
  5382. and three thousand dollars, gold, to the girls; and it give the tanyard
  5383. (which was doing a good business), along with some other houses and
  5384. land (worth about seven thousand), and three thousand dollars in gold
  5385. to Harvey and William, and told where the six thousand cash was hid down
  5386. cellar.  So these two frauds said they'd go and fetch it up, and have
  5387. everything square and above-board; and told me to come with a candle.
  5388.  We shut the cellar door behind us, and when they found the bag
  5389. they spilt it out on the floor, and it was a lovely sight, all them
  5390. yaller-boys.  My, the way the king's eyes did shine!  He slaps the duke
  5391. on the shoulder and says:
  5392. “Oh, _this_ ain't bully nor noth'n!  Oh, no, I reckon not!  Why,
  5393. _bully_, it beats the Nonesuch, _don't_ it?”
  5394. The duke allowed it did.  They pawed the yaller-boys, and sifted them
  5395. through their fingers and let them jingle down on the floor; and the
  5396. king says:
  5397. “It ain't no use talkin'; bein' brothers to a rich dead man and
  5398. representatives of furrin heirs that's got left is the line for you and
  5399. me, Bilge.  Thish yer comes of trust'n to Providence.  It's the best
  5400. way, in the long run.  I've tried 'em all, and ther' ain't no better
  5401. way.”
  5402. Most everybody would a been satisfied with the pile, and took it on
  5403. trust; but no, they must count it.  So they counts it, and it comes out
  5404. four hundred and fifteen dollars short.  Says the king:
  5405. “Dern him, I wonder what he done with that four hundred and fifteen
  5406. dollars?”
  5407. They worried over that awhile, and ransacked all around for it.  Then
  5408. the duke says:
  5409. “Well, he was a pretty sick man, and likely he made a mistake--I reckon
  5410. that's the way of it.  The best way's to let it go, and keep still about
  5411. it.  We can spare it.”
  5412. “Oh, shucks, yes, we can _spare_ it.  I don't k'yer noth'n 'bout
  5413. that--it's the _count_ I'm thinkin' about.  We want to be awful square
  5414. and open and above-board here, you know.  We want to lug this h-yer
  5415. money up stairs and count it before everybody--then ther' ain't noth'n
  5416. suspicious.  But when the dead man says ther's six thous'n dollars, you
  5417. know, we don't want to--”
  5418. “Hold on,” says the duke. “Le's make up the deffisit,” and he begun to
  5419. haul out yaller-boys out of his pocket.
  5420. “It's a most amaz'n' good idea, duke--you _have_ got a rattlin' clever
  5421. head on you,” says the king. “Blest if the old Nonesuch ain't a heppin'
  5422. us out agin,” and _he_ begun to haul out yaller-jackets and stack them
  5423. up.
  5424. It most busted them, but they made up the six thousand clean and clear.
  5425. “Say,” says the duke, “I got another idea.  Le's go up stairs and count
  5426. this money, and then take and _give it to the girls_.”
  5427. “Good land, duke, lemme hug you!  It's the most dazzling idea 'at ever a
  5428. man struck.  You have cert'nly got the most astonishin' head I ever see.
  5429. Oh, this is the boss dodge, ther' ain't no mistake 'bout it.  Let 'em
  5430. fetch along their suspicions now if they want to--this 'll lay 'em out.”
  5431. When we got up-stairs everybody gethered around the table, and the king
  5432. he counted it and stacked it up, three hundred dollars in a pile--twenty
  5433. elegant little piles.  Everybody looked hungry at it, and licked their
  5434. chops.  Then they raked it into the bag again, and I see the king begin
  5435. to swell himself up for another speech.  He says:
  5436. “Friends all, my poor brother that lays yonder has done generous by
  5437. them that's left behind in the vale of sorrers.  He has done generous by
  5438. these yer poor little lambs that he loved and sheltered, and that's left
  5439. fatherless and motherless.  Yes, and we that knowed him knows that he
  5440. would a done _more_ generous by 'em if he hadn't ben afeard o' woundin'
  5441. his dear William and me.  Now, _wouldn't_ he?  Ther' ain't no question
  5442. 'bout it in _my_ mind.  Well, then, what kind o' brothers would it be
  5443. that 'd stand in his way at sech a time?  And what kind o' uncles would
  5444. it be that 'd rob--yes, _rob_--sech poor sweet lambs as these 'at he loved
  5445. so at sech a time?  If I know William--and I _think_ I do--he--well, I'll
  5446. jest ask him.” He turns around and begins to make a lot of signs to
  5447. the duke with his hands, and the duke he looks at him stupid and
  5448. leather-headed a while; then all of a sudden he seems to catch his
  5449. meaning, and jumps for the king, goo-gooing with all his might for joy,
  5450. and hugs him about fifteen times before he lets up.  Then the king says,
  5451. “I knowed it; I reckon _that 'll_ convince anybody the way _he_ feels
  5452. about it.  Here, Mary Jane, Susan, Joanner, take the money--take it
  5453. _all_.  It's the gift of him that lays yonder, cold but joyful.”
  5454. Mary Jane she went for him, Susan and the hare-lip went for the
  5455. duke, and then such another hugging and kissing I never see yet.  And
  5456. everybody crowded up with the tears in their eyes, and most shook the
  5457. hands off of them frauds, saying all the time:
  5458. “You _dear_ good souls!--how _lovely_!--how _could_ you!”
  5459. Well, then, pretty soon all hands got to talking about the diseased
  5460. again, and how good he was, and what a loss he was, and all that; and
  5461. before long a big iron-jawed man worked himself in there from outside,
  5462. and stood a-listening and looking, and not saying anything; and nobody
  5463. saying anything to him either, because the king was talking and they was
  5464. all busy listening.  The king was saying--in the middle of something he'd
  5465. started in on--
  5466. “--they bein' partickler friends o' the diseased.  That's why they're
  5467. invited here this evenin'; but tomorrow we want _all_ to come--everybody;
  5468. for he respected everybody, he liked everybody, and so it's fitten that
  5469. his funeral orgies sh'd be public.”
  5470. And so he went a-mooning on and on, liking to hear himself talk, and
  5471. every little while he fetched in his funeral orgies again, till the duke
  5472. he couldn't stand it no more; so he writes on a little scrap of paper,
  5473. “_Obsequies_, you old fool,” and folds it up, and goes to goo-gooing and
  5474. reaching it over people's heads to him.  The king he reads it and puts
  5475. it in his pocket, and says:
  5476. “Poor William, afflicted as he is, his _heart's_ aluz right.  Asks me
  5477. to invite everybody to come to the funeral--wants me to make 'em all
  5478. welcome.  But he needn't a worried--it was jest what I was at.”
  5479. Then he weaves along again, perfectly ca'm, and goes to dropping in his
  5480. funeral orgies again every now and then, just like he done before.  And
  5481. when he done it the third time he says:
  5482. “I say orgies, not because it's the common term, because it
  5483. ain't--obsequies bein' the common term--but because orgies is the right
  5484. term. Obsequies ain't used in England no more now--it's gone out.  We
  5485. say orgies now in England.  Orgies is better, because it means the thing
  5486. you're after more exact.  It's a word that's made up out'n the Greek
  5487. _orgo_, outside, open, abroad; and the Hebrew _jeesum_, to plant, cover
  5488. up; hence in_ter._  So, you see, funeral orgies is an open er public
  5489. funeral.”
  5490. He was the _worst_ I ever struck.  Well, the iron-jawed man he laughed
  5491. right in his face.  Everybody was shocked.  Everybody says, “Why,
  5492. _doctor_!” and Abner Shackleford says:
  5493. “Why, Robinson, hain't you heard the news?  This is Harvey Wilks.”
  5494. The king he smiled eager, and shoved out his flapper, and says:
  5495. “Is it my poor brother's dear good friend and physician?  I--”
  5496. “Keep your hands off of me!” says the doctor. “_You_ talk like an
  5497. Englishman, _don't_ you?  It's the worst imitation I ever heard.  _You_
  5498. Peter Wilks's brother!  You're a fraud, that's what you are!”
  5499. Well, how they all took on!  They crowded around the doctor and tried to
  5500. quiet him down, and tried to explain to him and tell him how Harvey 'd
  5501. showed in forty ways that he _was_ Harvey, and knowed everybody by name,
  5502. and the names of the very dogs, and begged and _begged_ him not to hurt
  5503. Harvey's feelings and the poor girl's feelings, and all that.  But it
  5504. warn't no use; he stormed right along, and said any man that pretended
  5505. to be an Englishman and couldn't imitate the lingo no better than what
  5506. he did was a fraud and a liar.  The poor girls was hanging to the king
  5507. and crying; and all of a sudden the doctor ups and turns on _them_.  He
  5508. says:
  5509. “I was your father's friend, and I'm your friend; and I warn you as a
  5510. friend, and an honest one that wants to protect you and keep you out of
  5511. harm and trouble, to turn your backs on that scoundrel and have nothing
  5512. to do with him, the ignorant tramp, with his idiotic Greek and Hebrew,
  5513. as he calls it.  He is the thinnest kind of an impostor--has come here
  5514. with a lot of empty names and facts which he picked up somewheres, and
  5515. you take them for _proofs_, and are helped to fool yourselves by these
  5516. foolish friends here, who ought to know better.  Mary Jane Wilks, you
  5517. know me for your friend, and for your unselfish friend, too.  Now listen
  5518. to me; turn this pitiful rascal out--I _beg_ you to do it.  Will you?”
  5519. Mary Jane straightened herself up, and my, but she was handsome!  She
  5520. says:
  5521. “_Here_ is my answer.”  She hove up the bag of money and put it in the
  5522. king's hands, and says, “Take this six thousand dollars, and invest for
  5523. me and my sisters any way you want to, and don't give us no receipt for
  5524. it.”
  5525. Then she put her arm around the king on one side, and Susan and the
  5526. hare-lip done the same on the other.  Everybody clapped their hands and
  5527. stomped on the floor like a perfect storm, whilst the king held up his
  5528. head and smiled proud.  The doctor says:
  5529. “All right; I wash _my_ hands of the matter.  But I warn you all that a
  5530. time 's coming when you're going to feel sick whenever you think of this
  5531. day.” And away he went.
  5532. “All right, doctor,” says the king, kinder mocking him; “we'll try and
  5533. get 'em to send for you;” which made them all laugh, and they said it
  5534. was a prime good hit.
  5535. CHAPTER XXVI.
  5536. WELL, when they was all gone the king he asks Mary Jane how they was off
  5537. for spare rooms, and she said she had one spare room, which would do for
  5538. Uncle William, and she'd give her own room to Uncle Harvey, which was
  5539. a little bigger, and she would turn into the room with her sisters and
  5540. sleep on a cot; and up garret was a little cubby, with a pallet in it.
  5541. The king said the cubby would do for his valley--meaning me.
  5542. So Mary Jane took us up, and she showed them their rooms, which was
  5543. plain but nice.  She said she'd have her frocks and a lot of other traps
  5544. took out of her room if they was in Uncle Harvey's way, but he said
  5545. they warn't.  The frocks was hung along the wall, and before them was
  5546. a curtain made out of calico that hung down to the floor.  There was an
  5547. old hair trunk in one corner, and a guitar-box in another, and all sorts
  5548. of little knickknacks and jimcracks around, like girls brisken up a room
  5549. with.  The king said it was all the more homely and more pleasanter for
  5550. these fixings, and so don't disturb them.  The duke's room was pretty
  5551. small, but plenty good enough, and so was my cubby.
  5552. That night they had a big supper, and all them men and women was there,
  5553. and I stood behind the king and the duke's chairs and waited on them,
  5554. and the niggers waited on the rest.  Mary Jane she set at the head of
  5555. the table, with Susan alongside of her, and said how bad the biscuits
  5556. was, and how mean the preserves was, and how ornery and tough the fried
  5557. chickens was--and all that kind of rot, the way women always do for to
  5558. force out compliments; and the people all knowed everything was tiptop,
  5559. and said so--said “How _do_ you get biscuits to brown so nice?” and
  5560. “Where, for the land's sake, _did_ you get these amaz'n pickles?” and
  5561. all that kind of humbug talky-talk, just the way people always does at a
  5562. supper, you know.
  5563. And when it was all done me and the hare-lip had supper in the kitchen
  5564. off of the leavings, whilst the others was helping the niggers clean up
  5565. the things.  The hare-lip she got to pumping me about England, and blest
  5566. if I didn't think the ice was getting mighty thin sometimes.  She says:
  5567. “Did you ever see the king?”
  5568. “Who?  William Fourth?  Well, I bet I have--he goes to our church.”  I
  5569. knowed he was dead years ago, but I never let on.  So when I says he
  5570. goes to our church, she says:
  5571. “What--regular?”
  5572. “Yes--regular.  His pew's right over opposite ourn--on t'other side the
  5573. pulpit.”
  5574. “I thought he lived in London?”
  5575. “Well, he does.  Where _would_ he live?”
  5576. “But I thought _you_ lived in Sheffield?”
  5577. I see I was up a stump.  I had to let on to get choked with a chicken
  5578. bone, so as to get time to think how to get down again.  Then I says:
  5579. “I mean he goes to our church regular when he's in Sheffield.  That's
  5580. only in the summer time, when he comes there to take the sea baths.”
  5581. “Why, how you talk--Sheffield ain't on the sea.”
  5582. “Well, who said it was?”
  5583. “Why, you did.”
  5584. “I _didn't_ nuther.”
  5585. “You did!”
  5586. “I didn't.”
  5587. “You did.”
  5588. “I never said nothing of the kind.”
  5589. “Well, what _did_ you say, then?”
  5590. “Said he come to take the sea _baths_--that's what I said.”
  5591. “Well, then, how's he going to take the sea baths if it ain't on the
  5592. sea?”
  5593. “Looky here,” I says; “did you ever see any Congress-water?”
  5594. “Yes.”
  5595. “Well, did you have to go to Congress to get it?”
  5596. “Why, no.”
  5597. “Well, neither does William Fourth have to go to the sea to get a sea
  5598. bath.”
  5599. “How does he get it, then?”
  5600. “Gets it the way people down here gets Congress-water--in barrels.  There
  5601. in the palace at Sheffield they've got furnaces, and he wants his water
  5602. hot.  They can't bile that amount of water away off there at the sea.
  5603. They haven't got no conveniences for it.”
  5604. “Oh, I see, now.  You might a said that in the first place and saved
  5605. time.”
  5606. When she said that I see I was out of the woods again, and so I was
  5607. comfortable and glad.  Next, she says:
  5608. “Do you go to church, too?”
  5609. “Yes--regular.”
  5610. “Where do you set?”
  5611. “Why, in our pew.”
  5612. “_Whose_ pew?”
  5613. “Why, _ourn_--your Uncle Harvey's.”
  5614. “His'n?  What does _he_ want with a pew?”
  5615. “Wants it to set in.  What did you _reckon_ he wanted with it?”
  5616. “Why, I thought he'd be in the pulpit.”
  5617. Rot him, I forgot he was a preacher.  I see I was up a stump again, so I
  5618. played another chicken bone and got another think.  Then I says:
  5619. “Blame it, do you suppose there ain't but one preacher to a church?”
  5620. “Why, what do they want with more?”
  5621. “What!--to preach before a king?  I never did see such a girl as you.
  5622. They don't have no less than seventeen.”
  5623. “Seventeen!  My land!  Why, I wouldn't set out such a string as that,
  5624. not if I _never_ got to glory.  It must take 'em a week.”
  5625. “Shucks, they don't _all_ of 'em preach the same day--only _one_ of 'em.”
  5626. “Well, then, what does the rest of 'em do?”
  5627. “Oh, nothing much.  Loll around, pass the plate--and one thing or
  5628. another.  But mainly they don't do nothing.”
  5629. “Well, then, what are they _for_?”
  5630. “Why, they're for _style_.  Don't you know nothing?”
  5631. “Well, I don't _want_ to know no such foolishness as that.  How is
  5632. servants treated in England?  Do they treat 'em better 'n we treat our
  5633. niggers?”
  5634. “_No_!  A servant ain't nobody there.  They treat them worse than dogs.”
  5635. “Don't they give 'em holidays, the way we do, Christmas and New Year's
  5636. week, and Fourth of July?”
  5637. “Oh, just listen!  A body could tell _you_ hain't ever been to England
  5638. by that.  Why, Hare-l--why, Joanna, they never see a holiday from year's
  5639. end to year's end; never go to the circus, nor theater, nor nigger
  5640. shows, nor nowheres.”
  5641. “Nor church?”
  5642. “Nor church.”
  5643. “But _you_ always went to church.”
  5644. Well, I was gone up again.  I forgot I was the old man's servant.  But
  5645. next minute I whirled in on a kind of an explanation how a valley was
  5646. different from a common servant and _had_ to go to church whether he
  5647. wanted to or not, and set with the family, on account of its being the
  5648. law.  But I didn't do it pretty good, and when I got done I see she
  5649. warn't satisfied.  She says:
  5650. “Honest injun, now, hain't you been telling me a lot of lies?”
  5651. “Honest injun,” says I.
  5652. “None of it at all?”
  5653. “None of it at all.  Not a lie in it,” says I.
  5654. “Lay your hand on this book and say it.”
  5655. I see it warn't nothing but a dictionary, so I laid my hand on it and
  5656. said it.  So then she looked a little better satisfied, and says:
  5657. “Well, then, I'll believe some of it; but I hope to gracious if I'll
  5658. believe the rest.”
  5659. “What is it you won't believe, Joe?” says Mary Jane, stepping in with
  5660. Susan behind her. “It ain't right nor kind for you to talk so to him,
  5661. and him a stranger and so far from his people.  How would you like to be
  5662. treated so?”
  5663. “That's always your way, Maim--always sailing in to help somebody before
  5664. they're hurt.  I hain't done nothing to him.  He's told some stretchers,
  5665. I reckon, and I said I wouldn't swallow it all; and that's every bit
  5666. and grain I _did_ say.  I reckon he can stand a little thing like that,
  5667. can't he?”
  5668. “I don't care whether 'twas little or whether 'twas big; he's here in
  5669. our house and a stranger, and it wasn't good of you to say it.  If you
  5670. was in his place it would make you feel ashamed; and so you oughtn't to
  5671. say a thing to another person that will make _them_ feel ashamed.”
  5672. “Why, Mam, he said--”
  5673. “It don't make no difference what he _said_--that ain't the thing.  The
  5674. thing is for you to treat him _kind_, and not be saying things to make
  5675. him remember he ain't in his own country and amongst his own folks.”
  5676. I says to myself, _this_ is a girl that I'm letting that old reptile rob
  5677. her of her money!
  5678. Then Susan _she_ waltzed in; and if you'll believe me, she did give
  5679. Hare-lip hark from the tomb!
  5680. Says I to myself, and this is _another_ one that I'm letting him rob her
  5681. of her money!
  5682. Then Mary Jane she took another inning, and went in sweet and lovely
  5683. again--which was her way; but when she got done there warn't hardly
  5684. anything left o' poor Hare-lip.  So she hollered.
  5685. “All right, then,” says the other girls; “you just ask his pardon.”
  5686. She done it, too; and she done it beautiful.  She done it so beautiful
  5687. it was good to hear; and I wished I could tell her a thousand lies, so
  5688. she could do it again.
  5689. I says to myself, this is _another_ one that I'm letting him rob her of
  5690. her money.  And when she got through they all jest laid theirselves
  5691. out to make me feel at home and know I was amongst friends.  I felt so
  5692. ornery and low down and mean that I says to myself, my mind's made up;
  5693. I'll hive that money for them or bust.
  5694. So then I lit out--for bed, I said, meaning some time or another.  When
  5695. I got by myself I went to thinking the thing over.  I says to myself,
  5696. shall I go to that doctor, private, and blow on these frauds?  No--that
  5697. won't do. He might tell who told him; then the king and the duke would
  5698. make it warm for me.  Shall I go, private, and tell Mary Jane?  No--I
  5699. dasn't do it. Her face would give them a hint, sure; they've got the
  5700. money, and they'd slide right out and get away with it.  If she was to
  5701. fetch in help I'd get mixed up in the business before it was done with,
  5702. I judge.  No; there ain't no good way but one.  I got to steal that
  5703. money, somehow; and I got to steal it some way that they won't suspicion
  5704. that I done it. They've got a good thing here, and they ain't a-going
  5705. to leave till they've played this family and this town for all they're
  5706. worth, so I'll find a chance time enough. I'll steal it and hide it; and
  5707. by and by, when I'm away down the river, I'll write a letter and tell
  5708. Mary Jane where it's hid.  But I better hive it tonight if I can,
  5709. because the doctor maybe hasn't let up as much as he lets on he has; he
  5710. might scare them out of here yet.
  5711. So, thinks I, I'll go and search them rooms.  Upstairs the hall was
  5712. dark, but I found the duke's room, and started to paw around it with
  5713. my hands; but I recollected it wouldn't be much like the king to let
  5714. anybody else take care of that money but his own self; so then I went to
  5715. his room and begun to paw around there.  But I see I couldn't do nothing
  5716. without a candle, and I dasn't light one, of course.  So I judged I'd
  5717. got to do the other thing--lay for them and eavesdrop.  About that time
  5718. I hears their footsteps coming, and was going to skip under the bed; I
  5719. reached for it, but it wasn't where I thought it would be; but I touched
  5720. the curtain that hid Mary Jane's frocks, so I jumped in behind that and
  5721. snuggled in amongst the gowns, and stood there perfectly still.
  5722. They come in and shut the door; and the first thing the duke done was to
  5723. get down and look under the bed.  Then I was glad I hadn't found the bed
  5724. when I wanted it.  And yet, you know, it's kind of natural to hide under
  5725. the bed when you are up to anything private.  They sets down then, and
  5726. the king says:
  5727. “Well, what is it?  And cut it middlin' short, because it's better for
  5728. us to be down there a-whoopin' up the mournin' than up here givin' 'em a
  5729. chance to talk us over.”
  5730. “Well, this is it, Capet.  I ain't easy; I ain't comfortable.  That
  5731. doctor lays on my mind.  I wanted to know your plans.  I've got a
  5732. notion, and I think it's a sound one.”
  5733. “What is it, duke?”
  5734. “That we better glide out of this before three in the morning, and clip
  5735. it down the river with what we've got.  Specially, seeing we got it so
  5736. easy--_given_ back to us, flung at our heads, as you may say, when of
  5737. course we allowed to have to steal it back.  I'm for knocking off and
  5738. lighting out.”
  5739. That made me feel pretty bad.  About an hour or two ago it would a been
  5740. a little different, but now it made me feel bad and disappointed, The
  5741. king rips out and says:
  5742. “What!  And not sell out the rest o' the property?  March off like
  5743. a passel of fools and leave eight or nine thous'n' dollars' worth o'
  5744. property layin' around jest sufferin' to be scooped in?--and all good,
  5745. salable stuff, too.”
  5746. The duke he grumbled; said the bag of gold was enough, and he didn't
  5747. want to go no deeper--didn't want to rob a lot of orphans of _everything_
  5748. they had.
  5749. “Why, how you talk!” says the king. “We sha'n't rob 'em of nothing at
  5750. all but jest this money.  The people that _buys_ the property is the
  5751. suff'rers; because as soon 's it's found out 'at we didn't own it--which
  5752. won't be long after we've slid--the sale won't be valid, and it 'll all
  5753. go back to the estate.  These yer orphans 'll git their house back agin,
  5754. and that's enough for _them_; they're young and spry, and k'n easy
  5755. earn a livin'.  _they_ ain't a-goin to suffer.  Why, jest think--there's
  5756. thous'n's and thous'n's that ain't nigh so well off.  Bless you, _they_
  5757. ain't got noth'n' to complain of.”
  5758. Well, the king he talked him blind; so at last he give in, and said all
  5759. right, but said he believed it was blamed foolishness to stay, and that
  5760. doctor hanging over them.  But the king says:
  5761. “Cuss the doctor!  What do we k'yer for _him_?  Hain't we got all the
  5762. fools in town on our side?  And ain't that a big enough majority in any
  5763. town?”
  5764. So they got ready to go down stairs again.  The duke says:
  5765. “I don't think we put that money in a good place.”
  5766. That cheered me up.  I'd begun to think I warn't going to get a hint of
  5767. no kind to help me.  The king says:
  5768. “Why?”
  5769. “Because Mary Jane 'll be in mourning from this out; and first you know
  5770. the nigger that does up the rooms will get an order to box these duds
  5771. up and put 'em away; and do you reckon a nigger can run across money and
  5772. not borrow some of it?”
  5773. “Your head's level agin, duke,” says the king; and he comes a-fumbling
  5774. under the curtain two or three foot from where I was.  I stuck tight to
  5775. the wall and kept mighty still, though quivery; and I wondered what them
  5776. fellows would say to me if they catched me; and I tried to think what
  5777. I'd better do if they did catch me.  But the king he got the bag before
  5778. I could think more than about a half a thought, and he never suspicioned
  5779. I was around.  They took and shoved the bag through a rip in the straw
  5780. tick that was under the feather-bed, and crammed it in a foot or two
  5781. amongst the straw and said it was all right now, because a nigger only
  5782. makes up the feather-bed, and don't turn over the straw tick only about
  5783. twice a year, and so it warn't in no danger of getting stole now.
  5784. But I knowed better.  I had it out of there before they was half-way
  5785. down stairs.  I groped along up to my cubby, and hid it there till I
  5786. could get a chance to do better.  I judged I better hide it outside
  5787. of the house somewheres, because if they missed it they would give the
  5788. house a good ransacking:  I knowed that very well.  Then I turned in,
  5789. with my clothes all on; but I couldn't a gone to sleep if I'd a wanted
  5790. to, I was in such a sweat to get through with the business.  By and by I
  5791. heard the king and the duke come up; so I rolled off my pallet and laid
  5792. with my chin at the top of my ladder, and waited to see if anything was
  5793. going to happen.  But nothing did.
  5794. So I held on till all the late sounds had quit and the early ones hadn't
  5795. begun yet; and then I slipped down the ladder.
  5796. CHAPTER XXVII.
  5797. I crept to their doors and listened; they was snoring.  So I tiptoed
  5798. along, and got down stairs all right.  There warn't a sound anywheres.
  5799.  I peeped through a crack of the dining-room door, and see the men that
  5800. was watching the corpse all sound asleep on their chairs.  The door
  5801. was open into the parlor, where the corpse was laying, and there was a
  5802. candle in both rooms. I passed along, and the parlor door was open; but
  5803. I see there warn't nobody in there but the remainders of Peter; so I
  5804. shoved on by; but the front door was locked, and the key wasn't there.
  5805.  Just then I heard somebody coming down the stairs, back behind me.  I
  5806. run in the parlor and took a swift look around, and the only place I
  5807. see to hide the bag was in the coffin.  The lid was shoved along about
  5808. a foot, showing the dead man's face down in there, with a wet cloth over
  5809. it, and his shroud on.  I tucked the money-bag in under the lid, just
  5810. down beyond where his hands was crossed, which made me creep, they was
  5811. so cold, and then I run back across the room and in behind the door.
  5812. The person coming was Mary Jane.  She went to the coffin, very soft, and
  5813. kneeled down and looked in; then she put up her handkerchief, and I see
  5814. she begun to cry, though I couldn't hear her, and her back was to me.  I
  5815. slid out, and as I passed the dining-room I thought I'd make sure them
  5816. watchers hadn't seen me; so I looked through the crack, and everything
  5817. was all right.  They hadn't stirred.
  5818. I slipped up to bed, feeling ruther blue, on accounts of the thing
  5819. playing out that way after I had took so much trouble and run so much
  5820. resk about it.  Says I, if it could stay where it is, all right; because
  5821. when we get down the river a hundred mile or two I could write back to
  5822. Mary Jane, and she could dig him up again and get it; but that ain't the
  5823. thing that's going to happen; the thing that's going to happen is, the
  5824. money 'll be found when they come to screw on the lid.  Then the king
  5825. 'll get it again, and it 'll be a long day before he gives anybody
  5826. another chance to smouch it from him. Of course I _wanted_ to slide
  5827. down and get it out of there, but I dasn't try it.  Every minute it was
  5828. getting earlier now, and pretty soon some of them watchers would begin
  5829. to stir, and I might get catched--catched with six thousand dollars in my
  5830. hands that nobody hadn't hired me to take care of.  I don't wish to be
  5831. mixed up in no such business as that, I says to myself.
  5832. When I got down stairs in the morning the parlor was shut up, and the
  5833. watchers was gone.  There warn't nobody around but the family and the
  5834. widow Bartley and our tribe.  I watched their faces to see if anything
  5835. had been happening, but I couldn't tell.
  5836. Towards the middle of the day the undertaker come with his man, and they
  5837. set the coffin in the middle of the room on a couple of chairs, and then
  5838. set all our chairs in rows, and borrowed more from the neighbors till
  5839. the hall and the parlor and the dining-room was full.  I see the coffin
  5840. lid was the way it was before, but I dasn't go to look in under it, with
  5841. folks around.
  5842. Then the people begun to flock in, and the beats and the girls took
  5843. seats in the front row at the head of the coffin, and for a half an hour
  5844. the people filed around slow, in single rank, and looked down at the
  5845. dead man's face a minute, and some dropped in a tear, and it was
  5846. all very still and solemn, only the girls and the beats holding
  5847. handkerchiefs to their eyes and keeping their heads bent, and sobbing a
  5848. little.  There warn't no other sound but the scraping of the feet on
  5849. the floor and blowing noses--because people always blows them more at a
  5850. funeral than they do at other places except church.
  5851. When the place was packed full the undertaker he slid around in his
  5852. black gloves with his softy soothering ways, putting on the last
  5853. touches, and getting people and things all ship-shape and comfortable,
  5854. and making no more sound than a cat.  He never spoke; he moved people
  5855. around, he squeezed in late ones, he opened up passageways, and done
  5856. it with nods, and signs with his hands.  Then he took his place over
  5857. against the wall. He was the softest, glidingest, stealthiest man I ever
  5858. see; and there warn't no more smile to him than there is to a ham.
  5859. They had borrowed a melodeum--a sick one; and when everything was ready
  5860. a young woman set down and worked it, and it was pretty skreeky and
  5861. colicky, and everybody joined in and sung, and Peter was the only one
  5862. that had a good thing, according to my notion.  Then the Reverend Hobson
  5863. opened up, slow and solemn, and begun to talk; and straight off the most
  5864. outrageous row busted out in the cellar a body ever heard; it was only
  5865. one dog, but he made a most powerful racket, and he kept it up right
  5866. along; the parson he had to stand there, over the coffin, and wait--you
  5867. couldn't hear yourself think.  It was right down awkward, and nobody
  5868. didn't seem to know what to do.  But pretty soon they see that
  5869. long-legged undertaker make a sign to the preacher as much as to say,
  5870. “Don't you worry--just depend on me.”  Then he stooped down and begun
  5871. to glide along the wall, just his shoulders showing over the people's
  5872. heads.  So he glided along, and the powwow and racket getting more and
  5873. more outrageous all the time; and at last, when he had gone around two
  5874. sides of the room, he disappears down cellar.  Then in about two seconds
  5875. we heard a whack, and the dog he finished up with a most amazing howl or
  5876. two, and then everything was dead still, and the parson begun his solemn
  5877. talk where he left off.  In a minute or two here comes this undertaker's
  5878. back and shoulders gliding along the wall again; and so he glided and
  5879. glided around three sides of the room, and then rose up, and shaded his
  5880. mouth with his hands, and stretched his neck out towards the preacher,
  5881. over the people's heads, and says, in a kind of a coarse whisper, “_He
  5882. had a rat_!”  Then he drooped down and glided along the wall again to
  5883. his place.  You could see it was a great satisfaction to the people,
  5884. because naturally they wanted to know.  A little thing like that don't
  5885. cost nothing, and it's just the little things that makes a man to be
  5886. looked up to and liked.  There warn't no more popular man in town than
  5887. what that undertaker was.
  5888. Well, the funeral sermon was very good, but pison long and tiresome; and
  5889. then the king he shoved in and got off some of his usual rubbage, and
  5890. at last the job was through, and the undertaker begun to sneak up on the
  5891. coffin with his screw-driver.  I was in a sweat then, and watched him
  5892. pretty keen. But he never meddled at all; just slid the lid along as
  5893. soft as mush, and screwed it down tight and fast.  So there I was!  I
  5894. didn't know whether the money was in there or not.  So, says I, s'pose
  5895. somebody has hogged that bag on the sly?--now how do I know whether
  5896. to write to Mary Jane or not? S'pose she dug him up and didn't find
  5897. nothing, what would she think of me? Blame it, I says, I might get
  5898. hunted up and jailed; I'd better lay low and keep dark, and not write at
  5899. all; the thing's awful mixed now; trying to better it, I've worsened it
  5900. a hundred times, and I wish to goodness I'd just let it alone, dad fetch
  5901. the whole business!
  5902. They buried him, and we come back home, and I went to watching faces
  5903. again--I couldn't help it, and I couldn't rest easy.  But nothing come of
  5904. it; the faces didn't tell me nothing.
  5905. The king he visited around in the evening, and sweetened everybody up,
  5906. and made himself ever so friendly; and he give out the idea that his
  5907. congregation over in England would be in a sweat about him, so he must
  5908. hurry and settle up the estate right away and leave for home.  He was
  5909. very sorry he was so pushed, and so was everybody; they wished he could
  5910. stay longer, but they said they could see it couldn't be done.  And he
  5911. said of course him and William would take the girls home with them; and
  5912. that pleased everybody too, because then the girls would be well fixed
  5913. and amongst their own relations; and it pleased the girls, too--tickled
  5914. them so they clean forgot they ever had a trouble in the world; and told
  5915. him to sell out as quick as he wanted to, they would be ready.  Them
  5916. poor things was that glad and happy it made my heart ache to see them
  5917. getting fooled and lied to so, but I didn't see no safe way for me to
  5918. chip in and change the general tune.
  5919. Well, blamed if the king didn't bill the house and the niggers and all
  5920. the property for auction straight off--sale two days after the funeral;
  5921. but anybody could buy private beforehand if they wanted to.
  5922. So the next day after the funeral, along about noon-time, the girls' joy
  5923. got the first jolt.  A couple of nigger traders come along, and the king
  5924. sold them the niggers reasonable, for three-day drafts as they called
  5925. it, and away they went, the two sons up the river to Memphis, and their
  5926. mother down the river to Orleans.  I thought them poor girls and them
  5927. niggers would break their hearts for grief; they cried around each
  5928. other, and took on so it most made me down sick to see it.  The girls
  5929. said they hadn't ever dreamed of seeing the family separated or sold
  5930. away from the town.  I can't ever get it out of my memory, the sight of
  5931. them poor miserable girls and niggers hanging around each other's necks
  5932. and crying; and I reckon I couldn't a stood it all, but would a had
  5933. to bust out and tell on our gang if I hadn't knowed the sale warn't no
  5934. account and the niggers would be back home in a week or two.
  5935. The thing made a big stir in the town, too, and a good many come out
  5936. flatfooted and said it was scandalous to separate the mother and the
  5937. children that way.  It injured the frauds some; but the old fool he
  5938. bulled right along, spite of all the duke could say or do, and I tell
  5939. you the duke was powerful uneasy.
  5940. Next day was auction day.  About broad day in the morning the king and
  5941. the duke come up in the garret and woke me up, and I see by their look
  5942. that there was trouble.  The king says:
  5943. “Was you in my room night before last?”
  5944. “No, your majesty”--which was the way I always called him when nobody but
  5945. our gang warn't around.
  5946. “Was you in there yisterday er last night?”
  5947. “No, your majesty.”
  5948. “Honor bright, now--no lies.”
  5949. “Honor bright, your majesty, I'm telling you the truth.  I hain't been
  5950. a-near your room since Miss Mary Jane took you and the duke and showed
  5951. it to you.”
  5952. The duke says:
  5953. “Have you seen anybody else go in there?”
  5954. “No, your grace, not as I remember, I believe.”
  5955. “Stop and think.”
  5956. I studied awhile and see my chance; then I says:
  5957. “Well, I see the niggers go in there several times.”
  5958. Both of them gave a little jump, and looked like they hadn't ever
  5959. expected it, and then like they _had_.  Then the duke says:
  5960. “What, all of them?”
  5961. “No--leastways, not all at once--that is, I don't think I ever see them
  5962. all come _out_ at once but just one time.”
  5963. “Hello!  When was that?”
  5964. “It was the day we had the funeral.  In the morning.  It warn't early,
  5965. because I overslept.  I was just starting down the ladder, and I see
  5966. them.”
  5967. “Well, go on, _go_ on!  What did they do?  How'd they act?”
  5968. “They didn't do nothing.  And they didn't act anyway much, as fur as I
  5969. see. They tiptoed away; so I seen, easy enough, that they'd shoved in
  5970. there to do up your majesty's room, or something, s'posing you was up;
  5971. and found you _warn't_ up, and so they was hoping to slide out of the
  5972. way of trouble without waking you up, if they hadn't already waked you
  5973. up.”
  5974. “Great guns, _this_ is a go!” says the king; and both of them looked
  5975. pretty sick and tolerable silly.  They stood there a-thinking and
  5976. scratching their heads a minute, and the duke he bust into a kind of a
  5977. little raspy chuckle, and says:
  5978. “It does beat all how neat the niggers played their hand.  They let on
  5979. to be _sorry_ they was going out of this region!  And I believed they
  5980. _was_ sorry, and so did you, and so did everybody.  Don't ever tell _me_
  5981. any more that a nigger ain't got any histrionic talent.  Why, the way
  5982. they played that thing it would fool _anybody_.  In my opinion, there's
  5983. a fortune in 'em.  If I had capital and a theater, I wouldn't want a
  5984. better lay-out than that--and here we've gone and sold 'em for a song.
  5985.  Yes, and ain't privileged to sing the song yet.  Say, where _is_ that
  5986. song--that draft?”
  5987. “In the bank for to be collected.  Where _would_ it be?”
  5988. “Well, _that's_ all right then, thank goodness.”
  5989. Says I, kind of timid-like:
  5990. “Is something gone wrong?”
  5991. The king whirls on me and rips out:
  5992. “None o' your business!  You keep your head shet, and mind y'r own
  5993. affairs--if you got any.  Long as you're in this town don't you forgit
  5994. _that_--you hear?”  Then he says to the duke, “We got to jest swaller it
  5995. and say noth'n':  mum's the word for _us_.”
  5996. As they was starting down the ladder the duke he chuckles again, and
  5997. says:
  5998. “Quick sales _and_ small profits!  It's a good business--yes.”
  5999. The king snarls around on him and says:
  6000. “I was trying to do for the best in sellin' 'em out so quick.  If the
  6001. profits has turned out to be none, lackin' considable, and none to
  6002. carry, is it my fault any more'n it's yourn?”
  6003. “Well, _they'd_ be in this house yet and we _wouldn't_ if I could a got
  6004. my advice listened to.”
  6005. The king sassed back as much as was safe for him, and then swapped
  6006. around and lit into _me_ again.  He give me down the banks for not
  6007. coming and _telling_ him I see the niggers come out of his room acting
  6008. that way--said any fool would a _knowed_ something was up.  And then
  6009. waltzed in and cussed _himself_ awhile, and said it all come of him not
  6010. laying late and taking his natural rest that morning, and he'd be
  6011. blamed if he'd ever do it again.  So they went off a-jawing; and I felt
  6012. dreadful glad I'd worked it all off on to the niggers, and yet hadn't
  6013. done the niggers no harm by it.
  6014. CHAPTER XXVIII.
  6015. BY and by it was getting-up time.  So I come down the ladder and started
  6016. for down-stairs; but as I come to the girls' room the door was open, and
  6017. I see Mary Jane setting by her old hair trunk, which was open and she'd
  6018. been packing things in it--getting ready to go to England.  But she
  6019. had stopped now with a folded gown in her lap, and had her face in her
  6020. hands, crying.  I felt awful bad to see it; of course anybody would.  I
  6021. went in there and says:
  6022. “Miss Mary Jane, you can't a-bear to see people in trouble, and I
  6023. can't--most always.  Tell me about it.”
  6024. So she done it.  And it was the niggers--I just expected it.  She said
  6025. the beautiful trip to England was most about spoiled for her; she didn't
  6026. know _how_ she was ever going to be happy there, knowing the mother and
  6027. the children warn't ever going to see each other no more--and then busted
  6028. out bitterer than ever, and flung up her hands, and says:
  6029. “Oh, dear, dear, to think they ain't _ever_ going to see each other any
  6030. more!”
  6031. “But they _will_--and inside of two weeks--and I _know_ it!” says I.
  6032. Laws, it was out before I could think!  And before I could budge she
  6033. throws her arms around my neck and told me to say it _again_, say it
  6034. _again_, say it _again_!
  6035. I see I had spoke too sudden and said too much, and was in a close
  6036. place. I asked her to let me think a minute; and she set there, very
  6037. impatient and excited and handsome, but looking kind of happy and
  6038. eased-up, like a person that's had a tooth pulled out.  So I went to
  6039. studying it out.  I says to myself, I reckon a body that ups and tells
  6040. the truth when he is in a tight place is taking considerable many resks,
  6041. though I ain't had no experience, and can't say for certain; but it
  6042. looks so to me, anyway; and yet here's a case where I'm blest if it
  6043. don't look to me like the truth is better and actuly _safer_ than a lie.
  6044.  I must lay it by in my mind, and think it over some time or other, it's
  6045. so kind of strange and unregular. I never see nothing like it.  Well, I
  6046. says to myself at last, I'm a-going to chance it; I'll up and tell the
  6047. truth this time, though it does seem most like setting down on a kag of
  6048. powder and touching it off just to see where you'll go to. Then I says:
  6049. “Miss Mary Jane, is there any place out of town a little ways where you
  6050. could go and stay three or four days?”
  6051. “Yes; Mr. Lothrop's.  Why?”
  6052. “Never mind why yet.  If I'll tell you how I know the niggers will see
  6053. each other again inside of two weeks--here in this house--and _prove_ how
  6054. I know it--will you go to Mr. Lothrop's and stay four days?”
  6055. “Four days!” she says; “I'll stay a year!”
  6056. “All right,” I says, “I don't want nothing more out of _you_ than just
  6057. your word--I druther have it than another man's kiss-the-Bible.”  She
  6058. smiled and reddened up very sweet, and I says, “If you don't mind it,
  6059. I'll shut the door--and bolt it.”
  6060. Then I come back and set down again, and says:
  6061. “Don't you holler.  Just set still and take it like a man.  I got to
  6062. tell the truth, and you want to brace up, Miss Mary, because it's a
  6063. bad kind, and going to be hard to take, but there ain't no help for
  6064. it.  These uncles of yourn ain't no uncles at all; they're a couple of
  6065. frauds--regular dead-beats.  There, now we're over the worst of it, you
  6066. can stand the rest middling easy.”
  6067. It jolted her up like everything, of course; but I was over the shoal
  6068. water now, so I went right along, her eyes a-blazing higher and higher
  6069. all the time, and told her every blame thing, from where we first struck
  6070. that young fool going up to the steamboat, clear through to where she
  6071. flung herself on to the king's breast at the front door and he kissed
  6072. her sixteen or seventeen times--and then up she jumps, with her face
  6073. afire like sunset, and says:
  6074. “The brute!  Come, don't waste a minute--not a _second_--we'll have them
  6075. tarred and feathered, and flung in the river!”
  6076. Says I:
  6077. “Cert'nly.  But do you mean _before_ you go to Mr. Lothrop's, or--”
  6078. “Oh,” she says, “what am I _thinking_ about!” she says, and set right
  6079. down again. “Don't mind what I said--please don't--you _won't,_ now,
  6080. _will_ you?” Laying her silky hand on mine in that kind of a way that
  6081. I said I would die first. “I never thought, I was so stirred up,” she
  6082. says; “now go on, and I won't do so any more.  You tell me what to do,
  6083. and whatever you say I'll do it.”
  6084. “Well,” I says, “it's a rough gang, them two frauds, and I'm fixed so
  6085. I got to travel with them a while longer, whether I want to or not--I
  6086. druther not tell you why; and if you was to blow on them this town would
  6087. get me out of their claws, and I'd be all right; but there'd be another
  6088. person that you don't know about who'd be in big trouble.  Well, we
  6089. got to save _him_, hain't we?  Of course.  Well, then, we won't blow on
  6090. them.”
  6091. Saying them words put a good idea in my head.  I see how maybe I could
  6092. get me and Jim rid of the frauds; get them jailed here, and then leave.
  6093. But I didn't want to run the raft in the daytime without anybody aboard
  6094. to answer questions but me; so I didn't want the plan to begin working
  6095. till pretty late to-night.  I says:
  6096. “Miss Mary Jane, I'll tell you what we'll do, and you won't have to stay
  6097. at Mr. Lothrop's so long, nuther.  How fur is it?”
  6098. “A little short of four miles--right out in the country, back here.”
  6099. “Well, that 'll answer.  Now you go along out there, and lay low
  6100. till nine or half-past to-night, and then get them to fetch you home
  6101. again--tell them you've thought of something.  If you get here before
  6102. eleven put a candle in this window, and if I don't turn up wait _till_
  6103. eleven, and _then_ if I don't turn up it means I'm gone, and out of the
  6104. way, and safe. Then you come out and spread the news around, and get
  6105. these beats jailed.”
  6106. “Good,” she says, “I'll do it.”
  6107. “And if it just happens so that I don't get away, but get took up along
  6108. with them, you must up and say I told you the whole thing beforehand,
  6109. and you must stand by me all you can.”
  6110. “Stand by you! indeed I will.  They sha'n't touch a hair of your head!”
  6111. she says, and I see her nostrils spread and her eyes snap when she said
  6112. it, too.
  6113. “If I get away I sha'n't be here,” I says, “to prove these rapscallions
  6114. ain't your uncles, and I couldn't do it if I _was_ here.  I could swear
  6115. they was beats and bummers, that's all, though that's worth something.
  6116. Well, there's others can do that better than what I can, and they're
  6117. people that ain't going to be doubted as quick as I'd be.  I'll tell you
  6118. how to find them.  Gimme a pencil and a piece of paper.  There--'Royal
  6119. Nonesuch, Bricksville.'  Put it away, and don't lose it.  When the
  6120. court wants to find out something about these two, let them send up to
  6121. Bricksville and say they've got the men that played the Royal Nonesuch,
  6122. and ask for some witnesses--why, you'll have that entire town down here
  6123. before you can hardly wink, Miss Mary.  And they'll come a-biling, too.”
  6124. I judged we had got everything fixed about right now.  So I says:
  6125. “Just let the auction go right along, and don't worry.  Nobody don't
  6126. have to pay for the things they buy till a whole day after the auction
  6127. on accounts of the short notice, and they ain't going out of this till
  6128. they get that money; and the way we've fixed it the sale ain't going to
  6129. count, and they ain't going to get no money.  It's just like the way
  6130. it was with the niggers--it warn't no sale, and the niggers will be
  6131. back before long.  Why, they can't collect the money for the _niggers_
  6132. yet--they're in the worst kind of a fix, Miss Mary.”
  6133. “Well,” she says, “I'll run down to breakfast now, and then I'll start
  6134. straight for Mr. Lothrop's.”
  6135. “'Deed, _that_ ain't the ticket, Miss Mary Jane,” I says, “by no manner
  6136. of means; go _before_ breakfast.”
  6137. “Why?”
  6138. “What did you reckon I wanted you to go at all for, Miss Mary?”
  6139. “Well, I never thought--and come to think, I don't know.  What was it?”
  6140. “Why, it's because you ain't one of these leather-face people.  I don't
  6141. want no better book than what your face is.  A body can set down and
  6142. read it off like coarse print.  Do you reckon you can go and face your
  6143. uncles when they come to kiss you good-morning, and never--”
  6144. “There, there, don't!  Yes, I'll go before breakfast--I'll be glad to.
  6145. And leave my sisters with them?”
  6146. “Yes; never mind about them.  They've got to stand it yet a while.  They
  6147. might suspicion something if all of you was to go.  I don't want you to
  6148. see them, nor your sisters, nor nobody in this town; if a neighbor was
  6149. to ask how is your uncles this morning your face would tell something.
  6150.  No, you go right along, Miss Mary Jane, and I'll fix it with all of
  6151. them. I'll tell Miss Susan to give your love to your uncles and say
  6152. you've went away for a few hours for to get a little rest and change, or
  6153. to see a friend, and you'll be back to-night or early in the morning.”
  6154. “Gone to see a friend is all right, but I won't have my love given to
  6155. them.”
  6156. “Well, then, it sha'n't be.”  It was well enough to tell _her_ so--no
  6157. harm in it.  It was only a little thing to do, and no trouble; and it's
  6158. the little things that smooths people's roads the most, down here below;
  6159. it would make Mary Jane comfortable, and it wouldn't cost nothing.  Then
  6160. I says: “There's one more thing--that bag of money.”
  6161. “Well, they've got that; and it makes me feel pretty silly to think
  6162. _how_ they got it.”
  6163. “No, you're out, there.  They hain't got it.”
  6164. “Why, who's got it?”
  6165. “I wish I knowed, but I don't.  I _had_ it, because I stole it from
  6166. them; and I stole it to give to you; and I know where I hid it, but I'm
  6167. afraid it ain't there no more.  I'm awful sorry, Miss Mary Jane, I'm
  6168. just as sorry as I can be; but I done the best I could; I did honest.  I
  6169. come nigh getting caught, and I had to shove it into the first place I
  6170. come to, and run--and it warn't a good place.”
  6171. “Oh, stop blaming yourself--it's too bad to do it, and I won't allow
  6172. it--you couldn't help it; it wasn't your fault.  Where did you hide it?”
  6173. I didn't want to set her to thinking about her troubles again; and I
  6174. couldn't seem to get my mouth to tell her what would make her see that
  6175. corpse laying in the coffin with that bag of money on his stomach.  So
  6176. for a minute I didn't say nothing; then I says:
  6177. “I'd ruther not _tell_ you where I put it, Miss Mary Jane, if you don't
  6178. mind letting me off; but I'll write it for you on a piece of paper, and
  6179. you can read it along the road to Mr. Lothrop's, if you want to.  Do you
  6180. reckon that 'll do?”
  6181. “Oh, yes.”
  6182. So I wrote: “I put it in the coffin.  It was in there when you was
  6183. crying there, away in the night.  I was behind the door, and I was
  6184. mighty sorry for you, Miss Mary Jane.”
  6185. It made my eyes water a little to remember her crying there all by
  6186. herself in the night, and them devils laying there right under her own
  6187. roof, shaming her and robbing her; and when I folded it up and give it
  6188. to her I see the water come into her eyes, too; and she shook me by the
  6189. hand, hard, and says:
  6190. “_Good_-bye.  I'm going to do everything just as you've told me; and if
  6191. I don't ever see you again, I sha'n't ever forget you and I'll think of
  6192. you a many and a many a time, and I'll _pray_ for you, too!”--and she was
  6193. gone.
  6194. Pray for me!  I reckoned if she knowed me she'd take a job that was more
  6195. nearer her size.  But I bet she done it, just the same--she was just that
  6196. kind.  She had the grit to pray for Judus if she took the notion--there
  6197. warn't no back-down to her, I judge.  You may say what you want to, but
  6198. in my opinion she had more sand in her than any girl I ever see; in
  6199. my opinion she was just full of sand.  It sounds like flattery, but it
  6200. ain't no flattery.  And when it comes to beauty--and goodness, too--she
  6201. lays over them all.  I hain't ever seen her since that time that I see
  6202. her go out of that door; no, I hain't ever seen her since, but I reckon
  6203. I've thought of her a many and a many a million times, and of her saying
  6204. she would pray for me; and if ever I'd a thought it would do any good
  6205. for me to pray for _her_, blamed if I wouldn't a done it or bust.
  6206. Well, Mary Jane she lit out the back way, I reckon; because nobody see
  6207. her go.  When I struck Susan and the hare-lip, I says:
  6208. “What's the name of them people over on t'other side of the river that
  6209. you all goes to see sometimes?”
  6210. They says:
  6211. “There's several; but it's the Proctors, mainly.”
  6212. “That's the name,” I says; “I most forgot it.  Well, Miss Mary Jane she
  6213. told me to tell you she's gone over there in a dreadful hurry--one of
  6214. them's sick.”
  6215. “Which one?”
  6216. “I don't know; leastways, I kinder forget; but I thinks it's--”
  6217. “Sakes alive, I hope it ain't _Hanner_?”
  6218. “I'm sorry to say it,” I says, “but Hanner's the very one.”
  6219. “My goodness, and she so well only last week!  Is she took bad?”
  6220. “It ain't no name for it.  They set up with her all night, Miss Mary
  6221. Jane said, and they don't think she'll last many hours.”
  6222. “Only think of that, now!  What's the matter with her?”
  6223. I couldn't think of anything reasonable, right off that way, so I says:
  6224. “Mumps.”
  6225. “Mumps your granny!  They don't set up with people that's got the
  6226. mumps.”
  6227. “They don't, don't they?  You better bet they do with _these_ mumps.
  6228.  These mumps is different.  It's a new kind, Miss Mary Jane said.”
  6229. “How's it a new kind?”
  6230. “Because it's mixed up with other things.”
  6231. “What other things?”
  6232. “Well, measles, and whooping-cough, and erysiplas, and consumption, and
  6233. yaller janders, and brain-fever, and I don't know what all.”
  6234. “My land!  And they call it the _mumps_?”
  6235. “That's what Miss Mary Jane said.”
  6236. “Well, what in the nation do they call it the _mumps_ for?”
  6237. “Why, because it _is_ the mumps.  That's what it starts with.”
  6238. “Well, ther' ain't no sense in it.  A body might stump his toe, and take
  6239. pison, and fall down the well, and break his neck, and bust his brains
  6240. out, and somebody come along and ask what killed him, and some numskull
  6241. up and say, 'Why, he stumped his _toe_.'  Would ther' be any sense
  6242. in that? _No_.  And ther' ain't no sense in _this_, nuther.  Is it
  6243. ketching?”
  6244. “Is it _ketching_?  Why, how you talk.  Is a _harrow_ catching--in the
  6245. dark? If you don't hitch on to one tooth, you're bound to on another,
  6246. ain't you? And you can't get away with that tooth without fetching the
  6247. whole harrow along, can you?  Well, these kind of mumps is a kind of a
  6248. harrow, as you may say--and it ain't no slouch of a harrow, nuther, you
  6249. come to get it hitched on good.”
  6250. “Well, it's awful, I think,” says the hare-lip. “I'll go to Uncle
  6251. Harvey and--”
  6252. “Oh, yes,” I says, “I _would_.  Of _course_ I would.  I wouldn't lose no
  6253. time.”
  6254. “Well, why wouldn't you?”
  6255. “Just look at it a minute, and maybe you can see.  Hain't your uncles
  6256. obleegd to get along home to England as fast as they can?  And do you
  6257. reckon they'd be mean enough to go off and leave you to go all that
  6258. journey by yourselves?  _you_ know they'll wait for you.  So fur, so
  6259. good. Your uncle Harvey's a preacher, ain't he?  Very well, then; is a
  6260. _preacher_ going to deceive a steamboat clerk? is he going to deceive
  6261. a _ship clerk?_--so as to get them to let Miss Mary Jane go aboard?  Now
  6262. _you_ know he ain't.  What _will_ he do, then?  Why, he'll say, 'It's a
  6263. great pity, but my church matters has got to get along the best way they
  6264. can; for my niece has been exposed to the dreadful pluribus-unum mumps,
  6265. and so it's my bounden duty to set down here and wait the three months
  6266. it takes to show on her if she's got it.'  But never mind, if you think
  6267. it's best to tell your uncle Harvey--”
  6268. “Shucks, and stay fooling around here when we could all be having good
  6269. times in England whilst we was waiting to find out whether Mary Jane's
  6270. got it or not?  Why, you talk like a muggins.”
  6271. “Well, anyway, maybe you'd better tell some of the neighbors.”
  6272. “Listen at that, now.  You do beat all for natural stupidness.  Can't
  6273. you _see_ that _they'd_ go and tell?  Ther' ain't no way but just to not
  6274. tell anybody at _all_.”
  6275. “Well, maybe you're right--yes, I judge you _are_ right.”
  6276. “But I reckon we ought to tell Uncle Harvey she's gone out a while,
  6277. anyway, so he won't be uneasy about her?”
  6278. “Yes, Miss Mary Jane she wanted you to do that.  She says, 'Tell them to
  6279. give Uncle Harvey and William my love and a kiss, and say I've run over
  6280. the river to see Mr.'--Mr.--what _is_ the name of that rich family your
  6281. uncle Peter used to think so much of?--I mean the one that--”
  6282. “Why, you must mean the Apthorps, ain't it?”
  6283. “Of course; bother them kind of names, a body can't ever seem to
  6284. remember them, half the time, somehow.  Yes, she said, say she has run
  6285. over for to ask the Apthorps to be sure and come to the auction and buy
  6286. this house, because she allowed her uncle Peter would ruther they had
  6287. it than anybody else; and she's going to stick to them till they say
  6288. they'll come, and then, if she ain't too tired, she's coming home; and
  6289. if she is, she'll be home in the morning anyway.  She said, don't say
  6290. nothing about the Proctors, but only about the Apthorps--which 'll be
  6291. perfectly true, because she is going there to speak about their buying
  6292. the house; I know it, because she told me so herself.”
  6293. “All right,” they said, and cleared out to lay for their uncles, and
  6294. give them the love and the kisses, and tell them the message.
  6295. Everything was all right now.  The girls wouldn't say nothing because
  6296. they wanted to go to England; and the king and the duke would ruther
  6297. Mary Jane was off working for the auction than around in reach of
  6298. Doctor Robinson.  I felt very good; I judged I had done it pretty neat--I
  6299. reckoned Tom Sawyer couldn't a done it no neater himself.  Of course he
  6300. would a throwed more style into it, but I can't do that very handy, not
  6301. being brung up to it.
  6302. Well, they held the auction in the public square, along towards the end
  6303. of the afternoon, and it strung along, and strung along, and the old man
  6304. he was on hand and looking his level pisonest, up there longside of the
  6305. auctioneer, and chipping in a little Scripture now and then, or a little
  6306. goody-goody saying of some kind, and the duke he was around goo-gooing
  6307. for sympathy all he knowed how, and just spreading himself generly.
  6308. But by and by the thing dragged through, and everything was
  6309. sold--everything but a little old trifling lot in the graveyard.  So
  6310. they'd got to work that off--I never see such a girafft as the king was
  6311. for wanting to swallow _everything_.  Well, whilst they was at it a
  6312. steamboat landed, and in about two minutes up comes a crowd a-whooping
  6313. and yelling and laughing and carrying on, and singing out:
  6314. “_Here's_ your opposition line! here's your two sets o' heirs to old
  6315. Peter Wilks--and you pays your money and you takes your choice!”
  6316. CHAPTER XXIX.
  6317. THEY was fetching a very nice-looking old gentleman along, and a
  6318. nice-looking younger one, with his right arm in a sling.  And, my souls,
  6319. how the people yelled and laughed, and kept it up.  But I didn't see no
  6320. joke about it, and I judged it would strain the duke and the king some
  6321. to see any.  I reckoned they'd turn pale.  But no, nary a pale did
  6322. _they_ turn. The duke he never let on he suspicioned what was up, but
  6323. just went a goo-gooing around, happy and satisfied, like a jug that's
  6324. googling out buttermilk; and as for the king, he just gazed and gazed
  6325. down sorrowful on them new-comers like it give him the stomach-ache in
  6326. his very heart to think there could be such frauds and rascals in the
  6327. world.  Oh, he done it admirable.  Lots of the principal people
  6328. gethered around the king, to let him see they was on his side.  That old
  6329. gentleman that had just come looked all puzzled to death.  Pretty
  6330. soon he begun to speak, and I see straight off he pronounced _like_ an
  6331. Englishman--not the king's way, though the king's _was_ pretty good for
  6332. an imitation.  I can't give the old gent's words, nor I can't imitate
  6333. him; but he turned around to the crowd, and says, about like this:
  6334. “This is a surprise to me which I wasn't looking for; and I'll
  6335. acknowledge, candid and frank, I ain't very well fixed to meet it and
  6336. answer it; for my brother and me has had misfortunes; he's broke his
  6337. arm, and our baggage got put off at a town above here last night in the
  6338. night by a mistake.  I am Peter Wilks' brother Harvey, and this is his
  6339. brother William, which can't hear nor speak--and can't even make signs to
  6340. amount to much, now't he's only got one hand to work them with.  We are
  6341. who we say we are; and in a day or two, when I get the baggage, I can
  6342. prove it. But up till then I won't say nothing more, but go to the hotel
  6343. and wait.”
  6344. So him and the new dummy started off; and the king he laughs, and
  6345. blethers out:
  6346. “Broke his arm--_very_ likely, _ain't_ it?--and very convenient, too,
  6347. for a fraud that's got to make signs, and ain't learnt how.  Lost
  6348. their baggage! That's _mighty_ good!--and mighty ingenious--under the
  6349. _circumstances_!”
  6350. So he laughed again; and so did everybody else, except three or four,
  6351. or maybe half a dozen.  One of these was that doctor; another one was
  6352. a sharp-looking gentleman, with a carpet-bag of the old-fashioned kind
  6353. made out of carpet-stuff, that had just come off of the steamboat and
  6354. was talking to him in a low voice, and glancing towards the king now and
  6355. then and nodding their heads--it was Levi Bell, the lawyer that was gone
  6356. up to Louisville; and another one was a big rough husky that come along
  6357. and listened to all the old gentleman said, and was listening to the
  6358. king now. And when the king got done this husky up and says:
  6359. “Say, looky here; if you are Harvey Wilks, when'd you come to this
  6360. town?”
  6361. “The day before the funeral, friend,” says the king.
  6362. “But what time o' day?”
  6363. “In the evenin'--'bout an hour er two before sundown.”
  6364. “_How'd_ you come?”
  6365. “I come down on the Susan Powell from Cincinnati.”
  6366. “Well, then, how'd you come to be up at the Pint in the _mornin_'--in a
  6367. canoe?”
  6368. “I warn't up at the Pint in the mornin'.”
  6369. “It's a lie.”
  6370. Several of them jumped for him and begged him not to talk that way to an
  6371. old man and a preacher.
  6372. “Preacher be hanged, he's a fraud and a liar.  He was up at the Pint
  6373. that mornin'.  I live up there, don't I?  Well, I was up there, and
  6374. he was up there.  I see him there.  He come in a canoe, along with Tim
  6375. Collins and a boy.”
  6376. The doctor he up and says:
  6377. “Would you know the boy again if you was to see him, Hines?”
  6378. “I reckon I would, but I don't know.  Why, yonder he is, now.  I know
  6379. him perfectly easy.”
  6380. It was me he pointed at.  The doctor says:
  6381. “Neighbors, I don't know whether the new couple is frauds or not; but if
  6382. _these_ two ain't frauds, I am an idiot, that's all.  I think it's our
  6383. duty to see that they don't get away from here till we've looked into
  6384. this thing. Come along, Hines; come along, the rest of you.  We'll take
  6385. these fellows to the tavern and affront them with t'other couple, and I
  6386. reckon we'll find out _something_ before we get through.”
  6387. It was nuts for the crowd, though maybe not for the king's friends; so
  6388. we all started.  It was about sundown.  The doctor he led me along by
  6389. the hand, and was plenty kind enough, but he never let go my hand.
  6390. We all got in a big room in the hotel, and lit up some candles, and
  6391. fetched in the new couple.  First, the doctor says:
  6392. “I don't wish to be too hard on these two men, but I think they're
  6393. frauds, and they may have complices that we don't know nothing about.
  6394.  If they have, won't the complices get away with that bag of gold Peter
  6395. Wilks left?  It ain't unlikely.  If these men ain't frauds, they won't
  6396. object to sending for that money and letting us keep it till they prove
  6397. they're all right--ain't that so?”
  6398. Everybody agreed to that.  So I judged they had our gang in a pretty
  6399. tight place right at the outstart.  But the king he only looked
  6400. sorrowful, and says:
  6401. “Gentlemen, I wish the money was there, for I ain't got no disposition
  6402. to throw anything in the way of a fair, open, out-and-out investigation
  6403. o' this misable business; but, alas, the money ain't there; you k'n send
  6404. and see, if you want to.”
  6405. “Where is it, then?”
  6406. “Well, when my niece give it to me to keep for her I took and hid it
  6407. inside o' the straw tick o' my bed, not wishin' to bank it for the few
  6408. days we'd be here, and considerin' the bed a safe place, we not bein'
  6409. used to niggers, and suppos'n' 'em honest, like servants in England.
  6410.  The niggers stole it the very next mornin' after I had went down
  6411. stairs; and when I sold 'em I hadn't missed the money yit, so they got
  6412. clean away with it.  My servant here k'n tell you 'bout it, gentlemen.”
  6413. The doctor and several said “Shucks!” and I see nobody didn't altogether
  6414. believe him.  One man asked me if I see the niggers steal it.  I said
  6415. no, but I see them sneaking out of the room and hustling away, and I
  6416. never thought nothing, only I reckoned they was afraid they had waked up
  6417. my master and was trying to get away before he made trouble with them.
  6418.  That was all they asked me.  Then the doctor whirls on me and says:
  6419. “Are _you_ English, too?”
  6420. I says yes; and him and some others laughed, and said, “Stuff!”
  6421. Well, then they sailed in on the general investigation, and there we had
  6422. it, up and down, hour in, hour out, and nobody never said a word about
  6423. supper, nor ever seemed to think about it--and so they kept it up, and
  6424. kept it up; and it _was_ the worst mixed-up thing you ever see.  They
  6425. made the king tell his yarn, and they made the old gentleman tell his'n;
  6426. and anybody but a lot of prejudiced chuckleheads would a _seen_ that the
  6427. old gentleman was spinning truth and t'other one lies.  And by and by
  6428. they had me up to tell what I knowed.  The king he give me a left-handed
  6429. look out of the corner of his eye, and so I knowed enough to talk on the
  6430. right side.  I begun to tell about Sheffield, and how we lived there,
  6431. and all about the English Wilkses, and so on; but I didn't get pretty
  6432. fur till the doctor begun to laugh; and Levi Bell, the lawyer, says:
  6433. “Set down, my boy; I wouldn't strain myself if I was you.  I reckon
  6434. you ain't used to lying, it don't seem to come handy; what you want is
  6435. practice.  You do it pretty awkward.”
  6436. I didn't care nothing for the compliment, but I was glad to be let off,
  6437. anyway.
  6438. The doctor he started to say something, and turns and says:
  6439. “If you'd been in town at first, Levi Bell--” The king broke in and
  6440. reached out his hand, and says:
  6441. “Why, is this my poor dead brother's old friend that he's wrote so often
  6442. about?”
  6443. The lawyer and him shook hands, and the lawyer smiled and looked
  6444. pleased, and they talked right along awhile, and then got to one side
  6445. and talked low; and at last the lawyer speaks up and says:
  6446. “That 'll fix it.  I'll take the order and send it, along with your
  6447. brother's, and then they'll know it's all right.”
  6448. So they got some paper and a pen, and the king he set down and twisted
  6449. his head to one side, and chawed his tongue, and scrawled off something;
  6450. and then they give the pen to the duke--and then for the first time the
  6451. duke looked sick.  But he took the pen and wrote.  So then the lawyer
  6452. turns to the new old gentleman and says:
  6453. “You and your brother please write a line or two and sign your names.”
  6454. The old gentleman wrote, but nobody couldn't read it.  The lawyer looked
  6455. powerful astonished, and says:
  6456. “Well, it beats _me_”--and snaked a lot of old letters out of his pocket,
  6457. and examined them, and then examined the old man's writing, and then
  6458. _them_ again; and then says: “These old letters is from Harvey Wilks;
  6459. and here's _these_ two handwritings, and anybody can see they didn't
  6460. write them” (the king and the duke looked sold and foolish, I tell
  6461. you, to see how the lawyer had took them in), “and here's _this_ old
  6462. gentleman's hand writing, and anybody can tell, easy enough, _he_ didn't
  6463. write them--fact is, the scratches he makes ain't properly _writing_ at
  6464. all.  Now, here's some letters from--”
  6465. The new old gentleman says:
  6466. “If you please, let me explain.  Nobody can read my hand but my brother
  6467. there--so he copies for me.  It's _his_ hand you've got there, not mine.”
  6468. “_Well_!” says the lawyer, “this _is_ a state of things.  I've got some
  6469. of William's letters, too; so if you'll get him to write a line or so we
  6470. can com--”
  6471. “He _can't_ write with his left hand,” says the old gentleman. “If he
  6472. could use his right hand, you would see that he wrote his own letters
  6473. and mine too.  Look at both, please--they're by the same hand.”
  6474. The lawyer done it, and says:
  6475. “I believe it's so--and if it ain't so, there's a heap stronger
  6476. resemblance than I'd noticed before, anyway.  Well, well, well!  I
  6477. thought we was right on the track of a solution, but it's gone to grass,
  6478. partly.  But anyway, one thing is proved--_these_ two ain't either of 'em
  6479. Wilkses”--and he wagged his head towards the king and the duke.
  6480. Well, what do you think?  That muleheaded old fool wouldn't give in
  6481. _then_! Indeed he wouldn't.  Said it warn't no fair test.  Said his
  6482. brother William was the cussedest joker in the world, and hadn't tried
  6483. to write--_he_ see William was going to play one of his jokes the minute
  6484. he put the pen to paper.  And so he warmed up and went warbling and
  6485. warbling right along till he was actuly beginning to believe what he was
  6486. saying _himself_; but pretty soon the new gentleman broke in, and says:
  6487. “I've thought of something.  Is there anybody here that helped to lay
  6488. out my br--helped to lay out the late Peter Wilks for burying?”
  6489. “Yes,” says somebody, “me and Ab Turner done it.  We're both here.”
  6490. Then the old man turns towards the king, and says:
  6491. “Perhaps this gentleman can tell me what was tattooed on his breast?”
  6492. Blamed if the king didn't have to brace up mighty quick, or he'd a
  6493. squshed down like a bluff bank that the river has cut under, it took
  6494. him so sudden; and, mind you, it was a thing that was calculated to make
  6495. most _anybody_ sqush to get fetched such a solid one as that without any
  6496. notice, because how was _he_ going to know what was tattooed on the man?
  6497.  He whitened a little; he couldn't help it; and it was mighty still in
  6498. there, and everybody bending a little forwards and gazing at him.  Says
  6499. I to myself, _now_ he'll throw up the sponge--there ain't no more use.
  6500.  Well, did he?  A body can't hardly believe it, but he didn't.  I reckon
  6501. he thought he'd keep the thing up till he tired them people out, so
  6502. they'd thin out, and him and the duke could break loose and get away.
  6503.  Anyway, he set there, and pretty soon he begun to smile, and says:
  6504. “Mf!  It's a _very_ tough question, _ain't_ it!  _yes_, sir, I k'n
  6505. tell you what's tattooed on his breast.  It's jest a small, thin, blue
  6506. arrow--that's what it is; and if you don't look clost, you can't see it.
  6507.  _now_ what do you say--hey?”
  6508. Well, I never see anything like that old blister for clean out-and-out
  6509. cheek.
  6510. The new old gentleman turns brisk towards Ab Turner and his pard, and
  6511. his eye lights up like he judged he'd got the king _this_ time, and
  6512. says:
  6513. “There--you've heard what he said!  Was there any such mark on Peter
  6514. Wilks' breast?”
  6515. Both of them spoke up and says:
  6516. “We didn't see no such mark.”
  6517. “Good!” says the old gentleman. “Now, what you _did_ see on his breast
  6518. was a small dim P, and a B (which is an initial he dropped when he was
  6519. young), and a W, with dashes between them, so:  P--B--W”--and he marked
  6520. them that way on a piece of paper. “Come, ain't that what you saw?”
  6521. Both of them spoke up again, and says:
  6522. “No, we _didn't_.  We never seen any marks at all.”
  6523. Well, everybody _was_ in a state of mind now, and they sings out:
  6524. “The whole _bilin_' of 'm 's frauds!  Le's duck 'em! le's drown 'em!
  6525. le's ride 'em on a rail!” and everybody was whooping at once, and there
  6526. was a rattling powwow.  But the lawyer he jumps on the table and yells,
  6527. and says:
  6528. “Gentlemen--gentle_men!_  Hear me just a word--just a _single_ word--if you
  6529. _please_!  There's one way yet--let's go and dig up the corpse and look.”
  6530. That took them.
  6531. “Hooray!” they all shouted, and was starting right off; but the lawyer
  6532. and the doctor sung out:
  6533. “Hold on, hold on!  Collar all these four men and the boy, and fetch
  6534. _them_ along, too!”
  6535. “We'll do it!” they all shouted; “and if we don't find them marks we'll
  6536. lynch the whole gang!”
  6537. I _was_ scared, now, I tell you.  But there warn't no getting away, you
  6538. know. They gripped us all, and marched us right along, straight for the
  6539. graveyard, which was a mile and a half down the river, and the whole
  6540. town at our heels, for we made noise enough, and it was only nine in the
  6541. evening.
  6542. As we went by our house I wished I hadn't sent Mary Jane out of town;
  6543. because now if I could tip her the wink she'd light out and save me, and
  6544. blow on our dead-beats.
  6545. Well, we swarmed along down the river road, just carrying on like
  6546. wildcats; and to make it more scary the sky was darking up, and the
  6547. lightning beginning to wink and flitter, and the wind to shiver amongst
  6548. the leaves. This was the most awful trouble and most dangersome I ever
  6549. was in; and I was kinder stunned; everything was going so different from
  6550. what I had allowed for; stead of being fixed so I could take my own time
  6551. if I wanted to, and see all the fun, and have Mary Jane at my back to
  6552. save me and set me free when the close-fit come, here was nothing in the
  6553. world betwixt me and sudden death but just them tattoo-marks.  If they
  6554. didn't find them--
  6555. I couldn't bear to think about it; and yet, somehow, I couldn't think
  6556. about nothing else.  It got darker and darker, and it was a beautiful
  6557. time to give the crowd the slip; but that big husky had me by the
  6558. wrist--Hines--and a body might as well try to give Goliar the slip.  He
  6559. dragged me right along, he was so excited, and I had to run to keep up.
  6560. When they got there they swarmed into the graveyard and washed over it
  6561. like an overflow.  And when they got to the grave they found they had
  6562. about a hundred times as many shovels as they wanted, but nobody hadn't
  6563. thought to fetch a lantern.  But they sailed into digging anyway by the
  6564. flicker of the lightning, and sent a man to the nearest house, a half a
  6565. mile off, to borrow one.
  6566. So they dug and dug like everything; and it got awful dark, and the rain
  6567. started, and the wind swished and swushed along, and the lightning come
  6568. brisker and brisker, and the thunder boomed; but them people never took
  6569. no notice of it, they was so full of this business; and one minute
  6570. you could see everything and every face in that big crowd, and the
  6571. shovelfuls of dirt sailing up out of the grave, and the next second the
  6572. dark wiped it all out, and you couldn't see nothing at all.
  6573. At last they got out the coffin and begun to unscrew the lid, and then
  6574. such another crowding and shouldering and shoving as there was, to
  6575. scrouge in and get a sight, you never see; and in the dark, that way, it
  6576. was awful.  Hines he hurt my wrist dreadful pulling and tugging so,
  6577. and I reckon he clean forgot I was in the world, he was so excited and
  6578. panting.
  6579. All of a sudden the lightning let go a perfect sluice of white glare,
  6580. and somebody sings out:
  6581. “By the living jingo, here's the bag of gold on his breast!”
  6582. Hines let out a whoop, like everybody else, and dropped my wrist and
  6583. give a big surge to bust his way in and get a look, and the way I lit
  6584. out and shinned for the road in the dark there ain't nobody can tell.
  6585. I had the road all to myself, and I fairly flew--leastways, I had it all
  6586. to myself except the solid dark, and the now-and-then glares, and the
  6587. buzzing of the rain, and the thrashing of the wind, and the splitting of
  6588. the thunder; and sure as you are born I did clip it along!
  6589. When I struck the town I see there warn't nobody out in the storm, so
  6590. I never hunted for no back streets, but humped it straight through the
  6591. main one; and when I begun to get towards our house I aimed my eye and
  6592. set it. No light there; the house all dark--which made me feel sorry and
  6593. disappointed, I didn't know why.  But at last, just as I was sailing by,
  6594. _flash_ comes the light in Mary Jane's window! and my heart swelled up
  6595. sudden, like to bust; and the same second the house and all was behind
  6596. me in the dark, and wasn't ever going to be before me no more in this
  6597. world. She _was_ the best girl I ever see, and had the most sand.
  6598. The minute I was far enough above the town to see I could make the
  6599. towhead, I begun to look sharp for a boat to borrow, and the first
  6600. time the lightning showed me one that wasn't chained I snatched it and
  6601. shoved. It was a canoe, and warn't fastened with nothing but a rope.
  6602.  The towhead was a rattling big distance off, away out there in the
  6603. middle of the river, but I didn't lose no time; and when I struck the
  6604. raft at last I was so fagged I would a just laid down to blow and gasp
  6605. if I could afforded it.  But I didn't.  As I sprung aboard I sung out:
  6606. “Out with you, Jim, and set her loose!  Glory be to goodness, we're shut
  6607. of them!”
  6608. Jim lit out, and was a-coming for me with both arms spread, he was so
  6609. full of joy; but when I glimpsed him in the lightning my heart shot up
  6610. in my mouth and I went overboard backwards; for I forgot he was old King
  6611. Lear and a drownded A-rab all in one, and it most scared the livers and
  6612. lights out of me.  But Jim fished me out, and was going to hug me and
  6613. bless me, and so on, he was so glad I was back and we was shut of the
  6614. king and the duke, but I says:
  6615. “Not now; have it for breakfast, have it for breakfast!  Cut loose and
  6616. let her slide!”
  6617. So in two seconds away we went a-sliding down the river, and it _did_
  6618. seem so good to be free again and all by ourselves on the big river, and
  6619. nobody to bother us.  I had to skip around a bit, and jump up and crack
  6620. my heels a few times--I couldn't help it; but about the third crack
  6621. I noticed a sound that I knowed mighty well, and held my breath and
  6622. listened and waited; and sure enough, when the next flash busted out
  6623. over the water, here they come!--and just a-laying to their oars and
  6624. making their skiff hum!  It was the king and the duke.
  6625. So I wilted right down on to the planks then, and give up; and it was
  6626. all I could do to keep from crying.
  6627. CHAPTER XXX.
  6628. WHEN they got aboard the king went for me, and shook me by the collar,
  6629. and says:
  6630. “Tryin' to give us the slip, was ye, you pup!  Tired of our company,
  6631. hey?”
  6632. I says:
  6633. “No, your majesty, we warn't--_please_ don't, your majesty!”
  6634. “Quick, then, and tell us what _was_ your idea, or I'll shake the
  6635. insides out o' you!”
  6636. “Honest, I'll tell you everything just as it happened, your majesty.
  6637.  The man that had a-holt of me was very good to me, and kept saying he
  6638. had a boy about as big as me that died last year, and he was sorry
  6639. to see a boy in such a dangerous fix; and when they was all took by
  6640. surprise by finding the gold, and made a rush for the coffin, he lets go
  6641. of me and whispers, 'Heel it now, or they'll hang ye, sure!' and I lit
  6642. out.  It didn't seem no good for _me_ to stay--I couldn't do nothing,
  6643. and I didn't want to be hung if I could get away.  So I never stopped
  6644. running till I found the canoe; and when I got here I told Jim to hurry,
  6645. or they'd catch me and hang me yet, and said I was afeard you and the
  6646. duke wasn't alive now, and I was awful sorry, and so was Jim, and was
  6647. awful glad when we see you coming; you may ask Jim if I didn't.”
  6648. Jim said it was so; and the king told him to shut up, and said, “Oh,
  6649. yes, it's _mighty_ likely!” and shook me up again, and said he reckoned
  6650. he'd drownd me.  But the duke says:
  6651. “Leggo the boy, you old idiot!  Would _you_ a done any different?  Did
  6652. you inquire around for _him_ when you got loose?  I don't remember it.”
  6653. So the king let go of me, and begun to cuss that town and everybody in
  6654. it. But the duke says:
  6655. “You better a blame' sight give _yourself_ a good cussing, for you're
  6656. the one that's entitled to it most.  You hain't done a thing from the
  6657. start that had any sense in it, except coming out so cool and cheeky
  6658. with that imaginary blue-arrow mark.  That _was_ bright--it was right
  6659. down bully; and it was the thing that saved us.  For if it hadn't been
  6660. for that they'd a jailed us till them Englishmen's baggage come--and
  6661. then--the penitentiary, you bet! But that trick took 'em to the
  6662. graveyard, and the gold done us a still bigger kindness; for if the
  6663. excited fools hadn't let go all holts and made that rush to get a
  6664. look we'd a slept in our cravats to-night--cravats warranted to _wear_,
  6665. too--longer than _we'd_ need 'em.”
  6666. They was still a minute--thinking; then the king says, kind of
  6667. absent-minded like:
  6668. “Mf!  And we reckoned the _niggers_ stole it!”
  6669. That made me squirm!
  6670. “Yes,” says the duke, kinder slow and deliberate and sarcastic, “_we_
  6671. did.”
  6672. After about a half a minute the king drawls out:
  6673. “Leastways, I did.”
  6674. The duke says, the same way:
  6675. “On the contrary, I did.”
  6676. The king kind of ruffles up, and says:
  6677. “Looky here, Bilgewater, what'r you referrin' to?”
  6678. The duke says, pretty brisk:
  6679. “When it comes to that, maybe you'll let me ask, what was _you_
  6680. referring to?”
  6681. “Shucks!” says the king, very sarcastic; “but I don't know--maybe you was
  6682. asleep, and didn't know what you was about.”
  6683. The duke bristles up now, and says:
  6684. “Oh, let _up_ on this cussed nonsense; do you take me for a blame' fool?
  6685. Don't you reckon I know who hid that money in that coffin?”
  6686. “_Yes_, sir!  I know you _do_ know, because you done it yourself!”
  6687. “It's a lie!”--and the duke went for him.  The king sings out:
  6688. “Take y'r hands off!--leggo my throat!--I take it all back!”
  6689. The duke says:
  6690. “Well, you just own up, first, that you _did_ hide that money there,
  6691. intending to give me the slip one of these days, and come back and dig
  6692. it up, and have it all to yourself.”
  6693. “Wait jest a minute, duke--answer me this one question, honest and fair;
  6694. if you didn't put the money there, say it, and I'll b'lieve you, and
  6695. take back everything I said.”
  6696. “You old scoundrel, I didn't, and you know I didn't.  There, now!”
  6697. “Well, then, I b'lieve you.  But answer me only jest this one more--now
  6698. _don't_ git mad; didn't you have it in your mind to hook the money and
  6699. hide it?”
  6700. The duke never said nothing for a little bit; then he says:
  6701. “Well, I don't care if I _did_, I didn't _do_ it, anyway.  But you not
  6702. only had it in mind to do it, but you _done_ it.”
  6703. “I wisht I never die if I done it, duke, and that's honest.  I won't say
  6704. I warn't goin' to do it, because I _was_; but you--I mean somebody--got in
  6705. ahead o' me.”
  6706. “It's a lie!  You done it, and you got to _say_ you done it, or--”
  6707. The king began to gurgle, and then he gasps out:
  6708. “'Nough!--I _own up!_”
  6709. I was very glad to hear him say that; it made me feel much more easier
  6710. than what I was feeling before.  So the duke took his hands off and
  6711. says:
  6712. “If you ever deny it again I'll drown you.  It's _well_ for you to set
  6713. there and blubber like a baby--it's fitten for you, after the way
  6714. you've acted. I never see such an old ostrich for wanting to gobble
  6715. everything--and I a-trusting you all the time, like you was my own
  6716. father.  You ought to been ashamed of yourself to stand by and hear it
  6717. saddled on to a lot of poor niggers, and you never say a word for 'em.
  6718.  It makes me feel ridiculous to think I was soft enough to _believe_
  6719. that rubbage.  Cuss you, I can see now why you was so anxious to make
  6720. up the deffisit--you wanted to get what money I'd got out of the Nonesuch
  6721. and one thing or another, and scoop it _all_!”
  6722. The king says, timid, and still a-snuffling:
  6723. “Why, duke, it was you that said make up the deffisit; it warn't me.”
  6724. “Dry up!  I don't want to hear no more out of you!” says the duke. “And
  6725. _now_ you see what you GOT by it.  They've got all their own money back,
  6726. and all of _ourn_ but a shekel or two _besides_.  G'long to bed, and
  6727. don't you deffersit _me_ no more deffersits, long 's _you_ live!”
  6728. So the king sneaked into the wigwam and took to his bottle for comfort,
  6729. and before long the duke tackled HIS bottle; and so in about a half an
  6730. hour they was as thick as thieves again, and the tighter they got the
  6731. lovinger they got, and went off a-snoring in each other's arms.  They
  6732. both got powerful mellow, but I noticed the king didn't get mellow
  6733. enough to forget to remember to not deny about hiding the money-bag
  6734. again.  That made me feel easy and satisfied.  Of course when they got
  6735. to snoring we had a long gabble, and I told Jim everything.
  6736. CHAPTER XXXI.
  6737. WE dasn't stop again at any town for days and days; kept right along
  6738. down the river.  We was down south in the warm weather now, and a mighty
  6739. long ways from home.  We begun to come to trees with Spanish moss on
  6740. them, hanging down from the limbs like long, gray beards.  It was the
  6741. first I ever see it growing, and it made the woods look solemn and
  6742. dismal.  So now the frauds reckoned they was out of danger, and they
  6743. begun to work the villages again.
  6744. First they done a lecture on temperance; but they didn't make enough
  6745. for them both to get drunk on.  Then in another village they started
  6746. a dancing-school; but they didn't know no more how to dance than a
  6747. kangaroo does; so the first prance they made the general public jumped
  6748. in and pranced them out of town.  Another time they tried to go at
  6749. yellocution; but they didn't yellocute long till the audience got up and
  6750. give them a solid good cussing, and made them skip out.  They tackled
  6751. missionarying, and mesmerizing, and doctoring, and telling fortunes, and
  6752. a little of everything; but they couldn't seem to have no luck.  So at
  6753. last they got just about dead broke, and laid around the raft as she
  6754. floated along, thinking and thinking, and never saying nothing, by the
  6755. half a day at a time, and dreadful blue and desperate.
  6756. And at last they took a change and begun to lay their heads together in
  6757. the wigwam and talk low and confidential two or three hours at a time.
  6758. Jim and me got uneasy.  We didn't like the look of it.  We judged they
  6759. was studying up some kind of worse deviltry than ever.  We turned it
  6760. over and over, and at last we made up our minds they was going to break
  6761. into somebody's house or store, or was going into the counterfeit-money
  6762. business, or something. So then we was pretty scared, and made up an
  6763. agreement that we wouldn't have nothing in the world to do with such
  6764. actions, and if we ever got the least show we would give them the cold
  6765. shake and clear out and leave them behind. Well, early one morning we
  6766. hid the raft in a good, safe place about two mile below a little bit of
  6767. a shabby village named Pikesville, and the king he went ashore and told
  6768. us all to stay hid whilst he went up to town and smelt around to see
  6769. if anybody had got any wind of the Royal Nonesuch there yet. (“House to
  6770. rob, you _mean_,” says I to myself; “and when you get through robbing it
  6771. you'll come back here and wonder what has become of me and Jim and the
  6772. raft--and you'll have to take it out in wondering.”) And he said if he
  6773. warn't back by midday the duke and me would know it was all right, and
  6774. we was to come along.
  6775. So we stayed where we was.  The duke he fretted and sweated around, and
  6776. was in a mighty sour way.  He scolded us for everything, and we couldn't
  6777. seem to do nothing right; he found fault with every little thing.
  6778. Something was a-brewing, sure.  I was good and glad when midday come
  6779. and no king; we could have a change, anyway--and maybe a chance for _the_
  6780. change on top of it.  So me and the duke went up to the village, and
  6781. hunted around there for the king, and by and by we found him in the
  6782. back room of a little low doggery, very tight, and a lot of loafers
  6783. bullyragging him for sport, and he a-cussing and a-threatening with all
  6784. his might, and so tight he couldn't walk, and couldn't do nothing to
  6785. them.  The duke he begun to abuse him for an old fool, and the king
  6786. begun to sass back, and the minute they was fairly at it I lit out and
  6787. shook the reefs out of my hind legs, and spun down the river road like
  6788. a deer, for I see our chance; and I made up my mind that it would be a
  6789. long day before they ever see me and Jim again.  I got down there all
  6790. out of breath but loaded up with joy, and sung out:
  6791. “Set her loose, Jim! we're all right now!”
  6792. But there warn't no answer, and nobody come out of the wigwam.  Jim was
  6793. gone!  I set up a shout--and then another--and then another one; and run
  6794. this way and that in the woods, whooping and screeching; but it warn't
  6795. no use--old Jim was gone.  Then I set down and cried; I couldn't help
  6796. it. But I couldn't set still long.  Pretty soon I went out on the road,
  6797. trying to think what I better do, and I run across a boy walking, and
  6798. asked him if he'd seen a strange nigger dressed so and so, and he says:
  6799. “Yes.”
  6800. “Whereabouts?” says I.
  6801. “Down to Silas Phelps' place, two mile below here.  He's a runaway
  6802. nigger, and they've got him.  Was you looking for him?”
  6803. “You bet I ain't!  I run across him in the woods about an hour or two
  6804. ago, and he said if I hollered he'd cut my livers out--and told me to lay
  6805. down and stay where I was; and I done it.  Been there ever since; afeard
  6806. to come out.”
  6807. “Well,” he says, “you needn't be afeard no more, becuz they've got him.
  6808. He run off f'm down South, som'ers.”
  6809. “It's a good job they got him.”
  6810. “Well, I _reckon_!  There's two hunderd dollars reward on him.  It's
  6811. like picking up money out'n the road.”
  6812. “Yes, it is--and I could a had it if I'd been big enough; I see him
  6813. _first_. Who nailed him?”
  6814. “It was an old fellow--a stranger--and he sold out his chance in him for
  6815. forty dollars, becuz he's got to go up the river and can't wait.  Think
  6816. o' that, now!  You bet _I'd_ wait, if it was seven year.”
  6817. “That's me, every time,” says I. “But maybe his chance ain't worth
  6818. no more than that, if he'll sell it so cheap.  Maybe there's something
  6819. ain't straight about it.”
  6820. “But it _is_, though--straight as a string.  I see the handbill myself.
  6821.  It tells all about him, to a dot--paints him like a picture, and tells
  6822. the plantation he's frum, below Newr_leans_.  No-sirree-_bob_, they
  6823. ain't no trouble 'bout _that_ speculation, you bet you.  Say, gimme a
  6824. chaw tobacker, won't ye?”
  6825. I didn't have none, so he left.  I went to the raft, and set down in the
  6826. wigwam to think.  But I couldn't come to nothing.  I thought till I wore
  6827. my head sore, but I couldn't see no way out of the trouble.  After all
  6828. this long journey, and after all we'd done for them scoundrels, here it
  6829. was all come to nothing, everything all busted up and ruined, because
  6830. they could have the heart to serve Jim such a trick as that, and make
  6831. him a slave again all his life, and amongst strangers, too, for forty
  6832. dirty dollars.
  6833. Once I said to myself it would be a thousand times better for Jim to
  6834. be a slave at home where his family was, as long as he'd _got_ to be a
  6835. slave, and so I'd better write a letter to Tom Sawyer and tell him to
  6836. tell Miss Watson where he was.  But I soon give up that notion for two
  6837. things: she'd be mad and disgusted at his rascality and ungratefulness
  6838. for leaving her, and so she'd sell him straight down the river again;
  6839. and if she didn't, everybody naturally despises an ungrateful nigger,
  6840. and they'd make Jim feel it all the time, and so he'd feel ornery and
  6841. disgraced. And then think of _me_!  It would get all around that Huck
  6842. Finn helped a nigger to get his freedom; and if I was ever to see
  6843. anybody from that town again I'd be ready to get down and lick his boots
  6844. for shame.  That's just the way:  a person does a low-down thing, and
  6845. then he don't want to take no consequences of it. Thinks as long as he
  6846. can hide it, it ain't no disgrace.  That was my fix exactly. The more I
  6847. studied about this the more my conscience went to grinding me, and the
  6848. more wicked and low-down and ornery I got to feeling. And at last, when
  6849. it hit me all of a sudden that here was the plain hand of Providence
  6850. slapping me in the face and letting me know my wickedness was being
  6851. watched all the time from up there in heaven, whilst I was stealing a
  6852. poor old woman's nigger that hadn't ever done me no harm, and now was
  6853. showing me there's One that's always on the lookout, and ain't a-going
  6854. to allow no such miserable doings to go only just so fur and no further,
  6855. I most dropped in my tracks I was so scared.  Well, I tried the best I
  6856. could to kinder soften it up somehow for myself by saying I was brung
  6857. up wicked, and so I warn't so much to blame; but something inside of me
  6858. kept saying, “There was the Sunday-school, you could a gone to it; and
  6859. if you'd a done it they'd a learnt you there that people that acts as
  6860. I'd been acting about that nigger goes to everlasting fire.”
  6861. It made me shiver.  And I about made up my mind to pray, and see if I
  6862. couldn't try to quit being the kind of a boy I was and be better.  So
  6863. I kneeled down.  But the words wouldn't come.  Why wouldn't they?  It
  6864. warn't no use to try and hide it from Him.  Nor from _me_, neither.  I
  6865. knowed very well why they wouldn't come.  It was because my heart warn't
  6866. right; it was because I warn't square; it was because I was playing
  6867. double.  I was letting _on_ to give up sin, but away inside of me I was
  6868. holding on to the biggest one of all.  I was trying to make my mouth
  6869. _say_ I would do the right thing and the clean thing, and go and write
  6870. to that nigger's owner and tell where he was; but deep down in me I
  6871. knowed it was a lie, and He knowed it.  You can't pray a lie--I found
  6872. that out.
  6873. So I was full of trouble, full as I could be; and didn't know what to
  6874. do. At last I had an idea; and I says, I'll go and write the letter--and
  6875. then see if I can pray.  Why, it was astonishing, the way I felt as
  6876. light as a feather right straight off, and my troubles all gone.  So I
  6877. got a piece of paper and a pencil, all glad and excited, and set down
  6878. and wrote:
  6879. Miss Watson, your runaway nigger Jim is down here two mile below
  6880. Pikesville, and Mr. Phelps has got him and he will give him up for the
  6881. reward if you send.
  6882. _Huck Finn._
  6883. I felt good and all washed clean of sin for the first time I had ever
  6884. felt so in my life, and I knowed I could pray now.  But I didn't do it
  6885. straight off, but laid the paper down and set there thinking--thinking
  6886. how good it was all this happened so, and how near I come to being lost
  6887. and going to hell.  And went on thinking.  And got to thinking over our
  6888. trip down the river; and I see Jim before me all the time:  in the day
  6889. and in the night-time, sometimes moonlight, sometimes storms, and we
  6890. a-floating along, talking and singing and laughing.  But somehow I
  6891. couldn't seem to strike no places to harden me against him, but only the
  6892. other kind.  I'd see him standing my watch on top of his'n, 'stead of
  6893. calling me, so I could go on sleeping; and see him how glad he was when
  6894. I come back out of the fog; and when I come to him again in the swamp,
  6895. up there where the feud was; and such-like times; and would always call
  6896. me honey, and pet me and do everything he could think of for me, and how
  6897. good he always was; and at last I struck the time I saved him by telling
  6898. the men we had small-pox aboard, and he was so grateful, and said I was
  6899. the best friend old Jim ever had in the world, and the _only_ one he's
  6900. got now; and then I happened to look around and see that paper.
  6901. It was a close place.  I took it up, and held it in my hand.  I was
  6902. a-trembling, because I'd got to decide, forever, betwixt two things, and
  6903. I knowed it.  I studied a minute, sort of holding my breath, and then
  6904. says to myself:
  6905. “All right, then, I'll _go_ to hell”--and tore it up.
  6906. It was awful thoughts and awful words, but they was said.  And I let
  6907. them stay said; and never thought no more about reforming.  I shoved the
  6908. whole thing out of my head, and said I would take up wickedness again,
  6909. which was in my line, being brung up to it, and the other warn't.  And
  6910. for a starter I would go to work and steal Jim out of slavery again;
  6911. and if I could think up anything worse, I would do that, too; because as
  6912. long as I was in, and in for good, I might as well go the whole hog.
  6913. Then I set to thinking over how to get at it, and turned over some
  6914. considerable many ways in my mind; and at last fixed up a plan that
  6915. suited me.  So then I took the bearings of a woody island that was down
  6916. the river a piece, and as soon as it was fairly dark I crept out with my
  6917. raft and went for it, and hid it there, and then turned in.  I slept the
  6918. night through, and got up before it was light, and had my breakfast,
  6919. and put on my store clothes, and tied up some others and one thing or
  6920. another in a bundle, and took the canoe and cleared for shore.  I landed
  6921. below where I judged was Phelps's place, and hid my bundle in the woods,
  6922. and then filled up the canoe with water, and loaded rocks into her and
  6923. sunk her where I could find her again when I wanted her, about a quarter
  6924. of a mile below a little steam sawmill that was on the bank.
  6925. Then I struck up the road, and when I passed the mill I see a sign on
  6926. it, “Phelps's Sawmill,” and when I come to the farm-houses, two or
  6927. three hundred yards further along, I kept my eyes peeled, but didn't
  6928. see nobody around, though it was good daylight now.  But I didn't mind,
  6929. because I didn't want to see nobody just yet--I only wanted to get the
  6930. lay of the land. According to my plan, I was going to turn up there from
  6931. the village, not from below.  So I just took a look, and shoved along,
  6932. straight for town. Well, the very first man I see when I got there was
  6933. the duke.  He was sticking up a bill for the Royal Nonesuch--three-night
  6934. performance--like that other time.  They had the cheek, them frauds!  I
  6935. was right on him before I could shirk.  He looked astonished, and says:
  6936. “Hel-_lo_!  Where'd _you_ come from?”  Then he says, kind of glad and
  6937. eager, “Where's the raft?--got her in a good place?”
  6938. I says:
  6939. “Why, that's just what I was going to ask your grace.”
  6940. Then he didn't look so joyful, and says:
  6941. “What was your idea for asking _me_?” he says.
  6942. “Well,” I says, “when I see the king in that doggery yesterday I says
  6943. to myself, we can't get him home for hours, till he's soberer; so I went
  6944. a-loafing around town to put in the time and wait.  A man up and offered
  6945. me ten cents to help him pull a skiff over the river and back to fetch
  6946. a sheep, and so I went along; but when we was dragging him to the boat,
  6947. and the man left me a-holt of the rope and went behind him to shove him
  6948. along, he was too strong for me and jerked loose and run, and we after
  6949. him.  We didn't have no dog, and so we had to chase him all over the
  6950. country till we tired him out.  We never got him till dark; then we
  6951. fetched him over, and I started down for the raft.  When I got there and
  6952. see it was gone, I says to myself, 'They've got into trouble and had to
  6953. leave; and they've took my nigger, which is the only nigger I've got in
  6954. the world, and now I'm in a strange country, and ain't got no property
  6955. no more, nor nothing, and no way to make my living;' so I set down and
  6956. cried.  I slept in the woods all night.  But what _did_ become of the
  6957. raft, then?--and Jim--poor Jim!”
  6958. “Blamed if I know--that is, what's become of the raft.  That old fool had
  6959. made a trade and got forty dollars, and when we found him in the doggery
  6960. the loafers had matched half-dollars with him and got every cent but
  6961. what he'd spent for whisky; and when I got him home late last night and
  6962. found the raft gone, we said, 'That little rascal has stole our raft and
  6963. shook us, and run off down the river.'”
  6964. “I wouldn't shake my _nigger_, would I?--the only nigger I had in the
  6965. world, and the only property.”
  6966. “We never thought of that.  Fact is, I reckon we'd come to consider him
  6967. _our_ nigger; yes, we did consider him so--goodness knows we had trouble
  6968. enough for him.  So when we see the raft was gone and we flat broke,
  6969. there warn't anything for it but to try the Royal Nonesuch another
  6970. shake. And I've pegged along ever since, dry as a powder-horn.  Where's
  6971. that ten cents? Give it here.”
  6972. I had considerable money, so I give him ten cents, but begged him to
  6973. spend it for something to eat, and give me some, because it was all the
  6974. money I had, and I hadn't had nothing to eat since yesterday.  He never
  6975. said nothing.  The next minute he whirls on me and says:
  6976. “Do you reckon that nigger would blow on us?  We'd skin him if he done
  6977. that!”
  6978. “How can he blow?  Hain't he run off?”
  6979. “No!  That old fool sold him, and never divided with me, and the money's
  6980. gone.”
  6981. “_Sold_ him?”  I says, and begun to cry; “why, he was _my_ nigger, and
  6982. that was my money.  Where is he?--I want my nigger.”
  6983. “Well, you can't _get_ your nigger, that's all--so dry up your
  6984. blubbering. Looky here--do you think _you'd_ venture to blow on us?
  6985.  Blamed if I think I'd trust you.  Why, if you _was_ to blow on us--”
  6986. He stopped, but I never see the duke look so ugly out of his eyes
  6987. before. I went on a-whimpering, and says:
  6988. “I don't want to blow on nobody; and I ain't got no time to blow, nohow.
  6989. I got to turn out and find my nigger.”
  6990. He looked kinder bothered, and stood there with his bills fluttering on
  6991. his arm, thinking, and wrinkling up his forehead.  At last he says:
  6992. “I'll tell you something.  We got to be here three days.  If you'll
  6993. promise you won't blow, and won't let the nigger blow, I'll tell you
  6994. where to find him.”
  6995. So I promised, and he says:
  6996. “A farmer by the name of Silas Ph--” and then he stopped.  You see, he
  6997. started to tell me the truth; but when he stopped that way, and begun to
  6998. study and think again, I reckoned he was changing his mind.  And so he
  6999. was. He wouldn't trust me; he wanted to make sure of having me out of
  7000. the way the whole three days.  So pretty soon he says:
  7001. “The man that bought him is named Abram Foster--Abram G. Foster--and he
  7002. lives forty mile back here in the country, on the road to Lafayette.”
  7003. “All right,” I says, “I can walk it in three days.  And I'll start this
  7004. very afternoon.”
  7005. “No you wont, you'll start _now_; and don't you lose any time about it,
  7006. neither, nor do any gabbling by the way.  Just keep a tight tongue in
  7007. your head and move right along, and then you won't get into trouble with
  7008. _us_, d'ye hear?”
  7009. That was the order I wanted, and that was the one I played for.  I
  7010. wanted to be left free to work my plans.
  7011. “So clear out,” he says; “and you can tell Mr. Foster whatever you want
  7012. to. Maybe you can get him to believe that Jim _is_ your nigger--some
  7013. idiots don't require documents--leastways I've heard there's such down
  7014. South here.  And when you tell him the handbill and the reward's bogus,
  7015. maybe he'll believe you when you explain to him what the idea was for
  7016. getting 'em out.  Go 'long now, and tell him anything you want to; but
  7017. mind you don't work your jaw any _between_ here and there.”
  7018. So I left, and struck for the back country.  I didn't look around, but I
  7019. kinder felt like he was watching me.  But I knowed I could tire him out
  7020. at that.  I went straight out in the country as much as a mile before
  7021. I stopped; then I doubled back through the woods towards Phelps'.  I
  7022. reckoned I better start in on my plan straight off without fooling
  7023. around, because I wanted to stop Jim's mouth till these fellows could
  7024. get away.  I didn't want no trouble with their kind.  I'd seen all I
  7025. wanted to of them, and wanted to get entirely shut of them.
  7026. CHAPTER XXXII.
  7027. WHEN I got there it was all still and Sunday-like, and hot and sunshiny;
  7028. the hands was gone to the fields; and there was them kind of faint
  7029. dronings of bugs and flies in the air that makes it seem so lonesome and
  7030. like everybody's dead and gone; and if a breeze fans along and quivers
  7031. the leaves it makes you feel mournful, because you feel like it's
  7032. spirits whispering--spirits that's been dead ever so many years--and you
  7033. always think they're talking about _you_.  As a general thing it makes a
  7034. body wish _he_ was dead, too, and done with it all.
  7035. Phelps' was one of these little one-horse cotton plantations, and they
  7036. all look alike.  A rail fence round a two-acre yard; a stile made out
  7037. of logs sawed off and up-ended in steps, like barrels of a different
  7038. length, to climb over the fence with, and for the women to stand on when
  7039. they are going to jump on to a horse; some sickly grass-patches in the
  7040. big yard, but mostly it was bare and smooth, like an old hat with the
  7041. nap rubbed off; big double log-house for the white folks--hewed logs,
  7042. with the chinks stopped up with mud or mortar, and these mud-stripes
  7043. been whitewashed some time or another; round-log kitchen, with a big
  7044. broad, open but roofed passage joining it to the house; log smoke-house
  7045. back of the kitchen; three little log nigger-cabins in a row t'other
  7046. side the smoke-house; one little hut all by itself away down against
  7047. the back fence, and some outbuildings down a piece the other side;
  7048. ash-hopper and big kettle to bile soap in by the little hut; bench by
  7049. the kitchen door, with bucket of water and a gourd; hound asleep there
  7050. in the sun; more hounds asleep round about; about three shade trees away
  7051. off in a corner; some currant bushes and gooseberry bushes in one place
  7052. by the fence; outside of the fence a garden and a watermelon patch; then
  7053. the cotton fields begins, and after the fields the woods.
  7054. I went around and clumb over the back stile by the ash-hopper, and
  7055. started for the kitchen.  When I got a little ways I heard the dim hum
  7056. of a spinning-wheel wailing along up and sinking along down again;
  7057. and then I knowed for certain I wished I was dead--for that _is_ the
  7058. lonesomest sound in the whole world.
  7059. I went right along, not fixing up any particular plan, but just trusting
  7060. to Providence to put the right words in my mouth when the time come; for
  7061. I'd noticed that Providence always did put the right words in my mouth
  7062. if I left it alone.
  7063. When I got half-way, first one hound and then another got up and went
  7064. for me, and of course I stopped and faced them, and kept still.  And
  7065. such another powwow as they made!  In a quarter of a minute I was a kind
  7066. of a hub of a wheel, as you may say--spokes made out of dogs--circle of
  7067. fifteen of them packed together around me, with their necks and noses
  7068. stretched up towards me, a-barking and howling; and more a-coming; you
  7069. could see them sailing over fences and around corners from everywheres.
  7070. A nigger woman come tearing out of the kitchen with a rolling-pin in her
  7071. hand, singing out, “Begone _you_ Tige! you Spot! begone sah!” and she
  7072. fetched first one and then another of them a clip and sent them howling,
  7073. and then the rest followed; and the next second half of them come back,
  7074. wagging their tails around me, and making friends with me.  There ain't
  7075. no harm in a hound, nohow.
  7076. And behind the woman comes a little nigger girl and two little nigger
  7077. boys without anything on but tow-linen shirts, and they hung on to their
  7078. mother's gown, and peeped out from behind her at me, bashful, the way
  7079. they always do.  And here comes the white woman running from the house,
  7080. about forty-five or fifty year old, bareheaded, and her spinning-stick
  7081. in her hand; and behind her comes her little white children, acting the
  7082. same way the little niggers was doing.  She was smiling all over so she
  7083. could hardly stand--and says:
  7084. “It's _you_, at last!--_ain't_ it?”
  7085. I out with a “Yes'm” before I thought.
  7086. She grabbed me and hugged me tight; and then gripped me by both hands
  7087. and shook and shook; and the tears come in her eyes, and run down over;
  7088. and she couldn't seem to hug and shake enough, and kept saying, “You
  7089. don't look as much like your mother as I reckoned you would; but law
  7090. sakes, I don't care for that, I'm so glad to see you!  Dear, dear, it
  7091. does seem like I could eat you up!  Children, it's your cousin Tom!--tell
  7092. him howdy.”
  7093. But they ducked their heads, and put their fingers in their mouths, and
  7094. hid behind her.  So she run on:
  7095. “Lize, hurry up and get him a hot breakfast right away--or did you get
  7096. your breakfast on the boat?”
  7097. I said I had got it on the boat.  So then she started for the house,
  7098. leading me by the hand, and the children tagging after.  When we got
  7099. there she set me down in a split-bottomed chair, and set herself down on
  7100. a little low stool in front of me, holding both of my hands, and says:
  7101. “Now I can have a _good_ look at you; and, laws-a-me, I've been hungry
  7102. for it a many and a many a time, all these long years, and it's come
  7103. at last! We been expecting you a couple of days and more.  What kep'
  7104. you?--boat get aground?”
  7105. “Yes'm--she--”
  7106. “Don't say yes'm--say Aunt Sally.  Where'd she get aground?”
  7107. I didn't rightly know what to say, because I didn't know whether the
  7108. boat would be coming up the river or down.  But I go a good deal on
  7109. instinct; and my instinct said she would be coming up--from down towards
  7110. Orleans. That didn't help me much, though; for I didn't know the names
  7111. of bars down that way.  I see I'd got to invent a bar, or forget the
  7112. name of the one we got aground on--or--Now I struck an idea, and fetched
  7113. it out:
  7114. “It warn't the grounding--that didn't keep us back but a little.  We
  7115. blowed out a cylinder-head.”
  7116. “Good gracious! anybody hurt?”
  7117. “No'm.  Killed a nigger.”
  7118. “Well, it's lucky; because sometimes people do get hurt.  Two years ago
  7119. last Christmas your uncle Silas was coming up from Newrleans on the old
  7120. Lally Rook, and she blowed out a cylinder-head and crippled a man.  And
  7121. I think he died afterwards.  He was a Baptist.  Your uncle Silas knowed
  7122. a family in Baton Rouge that knowed his people very well.  Yes, I
  7123. remember now, he _did_ die.  Mortification set in, and they had to
  7124. amputate him. But it didn't save him.  Yes, it was mortification--that
  7125. was it.  He turned blue all over, and died in the hope of a glorious
  7126. resurrection. They say he was a sight to look at.  Your uncle's been up
  7127. to the town every day to fetch you. And he's gone again, not more'n an
  7128. hour ago; he'll be back any minute now. You must a met him on the road,
  7129. didn't you?--oldish man, with a--”
  7130. “No, I didn't see nobody, Aunt Sally.  The boat landed just at daylight,
  7131. and I left my baggage on the wharf-boat and went looking around the town
  7132. and out a piece in the country, to put in the time and not get here too
  7133. soon; and so I come down the back way.”
  7134. “Who'd you give the baggage to?”
  7135. “Nobody.”
  7136. “Why, child, it 'll be stole!”
  7137. “Not where I hid it I reckon it won't,” I says.
  7138. “How'd you get your breakfast so early on the boat?”
  7139. It was kinder thin ice, but I says:
  7140. “The captain see me standing around, and told me I better have something
  7141. to eat before I went ashore; so he took me in the texas to the officers'
  7142. lunch, and give me all I wanted.”
  7143. I was getting so uneasy I couldn't listen good.  I had my mind on the
  7144. children all the time; I wanted to get them out to one side and pump
  7145. them a little, and find out who I was.  But I couldn't get no show, Mrs.
  7146. Phelps kept it up and run on so.  Pretty soon she made the cold chills
  7147. streak all down my back, because she says:
  7148. “But here we're a-running on this way, and you hain't told me a word
  7149. about Sis, nor any of them.  Now I'll rest my works a little, and you
  7150. start up yourn; just tell me _everything_--tell me all about 'm all every
  7151. one of 'm; and how they are, and what they're doing, and what they told
  7152. you to tell me; and every last thing you can think of.”
  7153. Well, I see I was up a stump--and up it good.  Providence had stood by
  7154. me this fur all right, but I was hard and tight aground now.  I see it
  7155. warn't a bit of use to try to go ahead--I'd got to throw up my hand.  So
  7156. I says to myself, here's another place where I got to resk the truth.
  7157.  I opened my mouth to begin; but she grabbed me and hustled me in behind
  7158. the bed, and says:
  7159. “Here he comes!  Stick your head down lower--there, that'll do; you can't
  7160. be seen now.  Don't you let on you're here.  I'll play a joke on him.
  7161. Children, don't you say a word.”
  7162. I see I was in a fix now.  But it warn't no use to worry; there warn't
  7163. nothing to do but just hold still, and try and be ready to stand from
  7164. under when the lightning struck.
  7165. I had just one little glimpse of the old gentleman when he come in; then
  7166. the bed hid him.  Mrs. Phelps she jumps for him, and says:
  7167. “Has he come?”
  7168. “No,” says her husband.
  7169. “Good-_ness_ gracious!” she says, “what in the warld can have become of
  7170. him?”
  7171. “I can't imagine,” says the old gentleman; “and I must say it makes me
  7172. dreadful uneasy.”
  7173. “Uneasy!” she says; “I'm ready to go distracted!  He _must_ a come; and
  7174. you've missed him along the road.  I _know_ it's so--something tells me
  7175. so.”
  7176. “Why, Sally, I _couldn't_ miss him along the road--_you_ know that.”
  7177. “But oh, dear, dear, what _will_ Sis say!  He must a come!  You must a
  7178. missed him.  He--”
  7179. “Oh, don't distress me any more'n I'm already distressed.  I don't know
  7180. what in the world to make of it.  I'm at my wit's end, and I don't mind
  7181. acknowledging 't I'm right down scared.  But there's no hope that he's
  7182. come; for he _couldn't_ come and me miss him.  Sally, it's terrible--just
  7183. terrible--something's happened to the boat, sure!”
  7184. “Why, Silas!  Look yonder!--up the road!--ain't that somebody coming?”
  7185. He sprung to the window at the head of the bed, and that give Mrs.
  7186. Phelps the chance she wanted.  She stooped down quick at the foot of the
  7187. bed and give me a pull, and out I come; and when he turned back from the
  7188. window there she stood, a-beaming and a-smiling like a house afire, and
  7189. I standing pretty meek and sweaty alongside.  The old gentleman stared,
  7190. and says:
  7191. “Why, who's that?”
  7192. “Who do you reckon 't is?”
  7193. “I hain't no idea.  Who _is_ it?”
  7194. “It's _Tom Sawyer!_”
  7195. By jings, I most slumped through the floor!  But there warn't no time to
  7196. swap knives; the old man grabbed me by the hand and shook, and kept on
  7197. shaking; and all the time how the woman did dance around and laugh and
  7198. cry; and then how they both did fire off questions about Sid, and Mary,
  7199. and the rest of the tribe.
  7200. But if they was joyful, it warn't nothing to what I was; for it was like
  7201. being born again, I was so glad to find out who I was.  Well, they froze
  7202. to me for two hours; and at last, when my chin was so tired it couldn't
  7203. hardly go any more, I had told them more about my family--I mean the
  7204. Sawyer family--than ever happened to any six Sawyer families.  And I
  7205. explained all about how we blowed out a cylinder-head at the mouth of
  7206. White River, and it took us three days to fix it.  Which was all right,
  7207. and worked first-rate; because _they_ didn't know but what it would take
  7208. three days to fix it.  If I'd a called it a bolthead it would a done
  7209. just as well.
  7210. Now I was feeling pretty comfortable all down one side, and pretty
  7211. uncomfortable all up the other.  Being Tom Sawyer was easy and
  7212. comfortable, and it stayed easy and comfortable till by and by I hear a
  7213. steamboat coughing along down the river.  Then I says to myself, s'pose
  7214. Tom Sawyer comes down on that boat?  And s'pose he steps in here any
  7215. minute, and sings out my name before I can throw him a wink to keep
  7216. quiet?
  7217. Well, I couldn't _have_ it that way; it wouldn't do at all.  I must go
  7218. up the road and waylay him.  So I told the folks I reckoned I would go
  7219. up to the town and fetch down my baggage.  The old gentleman was for
  7220. going along with me, but I said no, I could drive the horse myself, and
  7221. I druther he wouldn't take no trouble about me.
  7222. CHAPTER XXXIII.
  7223. SO I started for town in the wagon, and when I was half-way I see a
  7224. wagon coming, and sure enough it was Tom Sawyer, and I stopped and
  7225. waited till he come along.  I says “Hold on!” and it stopped alongside,
  7226. and his mouth opened up like a trunk, and stayed so; and he swallowed
  7227. two or three times like a person that's got a dry throat, and then says:
  7228. “I hain't ever done you no harm.  You know that.  So, then, what you
  7229. want to come back and ha'nt _me_ for?”
  7230. I says:
  7231. “I hain't come back--I hain't been _gone_.”
  7232. When he heard my voice it righted him up some, but he warn't quite
  7233. satisfied yet.  He says:
  7234. “Don't you play nothing on me, because I wouldn't on you.  Honest injun
  7235. now, you ain't a ghost?”
  7236. “Honest injun, I ain't,” I says.
  7237. “Well--I--I--well, that ought to settle it, of course; but I can't somehow
  7238. seem to understand it no way.  Looky here, warn't you ever murdered _at
  7239. all?_”
  7240. “No.  I warn't ever murdered at all--I played it on them.  You come in
  7241. here and feel of me if you don't believe me.”
  7242. So he done it; and it satisfied him; and he was that glad to see me
  7243. again he didn't know what to do.  And he wanted to know all about it
  7244. right off, because it was a grand adventure, and mysterious, and so it
  7245. hit him where he lived.  But I said, leave it alone till by and by; and
  7246. told his driver to wait, and we drove off a little piece, and I told
  7247. him the kind of a fix I was in, and what did he reckon we better do?  He
  7248. said, let him alone a minute, and don't disturb him.  So he thought and
  7249. thought, and pretty soon he says:
  7250. “It's all right; I've got it.  Take my trunk in your wagon, and let on
  7251. it's your'n; and you turn back and fool along slow, so as to get to the
  7252. house about the time you ought to; and I'll go towards town a piece, and
  7253. take a fresh start, and get there a quarter or a half an hour after you;
  7254. and you needn't let on to know me at first.”
  7255. I says:
  7256. “All right; but wait a minute.  There's one more thing--a thing that
  7257. _nobody_ don't know but me.  And that is, there's a nigger here that
  7258. I'm a-trying to steal out of slavery, and his name is _Jim_--old Miss
  7259. Watson's Jim.”
  7260. He says:
  7261. “What!  Why, Jim is--”
  7262. He stopped and went to studying.  I says:
  7263. “I know what you'll say.  You'll say it's dirty, low-down business; but
  7264. what if it is?  I'm low down; and I'm a-going to steal him, and I want
  7265. you keep mum and not let on.  Will you?”
  7266. His eye lit up, and he says:
  7267. “I'll _help_ you steal him!”
  7268. Well, I let go all holts then, like I was shot.  It was the most
  7269. astonishing speech I ever heard--and I'm bound to say Tom Sawyer fell
  7270. considerable in my estimation.  Only I couldn't believe it.  Tom Sawyer
  7271. a _nigger-stealer!_
  7272. “Oh, shucks!”  I says; “you're joking.”
  7273. “I ain't joking, either.”
  7274. “Well, then,” I says, “joking or no joking, if you hear anything said
  7275. about a runaway nigger, don't forget to remember that _you_ don't know
  7276. nothing about him, and I don't know nothing about him.”
  7277. Then we took the trunk and put it in my wagon, and he drove off his
  7278. way and I drove mine.  But of course I forgot all about driving slow on
  7279. accounts of being glad and full of thinking; so I got home a heap too
  7280. quick for that length of a trip.  The old gentleman was at the door, and
  7281. he says:
  7282. “Why, this is wonderful!  Whoever would a thought it was in that mare
  7283. to do it?  I wish we'd a timed her.  And she hain't sweated a hair--not
  7284. a hair. It's wonderful.  Why, I wouldn't take a hundred dollars for that
  7285. horse now--I wouldn't, honest; and yet I'd a sold her for fifteen before,
  7286. and thought 'twas all she was worth.”
  7287. That's all he said.  He was the innocentest, best old soul I ever see.
  7288. But it warn't surprising; because he warn't only just a farmer, he was
  7289. a preacher, too, and had a little one-horse log church down back of the
  7290. plantation, which he built it himself at his own expense, for a church
  7291. and schoolhouse, and never charged nothing for his preaching, and it was
  7292. worth it, too.  There was plenty other farmer-preachers like that, and
  7293. done the same way, down South.
  7294. In about half an hour Tom's wagon drove up to the front stile, and Aunt
  7295. Sally she see it through the window, because it was only about fifty
  7296. yards, and says:
  7297. “Why, there's somebody come!  I wonder who 'tis?  Why, I do believe it's
  7298. a stranger.  Jimmy” (that's one of the children) “run and tell Lize to
  7299. put on another plate for dinner.”
  7300. Everybody made a rush for the front door, because, of course, a stranger
  7301. don't come _every_ year, and so he lays over the yaller-fever, for
  7302. interest, when he does come.  Tom was over the stile and starting for
  7303. the house; the wagon was spinning up the road for the village, and we
  7304. was all bunched in the front door.  Tom had his store clothes on, and an
  7305. audience--and that was always nuts for Tom Sawyer.  In them circumstances
  7306. it warn't no trouble to him to throw in an amount of style that was
  7307. suitable.  He warn't a boy to meeky along up that yard like a sheep; no,
  7308. he come ca'm and important, like the ram.  When he got a-front of us he
  7309. lifts his hat ever so gracious and dainty, like it was the lid of a box
  7310. that had butterflies asleep in it and he didn't want to disturb them,
  7311. and says:
  7312. “Mr. Archibald Nichols, I presume?”
  7313. “No, my boy,” says the old gentleman, “I'm sorry to say 't your driver
  7314. has deceived you; Nichols's place is down a matter of three mile more.
  7315. Come in, come in.”
  7316. Tom he took a look back over his shoulder, and says, “Too late--he's out
  7317. of sight.”
  7318. “Yes, he's gone, my son, and you must come in and eat your dinner with
  7319. us; and then we'll hitch up and take you down to Nichols's.”
  7320. “Oh, I _can't_ make you so much trouble; I couldn't think of it.  I'll
  7321. walk--I don't mind the distance.”
  7322. “But we won't _let_ you walk--it wouldn't be Southern hospitality to do
  7323. it. Come right in.”
  7324. “Oh, _do_,” says Aunt Sally; “it ain't a bit of trouble to us, not a
  7325. bit in the world.  You must stay.  It's a long, dusty three mile, and
  7326. we can't let you walk.  And, besides, I've already told 'em to put on
  7327. another plate when I see you coming; so you mustn't disappoint us.  Come
  7328. right in and make yourself at home.”
  7329. So Tom he thanked them very hearty and handsome, and let himself be
  7330. persuaded, and come in; and when he was in he said he was a stranger
  7331. from Hicksville, Ohio, and his name was William Thompson--and he made
  7332. another bow.
  7333. Well, he run on, and on, and on, making up stuff about Hicksville and
  7334. everybody in it he could invent, and I getting a little nervious, and
  7335. wondering how this was going to help me out of my scrape; and at last,
  7336. still talking along, he reached over and kissed Aunt Sally right on the
  7337. mouth, and then settled back again in his chair comfortable, and was
  7338. going on talking; but she jumped up and wiped it off with the back of
  7339. her hand, and says:
  7340. “You owdacious puppy!”
  7341. He looked kind of hurt, and says:
  7342. “I'm surprised at you, m'am.”
  7343. “You're s'rp--Why, what do you reckon I am?  I've a good notion to take
  7344. and--Say, what do you mean by kissing me?”
  7345. He looked kind of humble, and says:
  7346. “I didn't mean nothing, m'am.  I didn't mean no harm.  I--I--thought you'd
  7347. like it.”
  7348. “Why, you born fool!”  She took up the spinning stick, and it looked
  7349. like it was all she could do to keep from giving him a crack with it.
  7350. “What made you think I'd like it?”
  7351. “Well, I don't know.  Only, they--they--told me you would.”
  7352. “_They_ told you I would.  Whoever told you's _another_ lunatic.  I
  7353. never heard the beat of it.  Who's _they_?”
  7354. “Why, everybody.  They all said so, m'am.”
  7355. It was all she could do to hold in; and her eyes snapped, and her
  7356. fingers worked like she wanted to scratch him; and she says:
  7357. “Who's 'everybody'?  Out with their names, or ther'll be an idiot
  7358. short.”
  7359. He got up and looked distressed, and fumbled his hat, and says:
  7360. “I'm sorry, and I warn't expecting it.  They told me to.  They all told
  7361. me to.  They all said, kiss her; and said she'd like it.  They all said
  7362. it--every one of them.  But I'm sorry, m'am, and I won't do it no more--I
  7363. won't, honest.”
  7364. “You won't, won't you?  Well, I sh'd _reckon_ you won't!”
  7365. “No'm, I'm honest about it; I won't ever do it again--till you ask me.”
  7366. “Till I _ask_ you!  Well, I never see the beat of it in my born days!
  7367.  I lay you'll be the Methusalem-numskull of creation before ever I ask
  7368. you--or the likes of you.”
  7369. “Well,” he says, “it does surprise me so.  I can't make it out, somehow.
  7370. They said you would, and I thought you would.  But--” He stopped and
  7371. looked around slow, like he wished he could run across a friendly eye
  7372. somewheres, and fetched up on the old gentleman's, and says, “Didn't
  7373. _you_ think she'd like me to kiss her, sir?”
  7374. “Why, no; I--I--well, no, I b'lieve I didn't.”
  7375. Then he looks on around the same way to me, and says:
  7376. “Tom, didn't _you_ think Aunt Sally 'd open out her arms and say, 'Sid
  7377. Sawyer--'”
  7378. “My land!” she says, breaking in and jumping for him, “you impudent
  7379. young rascal, to fool a body so--” and was going to hug him, but he
  7380. fended her off, and says:
  7381. “No, not till you've asked me first.”
  7382. So she didn't lose no time, but asked him; and hugged him and kissed
  7383. him over and over again, and then turned him over to the old man, and he
  7384. took what was left.  And after they got a little quiet again she says:
  7385. “Why, dear me, I never see such a surprise.  We warn't looking for _you_
  7386. at all, but only Tom.  Sis never wrote to me about anybody coming but
  7387. him.”
  7388. “It's because it warn't _intended_ for any of us to come but Tom,” he
  7389. says; “but I begged and begged, and at the last minute she let me
  7390. come, too; so, coming down the river, me and Tom thought it would be a
  7391. first-rate surprise for him to come here to the house first, and for me
  7392. to by and by tag along and drop in, and let on to be a stranger.  But it
  7393. was a mistake, Aunt Sally.  This ain't no healthy place for a stranger
  7394. to come.”
  7395. “No--not impudent whelps, Sid.  You ought to had your jaws boxed; I
  7396. hain't been so put out since I don't know when.  But I don't care, I
  7397. don't mind the terms--I'd be willing to stand a thousand such jokes to
  7398. have you here. Well, to think of that performance!  I don't deny it, I
  7399. was most putrified with astonishment when you give me that smack.”
  7400. We had dinner out in that broad open passage betwixt the house and
  7401. the kitchen; and there was things enough on that table for seven
  7402. families--and all hot, too; none of your flabby, tough meat that's laid
  7403. in a cupboard in a damp cellar all night and tastes like a hunk of
  7404. old cold cannibal in the morning.  Uncle Silas he asked a pretty long
  7405. blessing over it, but it was worth it; and it didn't cool it a bit,
  7406. neither, the way I've seen them kind of interruptions do lots of times.
  7407.  There was a considerable good deal of talk all the afternoon, and me
  7408. and Tom was on the lookout all the time; but it warn't no use, they
  7409. didn't happen to say nothing about any runaway nigger, and we was afraid
  7410. to try to work up to it.  But at supper, at night, one of the little
  7411. boys says:
  7412. “Pa, mayn't Tom and Sid and me go to the show?”
  7413. “No,” says the old man, “I reckon there ain't going to be any; and you
  7414. couldn't go if there was; because the runaway nigger told Burton and
  7415. me all about that scandalous show, and Burton said he would tell the
  7416. people; so I reckon they've drove the owdacious loafers out of town
  7417. before this time.”
  7418. So there it was!--but I couldn't help it.  Tom and me was to sleep in the
  7419. same room and bed; so, being tired, we bid good-night and went up to
  7420. bed right after supper, and clumb out of the window and down the
  7421. lightning-rod, and shoved for the town; for I didn't believe anybody was
  7422. going to give the king and the duke a hint, and so if I didn't hurry up
  7423. and give them one they'd get into trouble sure.
  7424. On the road Tom he told me all about how it was reckoned I was murdered,
  7425. and how pap disappeared pretty soon, and didn't come back no more, and
  7426. what a stir there was when Jim run away; and I told Tom all about our
  7427. Royal Nonesuch rapscallions, and as much of the raft voyage as I had
  7428. time to; and as we struck into the town and up through the the middle of
  7429. it--it was as much as half-after eight, then--here comes a raging rush of
  7430. people with torches, and an awful whooping and yelling, and banging tin
  7431. pans and blowing horns; and we jumped to one side to let them go by;
  7432. and as they went by I see they had the king and the duke astraddle of a
  7433. rail--that is, I knowed it _was_ the king and the duke, though they was
  7434. all over tar and feathers, and didn't look like nothing in the
  7435. world that was human--just looked like a couple of monstrous big
  7436. soldier-plumes.  Well, it made me sick to see it; and I was sorry for
  7437. them poor pitiful rascals, it seemed like I couldn't ever feel any
  7438. hardness against them any more in the world.  It was a dreadful thing to
  7439. see.  Human beings _can_ be awful cruel to one another.
  7440. We see we was too late--couldn't do no good.  We asked some stragglers
  7441. about it, and they said everybody went to the show looking very
  7442. innocent; and laid low and kept dark till the poor old king was in the
  7443. middle of his cavortings on the stage; then somebody give a signal, and
  7444. the house rose up and went for them.
  7445. So we poked along back home, and I warn't feeling so brash as I was
  7446. before, but kind of ornery, and humble, and to blame, somehow--though
  7447. I hadn't done nothing.  But that's always the way; it don't make no
  7448. difference whether you do right or wrong, a person's conscience ain't
  7449. got no sense, and just goes for him anyway.  If I had a yaller dog that
  7450. didn't know no more than a person's conscience does I would pison him.
  7451. It takes up more room than all the rest of a person's insides, and yet
  7452. ain't no good, nohow.  Tom Sawyer he says the same.
  7453. CHAPTER XXXIV.
  7454. WE stopped talking, and got to thinking.  By and by Tom says:
  7455. “Looky here, Huck, what fools we are to not think of it before!  I bet I
  7456. know where Jim is.”
  7457. “No!  Where?”
  7458. “In that hut down by the ash-hopper.  Why, looky here.  When we was at
  7459. dinner, didn't you see a nigger man go in there with some vittles?”
  7460. “Yes.”
  7461. “What did you think the vittles was for?”
  7462. “For a dog.”
  7463. “So 'd I. Well, it wasn't for a dog.”
  7464. “Why?”
  7465. “Because part of it was watermelon.”
  7466. “So it was--I noticed it.  Well, it does beat all that I never thought
  7467. about a dog not eating watermelon.  It shows how a body can see and
  7468. don't see at the same time.”
  7469. “Well, the nigger unlocked the padlock when he went in, and he locked it
  7470. again when he came out.  He fetched uncle a key about the time we got up
  7471. from table--same key, I bet.  Watermelon shows man, lock shows prisoner;
  7472. and it ain't likely there's two prisoners on such a little plantation,
  7473. and where the people's all so kind and good.  Jim's the prisoner.  All
  7474. right--I'm glad we found it out detective fashion; I wouldn't give shucks
  7475. for any other way.  Now you work your mind, and study out a plan to
  7476. steal Jim, and I will study out one, too; and we'll take the one we like
  7477. the best.”
  7478. What a head for just a boy to have!  If I had Tom Sawyer's head I
  7479. wouldn't trade it off to be a duke, nor mate of a steamboat, nor clown
  7480. in a circus, nor nothing I can think of.  I went to thinking out a plan,
  7481. but only just to be doing something; I knowed very well where the right
  7482. plan was going to come from.  Pretty soon Tom says:
  7483. “Ready?”
  7484. “Yes,” I says.
  7485. “All right--bring it out.”
  7486. “My plan is this,” I says. “We can easy find out if it's Jim in there.
  7487. Then get up my canoe to-morrow night, and fetch my raft over from the
  7488. island.  Then the first dark night that comes steal the key out of the
  7489. old man's britches after he goes to bed, and shove off down the river
  7490. on the raft with Jim, hiding daytimes and running nights, the way me and
  7491. Jim used to do before.  Wouldn't that plan work?”
  7492. “_Work_?  Why, cert'nly it would work, like rats a-fighting.  But it's
  7493. too blame' simple; there ain't nothing _to_ it.  What's the good of a
  7494. plan that ain't no more trouble than that?  It's as mild as goose-milk.
  7495.  Why, Huck, it wouldn't make no more talk than breaking into a soap
  7496. factory.”
  7497. I never said nothing, because I warn't expecting nothing different; but
  7498. I knowed mighty well that whenever he got _his_ plan ready it wouldn't
  7499. have none of them objections to it.
  7500. And it didn't.  He told me what it was, and I see in a minute it was
  7501. worth fifteen of mine for style, and would make Jim just as free a man
  7502. as mine would, and maybe get us all killed besides.  So I was satisfied,
  7503. and said we would waltz in on it.  I needn't tell what it was here,
  7504. because I knowed it wouldn't stay the way, it was.  I knowed he would be
  7505. changing it around every which way as we went along, and heaving in new
  7506. bullinesses wherever he got a chance.  And that is what he done.
  7507. Well, one thing was dead sure, and that was that Tom Sawyer was in
  7508. earnest, and was actuly going to help steal that nigger out of slavery.
  7509. That was the thing that was too many for me.  Here was a boy that was
  7510. respectable and well brung up; and had a character to lose; and folks at
  7511. home that had characters; and he was bright and not leather-headed; and
  7512. knowing and not ignorant; and not mean, but kind; and yet here he was,
  7513. without any more pride, or rightness, or feeling, than to stoop to
  7514. this business, and make himself a shame, and his family a shame,
  7515. before everybody.  I _couldn't_ understand it no way at all.  It was
  7516. outrageous, and I knowed I ought to just up and tell him so; and so be
  7517. his true friend, and let him quit the thing right where he was and save
  7518. himself. And I _did_ start to tell him; but he shut me up, and says:
  7519. “Don't you reckon I know what I'm about?  Don't I generly know what I'm
  7520. about?”
  7521. “Yes.”
  7522. “Didn't I _say_ I was going to help steal the nigger?”
  7523. “Yes.”
  7524. “_Well_, then.”
  7525. That's all he said, and that's all I said.  It warn't no use to say any
  7526. more; because when he said he'd do a thing, he always done it.  But I
  7527. couldn't make out how he was willing to go into this thing; so I just
  7528. let it go, and never bothered no more about it.  If he was bound to have
  7529. it so, I couldn't help it.
  7530. When we got home the house was all dark and still; so we went on down to
  7531. the hut by the ash-hopper for to examine it.  We went through the yard
  7532. so as to see what the hounds would do.  They knowed us, and didn't make
  7533. no more noise than country dogs is always doing when anything comes by
  7534. in the night.  When we got to the cabin we took a look at the front and
  7535. the two sides; and on the side I warn't acquainted with--which was the
  7536. north side--we found a square window-hole, up tolerable high, with just
  7537. one stout board nailed across it.  I says:
  7538. “Here's the ticket.  This hole's big enough for Jim to get through if we
  7539. wrench off the board.”
  7540. Tom says:
  7541. “It's as simple as tit-tat-toe, three-in-a-row, and as easy as
  7542. playing hooky.  I should _hope_ we can find a way that's a little more
  7543. complicated than _that_, Huck Finn.”
  7544. “Well, then,” I says, “how 'll it do to saw him out, the way I done
  7545. before I was murdered that time?”
  7546. “That's more _like_,” he says. “It's real mysterious, and troublesome,
  7547. and good,” he says; “but I bet we can find a way that's twice as long.
  7548.  There ain't no hurry; le's keep on looking around.”
  7549. Betwixt the hut and the fence, on the back side, was a lean-to that
  7550. joined the hut at the eaves, and was made out of plank.  It was as long
  7551. as the hut, but narrow--only about six foot wide.  The door to it was at
  7552. the south end, and was padlocked.  Tom he went to the soap-kettle and
  7553. searched around, and fetched back the iron thing they lift the lid with;
  7554. so he took it and prized out one of the staples.  The chain fell down,
  7555. and we opened the door and went in, and shut it, and struck a match,
  7556. and see the shed was only built against a cabin and hadn't no connection
  7557. with it; and there warn't no floor to the shed, nor nothing in it but
  7558. some old rusty played-out hoes and spades and picks and a crippled plow.
  7559.  The match went out, and so did we, and shoved in the staple again, and
  7560. the door was locked as good as ever. Tom was joyful.  He says;
  7561. “Now we're all right.  We'll _dig_ him out.  It 'll take about a week!”
  7562. Then we started for the house, and I went in the back door--you only have
  7563. to pull a buckskin latch-string, they don't fasten the doors--but that
  7564. warn't romantical enough for Tom Sawyer; no way would do him but he must
  7565. climb up the lightning-rod.  But after he got up half way about three
  7566. times, and missed fire and fell every time, and the last time most
  7567. busted his brains out, he thought he'd got to give it up; but after he
  7568. was rested he allowed he would give her one more turn for luck, and this
  7569. time he made the trip.
  7570. In the morning we was up at break of day, and down to the nigger cabins
  7571. to pet the dogs and make friends with the nigger that fed Jim--if it
  7572. _was_ Jim that was being fed.  The niggers was just getting through
  7573. breakfast and starting for the fields; and Jim's nigger was piling up
  7574. a tin pan with bread and meat and things; and whilst the others was
  7575. leaving, the key come from the house.
  7576. This nigger had a good-natured, chuckle-headed face, and his wool was
  7577. all tied up in little bunches with thread.  That was to keep witches
  7578. off.  He said the witches was pestering him awful these nights, and
  7579. making him see all kinds of strange things, and hear all kinds of
  7580. strange words and noises, and he didn't believe he was ever witched so
  7581. long before in his life.  He got so worked up, and got to running on so
  7582. about his troubles, he forgot all about what he'd been a-going to do.
  7583.  So Tom says:
  7584. “What's the vittles for?  Going to feed the dogs?”
  7585. The nigger kind of smiled around gradually over his face, like when you
  7586. heave a brickbat in a mud-puddle, and he says:
  7587. “Yes, Mars Sid, A dog.  Cur'us dog, too.  Does you want to go en look at
  7588. 'im?”
  7589. “Yes.”
  7590. I hunched Tom, and whispers:
  7591. “You going, right here in the daybreak?  _that_ warn't the plan.”
  7592. “No, it warn't; but it's the plan _now_.”
  7593. So, drat him, we went along, but I didn't like it much.  When we got in
  7594. we couldn't hardly see anything, it was so dark; but Jim was there, sure
  7595. enough, and could see us; and he sings out:
  7596. “Why, _Huck_!  En good _lan_'! ain' dat Misto Tom?”
  7597. I just knowed how it would be; I just expected it.  I didn't know
  7598. nothing to do; and if I had I couldn't a done it, because that nigger
  7599. busted in and says:
  7600. “Why, de gracious sakes! do he know you genlmen?”
  7601. We could see pretty well now.  Tom he looked at the nigger, steady and
  7602. kind of wondering, and says:
  7603. “Does _who_ know us?”
  7604. “Why, dis-yer runaway nigger.”
  7605. “I don't reckon he does; but what put that into your head?”
  7606. “What _put_ it dar?  Didn' he jis' dis minute sing out like he knowed
  7607. you?”
  7608. Tom says, in a puzzled-up kind of way:
  7609. “Well, that's mighty curious.  _Who_ sung out? _when_ did he sing out?
  7610.  _what_ did he sing out?” And turns to me, perfectly ca'm, and says,
  7611. “Did _you_ hear anybody sing out?”
  7612. Of course there warn't nothing to be said but the one thing; so I says:
  7613. “No; I ain't heard nobody say nothing.”
  7614. Then he turns to Jim, and looks him over like he never see him before,
  7615. and says:
  7616. “Did you sing out?”
  7617. “No, sah,” says Jim; “I hain't said nothing, sah.”
  7618. “Not a word?”
  7619. “No, sah, I hain't said a word.”
  7620. “Did you ever see us before?”
  7621. “No, sah; not as I knows on.”
  7622. So Tom turns to the nigger, which was looking wild and distressed, and
  7623. says, kind of severe:
  7624. “What do you reckon's the matter with you, anyway?  What made you think
  7625. somebody sung out?”
  7626. “Oh, it's de dad-blame' witches, sah, en I wisht I was dead, I do.
  7627.  Dey's awluz at it, sah, en dey do mos' kill me, dey sk'yers me so.
  7628.  Please to don't tell nobody 'bout it sah, er ole Mars Silas he'll scole
  7629. me; 'kase he say dey _ain't_ no witches.  I jis' wish to goodness he was
  7630. heah now--_den_ what would he say!  I jis' bet he couldn' fine no way to
  7631. git aroun' it _dis_ time.  But it's awluz jis' so; people dat's _sot_,
  7632. stays sot; dey won't look into noth'n'en fine it out f'r deyselves, en
  7633. when _you_ fine it out en tell um 'bout it, dey doan' b'lieve you.”
  7634. Tom give him a dime, and said we wouldn't tell nobody; and told him to
  7635. buy some more thread to tie up his wool with; and then looks at Jim, and
  7636. says:
  7637. “I wonder if Uncle Silas is going to hang this nigger.  If I was to
  7638. catch a nigger that was ungrateful enough to run away, I wouldn't give
  7639. him up, I'd hang him.”  And whilst the nigger stepped to the door to
  7640. look at the dime and bite it to see if it was good, he whispers to Jim
  7641. and says:
  7642. “Don't ever let on to know us.  And if you hear any digging going on
  7643. nights, it's us; we're going to set you free.”
  7644. Jim only had time to grab us by the hand and squeeze it; then the nigger
  7645. come back, and we said we'd come again some time if the nigger wanted
  7646. us to; and he said he would, more particular if it was dark, because the
  7647. witches went for him mostly in the dark, and it was good to have folks
  7648. around then.
  7649. CHAPTER XXXV.
  7650. IT would be most an hour yet till breakfast, so we left and struck down
  7651. into the woods; because Tom said we got to have _some_ light to see how
  7652. to dig by, and a lantern makes too much, and might get us into trouble;
  7653. what we must have was a lot of them rotten chunks that's called
  7654. fox-fire, and just makes a soft kind of a glow when you lay them in a
  7655. dark place.  We fetched an armful and hid it in the weeds, and set down
  7656. to rest, and Tom says, kind of dissatisfied:
  7657. “Blame it, this whole thing is just as easy and awkward as it can be.
  7658. And so it makes it so rotten difficult to get up a difficult plan.
  7659.  There ain't no watchman to be drugged--now there _ought_ to be a
  7660. watchman.  There ain't even a dog to give a sleeping-mixture to.  And
  7661. there's Jim chained by one leg, with a ten-foot chain, to the leg of his
  7662. bed:  why, all you got to do is to lift up the bedstead and slip off
  7663. the chain.  And Uncle Silas he trusts everybody; sends the key to the
  7664. punkin-headed nigger, and don't send nobody to watch the nigger.  Jim
  7665. could a got out of that window-hole before this, only there wouldn't be
  7666. no use trying to travel with a ten-foot chain on his leg.  Why, drat it,
  7667. Huck, it's the stupidest arrangement I ever see. You got to invent _all_
  7668. the difficulties.  Well, we can't help it; we got to do the best we can
  7669. with the materials we've got. Anyhow, there's one thing--there's more
  7670. honor in getting him out through a lot of difficulties and dangers,
  7671. where there warn't one of them furnished to you by the people who it was
  7672. their duty to furnish them, and you had to contrive them all out of your
  7673. own head.  Now look at just that one thing of the lantern.  When you
  7674. come down to the cold facts, we simply got to _let on_ that a lantern's
  7675. resky.  Why, we could work with a torchlight procession if we wanted to,
  7676. I believe.  Now, whilst I think of it, we got to hunt up something to
  7677. make a saw out of the first chance we get.”
  7678. “What do we want of a saw?”
  7679. “What do we _want_ of it?  Hain't we got to saw the leg of Jim's bed
  7680. off, so as to get the chain loose?”
  7681. “Why, you just said a body could lift up the bedstead and slip the chain
  7682. off.”
  7683. “Well, if that ain't just like you, Huck Finn.  You _can_ get up the
  7684. infant-schooliest ways of going at a thing.  Why, hain't you ever read
  7685. any books at all?--Baron Trenck, nor Casanova, nor Benvenuto Chelleeny,
  7686. nor Henri IV., nor none of them heroes?  Who ever heard of getting a
  7687. prisoner loose in such an old-maidy way as that?  No; the way all the
  7688. best authorities does is to saw the bed-leg in two, and leave it just
  7689. so, and swallow the sawdust, so it can't be found, and put some dirt and
  7690. grease around the sawed place so the very keenest seneskal can't see
  7691. no sign of it's being sawed, and thinks the bed-leg is perfectly sound.
  7692. Then, the night you're ready, fetch the leg a kick, down she goes; slip
  7693. off your chain, and there you are.  Nothing to do but hitch your
  7694. rope ladder to the battlements, shin down it, break your leg in the
  7695. moat--because a rope ladder is nineteen foot too short, you know--and
  7696. there's your horses and your trusty vassles, and they scoop you up and
  7697. fling you across a saddle, and away you go to your native Langudoc, or
  7698. Navarre, or wherever it is. It's gaudy, Huck.  I wish there was a moat
  7699. to this cabin. If we get time, the night of the escape, we'll dig one.”
  7700. I says:
  7701. “What do we want of a moat when we're going to snake him out from under
  7702. the cabin?”
  7703. But he never heard me.  He had forgot me and everything else.  He had
  7704. his chin in his hand, thinking.  Pretty soon he sighs and shakes his
  7705. head; then sighs again, and says:
  7706. “No, it wouldn't do--there ain't necessity enough for it.”
  7707. “For what?”  I says.
  7708. “Why, to saw Jim's leg off,” he says.
  7709. “Good land!”  I says; “why, there ain't _no_ necessity for it.  And what
  7710. would you want to saw his leg off for, anyway?”
  7711. “Well, some of the best authorities has done it.  They couldn't get the
  7712. chain off, so they just cut their hand off and shoved.  And a leg would
  7713. be better still.  But we got to let that go.  There ain't necessity
  7714. enough in this case; and, besides, Jim's a nigger, and wouldn't
  7715. understand the reasons for it, and how it's the custom in Europe; so
  7716. we'll let it go.  But there's one thing--he can have a rope ladder; we
  7717. can tear up our sheets and make him a rope ladder easy enough.  And we
  7718. can send it to him in a pie; it's mostly done that way.  And I've et
  7719. worse pies.”
  7720. “Why, Tom Sawyer, how you talk,” I says; “Jim ain't got no use for a
  7721. rope ladder.”
  7722. “He _has_ got use for it.  How _you_ talk, you better say; you don't
  7723. know nothing about it.  He's _got_ to have a rope ladder; they all do.”
  7724. “What in the nation can he _do_ with it?”
  7725. “_Do_ with it?  He can hide it in his bed, can't he?”  That's what they
  7726. all do; and _he's_ got to, too.  Huck, you don't ever seem to want to do
  7727. anything that's regular; you want to be starting something fresh all the
  7728. time. S'pose he _don't_ do nothing with it? ain't it there in his bed,
  7729. for a clew, after he's gone? and don't you reckon they'll want clews?
  7730.  Of course they will.  And you wouldn't leave them any?  That would be a
  7731. _pretty_ howdy-do, _wouldn't_ it!  I never heard of such a thing.”
  7732. “Well,” I says, “if it's in the regulations, and he's got to have
  7733. it, all right, let him have it; because I don't wish to go back on no
  7734. regulations; but there's one thing, Tom Sawyer--if we go to tearing up
  7735. our sheets to make Jim a rope ladder, we're going to get into trouble
  7736. with Aunt Sally, just as sure as you're born.  Now, the way I look at
  7737. it, a hickry-bark ladder don't cost nothing, and don't waste nothing,
  7738. and is just as good to load up a pie with, and hide in a straw tick,
  7739. as any rag ladder you can start; and as for Jim, he ain't had no
  7740. experience, and so he don't care what kind of a--”
  7741. “Oh, shucks, Huck Finn, if I was as ignorant as you I'd keep
  7742. still--that's what I'D do.  Who ever heard of a state prisoner escaping
  7743. by a hickry-bark ladder?  Why, it's perfectly ridiculous.”
  7744. “Well, all right, Tom, fix it your own way; but if you'll take my
  7745. advice, you'll let me borrow a sheet off of the clothesline.”
  7746. He said that would do.  And that gave him another idea, and he says:
  7747. “Borrow a shirt, too.”
  7748. “What do we want of a shirt, Tom?”
  7749. “Want it for Jim to keep a journal on.”
  7750. “Journal your granny--_Jim_ can't write.”
  7751. “S'pose he _can't_ write--he can make marks on the shirt, can't he, if
  7752. we make him a pen out of an old pewter spoon or a piece of an old iron
  7753. barrel-hoop?”
  7754. “Why, Tom, we can pull a feather out of a goose and make him a better
  7755. one; and quicker, too.”
  7756. “_Prisoners_ don't have geese running around the donjon-keep to pull
  7757. pens out of, you muggins.  They _always_ make their pens out of the
  7758. hardest, toughest, troublesomest piece of old brass candlestick or
  7759. something like that they can get their hands on; and it takes them weeks
  7760. and weeks and months and months to file it out, too, because they've got
  7761. to do it by rubbing it on the wall.  _They_ wouldn't use a goose-quill
  7762. if they had it. It ain't regular.”
  7763. “Well, then, what'll we make him the ink out of?”
  7764. “Many makes it out of iron-rust and tears; but that's the common sort
  7765. and women; the best authorities uses their own blood.  Jim can do that;
  7766. and when he wants to send any little common ordinary mysterious message
  7767. to let the world know where he's captivated, he can write it on the
  7768. bottom of a tin plate with a fork and throw it out of the window.  The
  7769. Iron Mask always done that, and it's a blame' good way, too.”
  7770. “Jim ain't got no tin plates.  They feed him in a pan.”
  7771. “That ain't nothing; we can get him some.”
  7772. “Can't nobody _read_ his plates.”
  7773. “That ain't got anything to _do_ with it, Huck Finn.  All _he's_ got to
  7774. do is to write on the plate and throw it out.  You don't _have_ to be
  7775. able to read it. Why, half the time you can't read anything a prisoner
  7776. writes on a tin plate, or anywhere else.”
  7777. “Well, then, what's the sense in wasting the plates?”
  7778. “Why, blame it all, it ain't the _prisoner's_ plates.”
  7779. “But it's _somebody's_ plates, ain't it?”
  7780. “Well, spos'n it is?  What does the _prisoner_ care whose--”
  7781. He broke off there, because we heard the breakfast-horn blowing.  So we
  7782. cleared out for the house.
  7783. Along during the morning I borrowed a sheet and a white shirt off of the
  7784. clothes-line; and I found an old sack and put them in it, and we went
  7785. down and got the fox-fire, and put that in too.  I called it borrowing,
  7786. because that was what pap always called it; but Tom said it warn't
  7787. borrowing, it was stealing.  He said we was representing prisoners; and
  7788. prisoners don't care how they get a thing so they get it, and nobody
  7789. don't blame them for it, either.  It ain't no crime in a prisoner to
  7790. steal the thing he needs to get away with, Tom said; it's his right; and
  7791. so, as long as we was representing a prisoner, we had a perfect right to
  7792. steal anything on this place we had the least use for to get ourselves
  7793. out of prison with.  He said if we warn't prisoners it would be a very
  7794. different thing, and nobody but a mean, ornery person would steal when
  7795. he warn't a prisoner.  So we allowed we would steal everything there was
  7796. that come handy.  And yet he made a mighty fuss, one day, after that,
  7797. when I stole a watermelon out of the nigger-patch and eat it; and he
  7798. made me go and give the niggers a dime without telling them what it
  7799. was for. Tom said that what he meant was, we could steal anything we
  7800. _needed_. Well, I says, I needed the watermelon.  But he said I didn't
  7801. need it to get out of prison with; there's where the difference was.
  7802.  He said if I'd a wanted it to hide a knife in, and smuggle it to Jim
  7803. to kill the seneskal with, it would a been all right.  So I let it go at
  7804. that, though I couldn't see no advantage in my representing a prisoner
  7805. if I got to set down and chaw over a lot of gold-leaf distinctions like
  7806. that every time I see a chance to hog a watermelon.
  7807. Well, as I was saying, we waited that morning till everybody was settled
  7808. down to business, and nobody in sight around the yard; then Tom he
  7809. carried the sack into the lean-to whilst I stood off a piece to keep
  7810. watch.  By and by he come out, and we went and set down on the woodpile
  7811. to talk.  He says:
  7812. “Everything's all right now except tools; and that's easy fixed.”
  7813. “Tools?”  I says.
  7814. “Yes.”
  7815. “Tools for what?”
  7816. “Why, to dig with.  We ain't a-going to _gnaw_ him out, are we?”
  7817. “Ain't them old crippled picks and things in there good enough to dig a
  7818. nigger out with?”  I says.
  7819. He turns on me, looking pitying enough to make a body cry, and says:
  7820. “Huck Finn, did you _ever_ hear of a prisoner having picks and shovels,
  7821. and all the modern conveniences in his wardrobe to dig himself out with?
  7822.  Now I want to ask you--if you got any reasonableness in you at all--what
  7823. kind of a show would _that_ give him to be a hero?  Why, they might as
  7824. well lend him the key and done with it.  Picks and shovels--why, they
  7825. wouldn't furnish 'em to a king.”
  7826. “Well, then,” I says, “if we don't want the picks and shovels, what do
  7827. we want?”
  7828. “A couple of case-knives.”
  7829. “To dig the foundations out from under that cabin with?”
  7830. “Yes.”
  7831. “Confound it, it's foolish, Tom.”
  7832. “It don't make no difference how foolish it is, it's the _right_ way--and
  7833. it's the regular way.  And there ain't no _other_ way, that ever I heard
  7834. of, and I've read all the books that gives any information about these
  7835. things. They always dig out with a case-knife--and not through dirt, mind
  7836. you; generly it's through solid rock.  And it takes them weeks and weeks
  7837. and weeks, and for ever and ever.  Why, look at one of them prisoners in
  7838. the bottom dungeon of the Castle Deef, in the harbor of Marseilles, that
  7839. dug himself out that way; how long was _he_ at it, you reckon?”
  7840. “I don't know.”
  7841. “Well, guess.”
  7842. “I don't know.  A month and a half.”
  7843. “_Thirty-seven year_--and he come out in China.  _That's_ the kind.  I
  7844. wish the bottom of _this_ fortress was solid rock.”
  7845. “_Jim_ don't know nobody in China.”
  7846. “What's _that_ got to do with it?  Neither did that other fellow.  But
  7847. you're always a-wandering off on a side issue.  Why can't you stick to
  7848. the main point?”
  7849. “All right--I don't care where he comes out, so he _comes_ out; and Jim
  7850. don't, either, I reckon.  But there's one thing, anyway--Jim's too old to
  7851. be dug out with a case-knife.  He won't last.”
  7852. “Yes he will _last_, too.  You don't reckon it's going to take
  7853. thirty-seven years to dig out through a _dirt_ foundation, do you?”
  7854. “How long will it take, Tom?”
  7855. “Well, we can't resk being as long as we ought to, because it mayn't
  7856. take very long for Uncle Silas to hear from down there by New Orleans.
  7857.  He'll hear Jim ain't from there.  Then his next move will be to
  7858. advertise Jim, or something like that.  So we can't resk being as long
  7859. digging him out as we ought to.  By rights I reckon we ought to be
  7860. a couple of years; but we can't.  Things being so uncertain, what I
  7861. recommend is this:  that we really dig right in, as quick as we can;
  7862. and after that, we can _let on_, to ourselves, that we was at it
  7863. thirty-seven years.  Then we can snatch him out and rush him away the
  7864. first time there's an alarm.  Yes, I reckon that 'll be the best way.”
  7865. “Now, there's _sense_ in that,” I says. “Letting on don't cost nothing;
  7866. letting on ain't no trouble; and if it's any object, I don't mind
  7867. letting on we was at it a hundred and fifty year.  It wouldn't strain
  7868. me none, after I got my hand in.  So I'll mosey along now, and smouch a
  7869. couple of case-knives.”
  7870. “Smouch three,” he says; “we want one to make a saw out of.”
  7871. “Tom, if it ain't unregular and irreligious to sejest it,” I says,
  7872. “there's an old rusty saw-blade around yonder sticking under the
  7873. weather-boarding behind the smoke-house.”
  7874. He looked kind of weary and discouraged-like, and says:
  7875. “It ain't no use to try to learn you nothing, Huck.  Run along and
  7876. smouch the knives--three of them.”  So I done it.
  7877. CHAPTER XXXVI.
  7878. AS soon as we reckoned everybody was asleep that night we went down the
  7879. lightning-rod, and shut ourselves up in the lean-to, and got out our
  7880. pile of fox-fire, and went to work.  We cleared everything out of the
  7881. way, about four or five foot along the middle of the bottom log.  Tom
  7882. said he was right behind Jim's bed now, and we'd dig in under it, and
  7883. when we got through there couldn't nobody in the cabin ever know there
  7884. was any hole there, because Jim's counter-pin hung down most to the
  7885. ground, and you'd have to raise it up and look under to see the hole.
  7886.  So we dug and dug with the case-knives till most midnight; and then
  7887. we was dog-tired, and our hands was blistered, and yet you couldn't see
  7888. we'd done anything hardly.  At last I says:
  7889. “This ain't no thirty-seven year job; this is a thirty-eight year job,
  7890. Tom Sawyer.”
  7891. He never said nothing.  But he sighed, and pretty soon he stopped
  7892. digging, and then for a good little while I knowed that he was thinking.
  7893. Then he says:
  7894. “It ain't no use, Huck, it ain't a-going to work.  If we was prisoners
  7895. it would, because then we'd have as many years as we wanted, and no
  7896. hurry; and we wouldn't get but a few minutes to dig, every day, while
  7897. they was changing watches, and so our hands wouldn't get blistered, and
  7898. we could keep it up right along, year in and year out, and do it right,
  7899. and the way it ought to be done.  But _we_ can't fool along; we got to
  7900. rush; we ain't got no time to spare.  If we was to put in another
  7901. night this way we'd have to knock off for a week to let our hands get
  7902. well--couldn't touch a case-knife with them sooner.”
  7903. “Well, then, what we going to do, Tom?”
  7904. “I'll tell you.  It ain't right, and it ain't moral, and I wouldn't like
  7905. it to get out; but there ain't only just the one way:  we got to dig him
  7906. out with the picks, and _let on_ it's case-knives.”
  7907. “_Now_ you're _talking_!”  I says; “your head gets leveler and leveler
  7908. all the time, Tom Sawyer,” I says. “Picks is the thing, moral or no
  7909. moral; and as for me, I don't care shucks for the morality of it, nohow.
  7910.  When I start in to steal a nigger, or a watermelon, or a Sunday-school
  7911. book, I ain't no ways particular how it's done so it's done.  What I
  7912. want is my nigger; or what I want is my watermelon; or what I want is my
  7913. Sunday-school book; and if a pick's the handiest thing, that's the thing
  7914. I'm a-going to dig that nigger or that watermelon or that Sunday-school
  7915. book out with; and I don't give a dead rat what the authorities thinks
  7916. about it nuther.”
  7917. “Well,” he says, “there's excuse for picks and letting-on in a case like
  7918. this; if it warn't so, I wouldn't approve of it, nor I wouldn't stand by
  7919. and see the rules broke--because right is right, and wrong is wrong,
  7920. and a body ain't got no business doing wrong when he ain't ignorant and
  7921. knows better.  It might answer for _you_ to dig Jim out with a pick,
  7922. _without_ any letting on, because you don't know no better; but it
  7923. wouldn't for me, because I do know better.  Gimme a case-knife.”
  7924. He had his own by him, but I handed him mine.  He flung it down, and
  7925. says:
  7926. “Gimme a _case-knife_.”
  7927. I didn't know just what to do--but then I thought.  I scratched around
  7928. amongst the old tools, and got a pickaxe and give it to him, and he took
  7929. it and went to work, and never said a word.
  7930. He was always just that particular.  Full of principle.
  7931. So then I got a shovel, and then we picked and shoveled, turn about,
  7932. and made the fur fly.  We stuck to it about a half an hour, which was as
  7933. long as we could stand up; but we had a good deal of a hole to show for
  7934. it. When I got up stairs I looked out at the window and see Tom doing
  7935. his level best with the lightning-rod, but he couldn't come it, his
  7936. hands was so sore.  At last he says:
  7937. “It ain't no use, it can't be done.  What you reckon I better do?  Can't
  7938. you think of no way?”
  7939. “Yes,” I says, “but I reckon it ain't regular.  Come up the stairs, and
  7940. let on it's a lightning-rod.”
  7941. So he done it.
  7942. Next day Tom stole a pewter spoon and a brass candlestick in the house,
  7943. for to make some pens for Jim out of, and six tallow candles; and I
  7944. hung around the nigger cabins and laid for a chance, and stole three tin
  7945. plates.  Tom says it wasn't enough; but I said nobody wouldn't ever see
  7946. the plates that Jim throwed out, because they'd fall in the dog-fennel
  7947. and jimpson weeds under the window-hole--then we could tote them back and
  7948. he could use them over again.  So Tom was satisfied.  Then he says:
  7949. “Now, the thing to study out is, how to get the things to Jim.”
  7950. “Take them in through the hole,” I says, “when we get it done.”
  7951. He only just looked scornful, and said something about nobody ever heard
  7952. of such an idiotic idea, and then he went to studying.  By and by he
  7953. said he had ciphered out two or three ways, but there warn't no need to
  7954. decide on any of them yet.  Said we'd got to post Jim first.
  7955. That night we went down the lightning-rod a little after ten, and took
  7956. one of the candles along, and listened under the window-hole, and heard
  7957. Jim snoring; so we pitched it in, and it didn't wake him.  Then we
  7958. whirled in with the pick and shovel, and in about two hours and a half
  7959. the job was done.  We crept in under Jim's bed and into the cabin, and
  7960. pawed around and found the candle and lit it, and stood over Jim awhile,
  7961. and found him looking hearty and healthy, and then we woke him up gentle
  7962. and gradual.  He was so glad to see us he most cried; and called us
  7963. honey, and all the pet names he could think of; and was for having us
  7964. hunt up a cold-chisel to cut the chain off of his leg with right away,
  7965. and clearing out without losing any time.  But Tom he showed him how
  7966. unregular it would be, and set down and told him all about our plans,
  7967. and how we could alter them in a minute any time there was an alarm; and
  7968. not to be the least afraid, because we would see he got away, _sure_.
  7969.  So Jim he said it was all right, and we set there and talked over old
  7970. times awhile, and then Tom asked a lot of questions, and when Jim told
  7971. him Uncle Silas come in every day or two to pray with him, and Aunt
  7972. Sally come in to see if he was comfortable and had plenty to eat, and
  7973. both of them was kind as they could be, Tom says:
  7974. “_Now_ I know how to fix it.  We'll send you some things by them.”
  7975. I said, “Don't do nothing of the kind; it's one of the most jackass
  7976. ideas I ever struck;” but he never paid no attention to me; went right
  7977. on.  It was his way when he'd got his plans set.
  7978. So he told Jim how we'd have to smuggle in the rope-ladder pie and other
  7979. large things by Nat, the nigger that fed him, and he must be on the
  7980. lookout, and not be surprised, and not let Nat see him open them; and
  7981. we would put small things in uncle's coat-pockets and he must steal them
  7982. out; and we would tie things to aunt's apron-strings or put them in her
  7983. apron-pocket, if we got a chance; and told him what they would be and
  7984. what they was for.  And told him how to keep a journal on the shirt with
  7985. his blood, and all that. He told him everything.  Jim he couldn't see
  7986. no sense in the most of it, but he allowed we was white folks and knowed
  7987. better than him; so he was satisfied, and said he would do it all just
  7988. as Tom said.
  7989. Jim had plenty corn-cob pipes and tobacco; so we had a right down good
  7990. sociable time; then we crawled out through the hole, and so home to
  7991. bed, with hands that looked like they'd been chawed.  Tom was in high
  7992. spirits. He said it was the best fun he ever had in his life, and the
  7993. most intellectural; and said if he only could see his way to it we would
  7994. keep it up all the rest of our lives and leave Jim to our children to
  7995. get out; for he believed Jim would come to like it better and better the
  7996. more he got used to it.  He said that in that way it could be strung out
  7997. to as much as eighty year, and would be the best time on record.  And he
  7998. said it would make us all celebrated that had a hand in it.
  7999. In the morning we went out to the woodpile and chopped up the brass
  8000. candlestick into handy sizes, and Tom put them and the pewter spoon in
  8001. his pocket.  Then we went to the nigger cabins, and while I got Nat's
  8002. notice off, Tom shoved a piece of candlestick into the middle of a
  8003. corn-pone that was in Jim's pan, and we went along with Nat to see how
  8004. it would work, and it just worked noble; when Jim bit into it it most
  8005. mashed all his teeth out; and there warn't ever anything could a worked
  8006. better. Tom said so himself. Jim he never let on but what it was only
  8007. just a piece of rock or something like that that's always getting into
  8008. bread, you know; but after that he never bit into nothing but what he
  8009. jabbed his fork into it in three or four places first.
  8010. And whilst we was a-standing there in the dimmish light, here comes a
  8011. couple of the hounds bulging in from under Jim's bed; and they kept on
  8012. piling in till there was eleven of them, and there warn't hardly room
  8013. in there to get your breath.  By jings, we forgot to fasten that lean-to
  8014. door!  The nigger Nat he only just hollered “Witches” once, and keeled
  8015. over on to the floor amongst the dogs, and begun to groan like he was
  8016. dying.  Tom jerked the door open and flung out a slab of Jim's meat,
  8017. and the dogs went for it, and in two seconds he was out himself and back
  8018. again and shut the door, and I knowed he'd fixed the other door too.
  8019. Then he went to work on the nigger, coaxing him and petting him, and
  8020. asking him if he'd been imagining he saw something again.  He raised up,
  8021. and blinked his eyes around, and says:
  8022. “Mars Sid, you'll say I's a fool, but if I didn't b'lieve I see most a
  8023. million dogs, er devils, er some'n, I wisht I may die right heah in dese
  8024. tracks.  I did, mos' sholy.  Mars Sid, I _felt_ um--I _felt_ um, sah; dey
  8025. was all over me.  Dad fetch it, I jis' wisht I could git my han's on one
  8026. er dem witches jis' wunst--on'y jis' wunst--it's all I'd ast.  But mos'ly
  8027. I wisht dey'd lemme 'lone, I does.”
  8028. Tom says:
  8029. “Well, I tell you what I think.  What makes them come here just at this
  8030. runaway nigger's breakfast-time?  It's because they're hungry; that's
  8031. the reason.  You make them a witch pie; that's the thing for _you_ to
  8032. do.”
  8033. “But my lan', Mars Sid, how's I gwyne to make 'm a witch pie?  I doan'
  8034. know how to make it.  I hain't ever hearn er sich a thing b'fo'.”
  8035. “Well, then, I'll have to make it myself.”
  8036. “Will you do it, honey?--will you?  I'll wusshup de groun' und' yo' foot,
  8037. I will!”
  8038. “All right, I'll do it, seeing it's you, and you've been good to us and
  8039. showed us the runaway nigger.  But you got to be mighty careful.  When
  8040. we come around, you turn your back; and then whatever we've put in the
  8041. pan, don't you let on you see it at all.  And don't you look when Jim
  8042. unloads the pan--something might happen, I don't know what.  And above
  8043. all, don't you _handle_ the witch-things.”
  8044. “_Hannel 'M_, Mars Sid?  What _is_ you a-talkin' 'bout?  I wouldn'
  8045. lay de weight er my finger on um, not f'r ten hund'd thous'n billion
  8046. dollars, I wouldn't.”
  8047. CHAPTER XXXVII.
  8048. THAT was all fixed.  So then we went away and went to the rubbage-pile
  8049. in the back yard, where they keep the old boots, and rags, and pieces
  8050. of bottles, and wore-out tin things, and all such truck, and scratched
  8051. around and found an old tin washpan, and stopped up the holes as well as
  8052. we could, to bake the pie in, and took it down cellar and stole it full
  8053. of flour and started for breakfast, and found a couple of shingle-nails
  8054. that Tom said would be handy for a prisoner to scrabble his name and
  8055. sorrows on the dungeon walls with, and dropped one of them in Aunt
  8056. Sally's apron-pocket which was hanging on a chair, and t'other we stuck
  8057. in the band of Uncle Silas's hat, which was on the bureau, because we
  8058. heard the children say their pa and ma was going to the runaway nigger's
  8059. house this morning, and then went to breakfast, and Tom dropped the
  8060. pewter spoon in Uncle Silas's coat-pocket, and Aunt Sally wasn't come
  8061. yet, so we had to wait a little while.
  8062. And when she come she was hot and red and cross, and couldn't hardly
  8063. wait for the blessing; and then she went to sluicing out coffee with one
  8064. hand and cracking the handiest child's head with her thimble with the
  8065. other, and says:
  8066. “I've hunted high and I've hunted low, and it does beat all what _has_
  8067. become of your other shirt.”
  8068. My heart fell down amongst my lungs and livers and things, and a hard
  8069. piece of corn-crust started down my throat after it and got met on the
  8070. road with a cough, and was shot across the table, and took one of the
  8071. children in the eye and curled him up like a fishing-worm, and let a cry
  8072. out of him the size of a warwhoop, and Tom he turned kinder blue around
  8073. the gills, and it all amounted to a considerable state of things for
  8074. about a quarter of a minute or as much as that, and I would a sold out
  8075. for half price if there was a bidder.  But after that we was all right
  8076. again--it was the sudden surprise of it that knocked us so kind of cold.
  8077. Uncle Silas he says:
  8078. “It's most uncommon curious, I can't understand it.  I know perfectly
  8079. well I took it _off_, because--”
  8080. “Because you hain't got but one _on_.  Just _listen_ at the man!  I know
  8081. you took it off, and know it by a better way than your wool-gethering
  8082. memory, too, because it was on the clo's-line yesterday--I see it there
  8083. myself. But it's gone, that's the long and the short of it, and you'll
  8084. just have to change to a red flann'l one till I can get time to make a
  8085. new one. And it 'll be the third I've made in two years.  It just keeps
  8086. a body on the jump to keep you in shirts; and whatever you do manage to
  8087. _do_ with 'm all is more'n I can make out.  A body 'd think you _would_
  8088. learn to take some sort of care of 'em at your time of life.”
  8089. “I know it, Sally, and I do try all I can.  But it oughtn't to be
  8090. altogether my fault, because, you know, I don't see them nor have
  8091. nothing to do with them except when they're on me; and I don't believe
  8092. I've ever lost one of them _off_ of me.”
  8093. “Well, it ain't _your_ fault if you haven't, Silas; you'd a done it
  8094. if you could, I reckon.  And the shirt ain't all that's gone, nuther.
  8095.  Ther's a spoon gone; and _that_ ain't all.  There was ten, and now
  8096. ther's only nine. The calf got the shirt, I reckon, but the calf never
  8097. took the spoon, _that's_ certain.”
  8098. “Why, what else is gone, Sally?”
  8099. “Ther's six _candles_ gone--that's what.  The rats could a got the
  8100. candles, and I reckon they did; I wonder they don't walk off with the
  8101. whole place, the way you're always going to stop their holes and don't
  8102. do it; and if they warn't fools they'd sleep in your hair, Silas--_you'd_
  8103. never find it out; but you can't lay the _spoon_ on the rats, and that I
  8104. know.”
  8105. “Well, Sally, I'm in fault, and I acknowledge it; I've been remiss; but
  8106. I won't let to-morrow go by without stopping up them holes.”
  8107. “Oh, I wouldn't hurry; next year 'll do.  Matilda Angelina Araminta
  8108. _Phelps!_”
  8109. Whack comes the thimble, and the child snatches her claws out of the
  8110. sugar-bowl without fooling around any.  Just then the nigger woman steps
  8111. on to the passage, and says:
  8112. “Missus, dey's a sheet gone.”
  8113. “A _sheet_ gone!  Well, for the land's sake!”
  8114. “I'll stop up them holes to-day,” says Uncle Silas, looking sorrowful.
  8115. “Oh, _do_ shet up!--s'pose the rats took the _sheet_?  _where's_ it gone,
  8116. Lize?”
  8117. “Clah to goodness I hain't no notion, Miss' Sally.  She wuz on de
  8118. clo'sline yistiddy, but she done gone:  she ain' dah no mo' now.”
  8119. “I reckon the world _is_ coming to an end.  I _never_ see the beat of it
  8120. in all my born days.  A shirt, and a sheet, and a spoon, and six can--”
  8121. “Missus,” comes a young yaller wench, “dey's a brass cannelstick
  8122. miss'n.”
  8123. “Cler out from here, you hussy, er I'll take a skillet to ye!”
  8124. Well, she was just a-biling.  I begun to lay for a chance; I reckoned
  8125. I would sneak out and go for the woods till the weather moderated.  She
  8126. kept a-raging right along, running her insurrection all by herself, and
  8127. everybody else mighty meek and quiet; and at last Uncle Silas, looking
  8128. kind of foolish, fishes up that spoon out of his pocket.  She stopped,
  8129. with her mouth open and her hands up; and as for me, I wished I was in
  8130. Jeruslem or somewheres. But not long, because she says:
  8131. “It's _just_ as I expected.  So you had it in your pocket all the time;
  8132. and like as not you've got the other things there, too.  How'd it get
  8133. there?”
  8134. “I reely don't know, Sally,” he says, kind of apologizing, “or you know
  8135. I would tell.  I was a-studying over my text in Acts Seventeen before
  8136. breakfast, and I reckon I put it in there, not noticing, meaning to put
  8137. my Testament in, and it must be so, because my Testament ain't in; but
  8138. I'll go and see; and if the Testament is where I had it, I'll know I
  8139. didn't put it in, and that will show that I laid the Testament down and
  8140. took up the spoon, and--”
  8141. “Oh, for the land's sake!  Give a body a rest!  Go 'long now, the whole
  8142. kit and biling of ye; and don't come nigh me again till I've got back my
  8143. peace of mind.”
  8144. I'D a heard her if she'd a said it to herself, let alone speaking it
  8145. out; and I'd a got up and obeyed her if I'd a been dead.  As we was
  8146. passing through the setting-room the old man he took up his hat, and the
  8147. shingle-nail fell out on the floor, and he just merely picked it up and
  8148. laid it on the mantel-shelf, and never said nothing, and went out.  Tom
  8149. see him do it, and remembered about the spoon, and says:
  8150. “Well, it ain't no use to send things by _him_ no more, he ain't
  8151. reliable.” Then he says: “But he done us a good turn with the spoon,
  8152. anyway, without knowing it, and so we'll go and do him one without _him_
  8153. knowing it--stop up his rat-holes.”
  8154. There was a noble good lot of them down cellar, and it took us a whole
  8155. hour, but we done the job tight and good and shipshape.  Then we heard
  8156. steps on the stairs, and blowed out our light and hid; and here comes
  8157. the old man, with a candle in one hand and a bundle of stuff in t'other,
  8158. looking as absent-minded as year before last.  He went a mooning around,
  8159. first to one rat-hole and then another, till he'd been to them all.
  8160.  Then he stood about five minutes, picking tallow-drip off of his candle
  8161. and thinking.  Then he turns off slow and dreamy towards the stairs,
  8162. saying:
  8163. “Well, for the life of me I can't remember when I done it.  I could
  8164. show her now that I warn't to blame on account of the rats.  But never
  8165. mind--let it go.  I reckon it wouldn't do no good.”
  8166. And so he went on a-mumbling up stairs, and then we left.  He was a
  8167. mighty nice old man.  And always is.
  8168. Tom was a good deal bothered about what to do for a spoon, but he said
  8169. we'd got to have it; so he took a think.  When he had ciphered it out
  8170. he told me how we was to do; then we went and waited around the
  8171. spoon-basket till we see Aunt Sally coming, and then Tom went to
  8172. counting the spoons and laying them out to one side, and I slid one of
  8173. them up my sleeve, and Tom says:
  8174. “Why, Aunt Sally, there ain't but nine spoons _yet_.”
  8175. She says:
  8176. “Go 'long to your play, and don't bother me.  I know better, I counted
  8177. 'm myself.”
  8178. “Well, I've counted them twice, Aunty, and I can't make but nine.”
  8179. She looked out of all patience, but of course she come to count--anybody
  8180. would.
  8181. “I declare to gracious ther' _ain't_ but nine!” she says. “Why, what in
  8182. the world--plague _take_ the things, I'll count 'm again.”
  8183. So I slipped back the one I had, and when she got done counting, she
  8184. says:
  8185. “Hang the troublesome rubbage, ther's _ten_ now!” and she looked huffy
  8186. and bothered both.  But Tom says:
  8187. “Why, Aunty, I don't think there's ten.”
  8188. “You numskull, didn't you see me _count 'm?_”
  8189. “I know, but--”
  8190. “Well, I'll count 'm _again_.”
  8191. So I smouched one, and they come out nine, same as the other time.
  8192.  Well, she _was_ in a tearing way--just a-trembling all over, she was so
  8193. mad.  But she counted and counted till she got that addled she'd start
  8194. to count in the basket for a spoon sometimes; and so, three times they
  8195. come out right, and three times they come out wrong.  Then she grabbed
  8196. up the basket and slammed it across the house and knocked the cat
  8197. galley-west; and she said cle'r out and let her have some peace, and if
  8198. we come bothering around her again betwixt that and dinner she'd skin
  8199. us.  So we had the odd spoon, and dropped it in her apron-pocket whilst
  8200. she was a-giving us our sailing orders, and Jim got it all right, along
  8201. with her shingle nail, before noon.  We was very well satisfied with
  8202. this business, and Tom allowed it was worth twice the trouble it took,
  8203. because he said _now_ she couldn't ever count them spoons twice alike
  8204. again to save her life; and wouldn't believe she'd counted them right if
  8205. she _did_; and said that after she'd about counted her head off for the
  8206. next three days he judged she'd give it up and offer to kill anybody
  8207. that wanted her to ever count them any more.
  8208. So we put the sheet back on the line that night, and stole one out of
  8209. her closet; and kept on putting it back and stealing it again for a
  8210. couple of days till she didn't know how many sheets she had any more,
  8211. and she didn't _care_, and warn't a-going to bullyrag the rest of her
  8212. soul out about it, and wouldn't count them again not to save her life;
  8213. she druther die first.
  8214. So we was all right now, as to the shirt and the sheet and the spoon
  8215. and the candles, by the help of the calf and the rats and the mixed-up
  8216. counting; and as to the candlestick, it warn't no consequence, it would
  8217. blow over by and by.
  8218. But that pie was a job; we had no end of trouble with that pie.  We
  8219. fixed it up away down in the woods, and cooked it there; and we got it
  8220. done at last, and very satisfactory, too; but not all in one day; and we
  8221. had to use up three wash-pans full of flour before we got through, and
  8222. we got burnt pretty much all over, in places, and eyes put out with
  8223. the smoke; because, you see, we didn't want nothing but a crust, and we
  8224. couldn't prop it up right, and she would always cave in.  But of course
  8225. we thought of the right way at last--which was to cook the ladder, too,
  8226. in the pie.  So then we laid in with Jim the second night, and tore
  8227. up the sheet all in little strings and twisted them together, and long
  8228. before daylight we had a lovely rope that you could a hung a person
  8229. with.  We let on it took nine months to make it.
  8230. And in the forenoon we took it down to the woods, but it wouldn't go
  8231. into the pie.  Being made of a whole sheet, that way, there was rope
  8232. enough for forty pies if we'd a wanted them, and plenty left over
  8233. for soup, or sausage, or anything you choose.  We could a had a whole
  8234. dinner.
  8235. But we didn't need it.  All we needed was just enough for the pie, and
  8236. so we throwed the rest away.  We didn't cook none of the pies in the
  8237. wash-pan--afraid the solder would melt; but Uncle Silas he had a noble
  8238. brass warming-pan which he thought considerable of, because it belonged
  8239. to one of his ancesters with a long wooden handle that come over from
  8240. England with William the Conqueror in the Mayflower or one of them early
  8241. ships and was hid away up garret with a lot of other old pots and things
  8242. that was valuable, not on account of being any account, because they
  8243. warn't, but on account of them being relicts, you know, and we snaked
  8244. her out, private, and took her down there, but she failed on the first
  8245. pies, because we didn't know how, but she come up smiling on the last
  8246. one.  We took and lined her with dough, and set her in the coals, and
  8247. loaded her up with rag rope, and put on a dough roof, and shut down the
  8248. lid, and put hot embers on top, and stood off five foot, with the long
  8249. handle, cool and comfortable, and in fifteen minutes she turned out a
  8250. pie that was a satisfaction to look at. But the person that et it would
  8251. want to fetch a couple of kags of toothpicks along, for if that rope
  8252. ladder wouldn't cramp him down to business I don't know nothing what I'm
  8253. talking about, and lay him in enough stomach-ache to last him till next
  8254. time, too.
  8255. Nat didn't look when we put the witch pie in Jim's pan; and we put the
  8256. three tin plates in the bottom of the pan under the vittles; and so Jim
  8257. got everything all right, and as soon as he was by himself he busted
  8258. into the pie and hid the rope ladder inside of his straw tick,
  8259. and scratched some marks on a tin plate and throwed it out of the
  8260. window-hole.
  8261. CHAPTER XXXVIII.
  8262. MAKING them pens was a distressid tough job, and so was the saw; and Jim
  8263. allowed the inscription was going to be the toughest of all.  That's the
  8264. one which the prisoner has to scrabble on the wall.  But he had to have
  8265. it; Tom said he'd _got_ to; there warn't no case of a state prisoner not
  8266. scrabbling his inscription to leave behind, and his coat of arms.
  8267. “Look at Lady Jane Grey,” he says; “look at Gilford Dudley; look at old
  8268. Northumberland!  Why, Huck, s'pose it _is_ considerble trouble?--what
  8269. you going to do?--how you going to get around it?  Jim's _got_ to do his
  8270. inscription and coat of arms.  They all do.”
  8271. Jim says:
  8272. “Why, Mars Tom, I hain't got no coat o' arm; I hain't got nuffn but dish
  8273. yer ole shirt, en you knows I got to keep de journal on dat.”
  8274. “Oh, you don't understand, Jim; a coat of arms is very different.”
  8275. “Well,” I says, “Jim's right, anyway, when he says he ain't got no coat
  8276. of arms, because he hain't.”
  8277. “I reckon I knowed that,” Tom says, “but you bet he'll have one before
  8278. he goes out of this--because he's going out _right_, and there ain't
  8279. going to be no flaws in his record.”
  8280. So whilst me and Jim filed away at the pens on a brickbat apiece, Jim
  8281. a-making his'n out of the brass and I making mine out of the spoon,
  8282. Tom set to work to think out the coat of arms.  By and by he said he'd
  8283. struck so many good ones he didn't hardly know which to take, but there
  8284. was one which he reckoned he'd decide on.  He says:
  8285. “On the scutcheon we'll have a bend _or_ in the dexter base, a saltire
  8286. _murrey_ in the fess, with a dog, couchant, for common charge, and under
  8287. his foot a chain embattled, for slavery, with a chevron _vert_ in a
  8288. chief engrailed, and three invected lines on a field _azure_, with the
  8289. nombril points rampant on a dancette indented; crest, a runaway nigger,
  8290. _sable_, with his bundle over his shoulder on a bar sinister; and a
  8291. couple of gules for supporters, which is you and me; motto, _Maggiore
  8292. Fretta, Minore Otto._  Got it out of a book--means the more haste the
  8293. less speed.”
  8294. “Geewhillikins,” I says, “but what does the rest of it mean?”
  8295. “We ain't got no time to bother over that,” he says; “we got to dig in
  8296. like all git-out.”
  8297. “Well, anyway,” I says, “what's _some_ of it?  What's a fess?”
  8298. “A fess--a fess is--_you_ don't need to know what a fess is.  I'll show
  8299. him how to make it when he gets to it.”
  8300. “Shucks, Tom,” I says, “I think you might tell a person.  What's a bar
  8301. sinister?”
  8302. “Oh, I don't know.  But he's got to have it.  All the nobility does.”
  8303. That was just his way.  If it didn't suit him to explain a thing to you,
  8304. he wouldn't do it.  You might pump at him a week, it wouldn't make no
  8305. difference.
  8306. He'd got all that coat of arms business fixed, so now he started in to
  8307. finish up the rest of that part of the work, which was to plan out a
  8308. mournful inscription--said Jim got to have one, like they all done.  He
  8309. made up a lot, and wrote them out on a paper, and read them off, so:
  8310. 1.  Here a captive heart busted. 2.  Here a poor prisoner, forsook by
  8311. the world and friends, fretted his sorrowful life. 3.  Here a lonely
  8312. heart broke, and a worn spirit went to its rest, after thirty-seven
  8313. years of solitary captivity. 4.  Here, homeless and friendless, after
  8314. thirty-seven years of bitter captivity, perished a noble stranger,
  8315. natural son of Louis XIV.
  8316. Tom's voice trembled whilst he was reading them, and he most broke down.
  8317. When he got done he couldn't no way make up his mind which one for Jim
  8318. to scrabble on to the wall, they was all so good; but at last he allowed
  8319. he would let him scrabble them all on.  Jim said it would take him a
  8320. year to scrabble such a lot of truck on to the logs with a nail, and he
  8321. didn't know how to make letters, besides; but Tom said he would block
  8322. them out for him, and then he wouldn't have nothing to do but just
  8323. follow the lines.  Then pretty soon he says:
  8324. “Come to think, the logs ain't a-going to do; they don't have log walls
  8325. in a dungeon:  we got to dig the inscriptions into a rock.  We'll fetch
  8326. a rock.”
  8327. Jim said the rock was worse than the logs; he said it would take him
  8328. such a pison long time to dig them into a rock he wouldn't ever get out.
  8329.  But Tom said he would let me help him do it.  Then he took a look to
  8330. see how me and Jim was getting along with the pens.  It was most pesky
  8331. tedious hard work and slow, and didn't give my hands no show to get
  8332. well of the sores, and we didn't seem to make no headway, hardly; so Tom
  8333. says:
  8334. “I know how to fix it.  We got to have a rock for the coat of arms and
  8335. mournful inscriptions, and we can kill two birds with that same rock.
  8336. There's a gaudy big grindstone down at the mill, and we'll smouch it,
  8337. and carve the things on it, and file out the pens and the saw on it,
  8338. too.”
  8339. It warn't no slouch of an idea; and it warn't no slouch of a grindstone
  8340. nuther; but we allowed we'd tackle it.  It warn't quite midnight yet,
  8341. so we cleared out for the mill, leaving Jim at work.  We smouched the
  8342. grindstone, and set out to roll her home, but it was a most nation tough
  8343. job. Sometimes, do what we could, we couldn't keep her from falling
  8344. over, and she come mighty near mashing us every time.  Tom said she was
  8345. going to get one of us, sure, before we got through.  We got her half
  8346. way; and then we was plumb played out, and most drownded with sweat.  We
  8347. see it warn't no use; we got to go and fetch Jim. So he raised up his
  8348. bed and slid the chain off of the bed-leg, and wrapt it round and round
  8349. his neck, and we crawled out through our hole and down there, and Jim
  8350. and me laid into that grindstone and walked her along like nothing; and
  8351. Tom superintended.  He could out-superintend any boy I ever see.  He
  8352. knowed how to do everything.
  8353. Our hole was pretty big, but it warn't big enough to get the grindstone
  8354. through; but Jim he took the pick and soon made it big enough.  Then Tom
  8355. marked out them things on it with the nail, and set Jim to work on them,
  8356. with the nail for a chisel and an iron bolt from the rubbage in the
  8357. lean-to for a hammer, and told him to work till the rest of his candle
  8358. quit on him, and then he could go to bed, and hide the grindstone under
  8359. his straw tick and sleep on it.  Then we helped him fix his chain back
  8360. on the bed-leg, and was ready for bed ourselves.  But Tom thought of
  8361. something, and says:
  8362. “You got any spiders in here, Jim?”
  8363. “No, sah, thanks to goodness I hain't, Mars Tom.”
  8364. “All right, we'll get you some.”
  8365. “But bless you, honey, I doan' _want_ none.  I's afeard un um.  I jis'
  8366. 's soon have rattlesnakes aroun'.”
  8367. Tom thought a minute or two, and says:
  8368. “It's a good idea.  And I reckon it's been done.  It _must_ a been done;
  8369. it stands to reason.  Yes, it's a prime good idea.  Where could you keep
  8370. it?”
  8371. “Keep what, Mars Tom?”
  8372. “Why, a rattlesnake.”
  8373. “De goodness gracious alive, Mars Tom!  Why, if dey was a rattlesnake to
  8374. come in heah I'd take en bust right out thoo dat log wall, I would, wid
  8375. my head.”
  8376. “Why, Jim, you wouldn't be afraid of it after a little.  You could tame
  8377. it.”
  8378. “_Tame_ it!”
  8379. “Yes--easy enough.  Every animal is grateful for kindness and petting,
  8380. and they wouldn't _think_ of hurting a person that pets them.  Any book
  8381. will tell you that.  You try--that's all I ask; just try for two or three
  8382. days. Why, you can get him so, in a little while, that he'll love you;
  8383. and sleep with you; and won't stay away from you a minute; and will let
  8384. you wrap him round your neck and put his head in your mouth.”
  8385. “_Please_, Mars Tom--_doan_' talk so!  I can't _stan_' it!  He'd _let_
  8386. me shove his head in my mouf--fer a favor, hain't it?  I lay he'd wait a
  8387. pow'ful long time 'fo' I _ast_ him.  En mo' en dat, I doan' _want_ him
  8388. to sleep wid me.”
  8389. “Jim, don't act so foolish.  A prisoner's _got_ to have some kind of a
  8390. dumb pet, and if a rattlesnake hain't ever been tried, why, there's more
  8391. glory to be gained in your being the first to ever try it than any other
  8392. way you could ever think of to save your life.”
  8393. “Why, Mars Tom, I doan' _want_ no sich glory.  Snake take 'n bite
  8394. Jim's chin off, den _whah_ is de glory?  No, sah, I doan' want no sich
  8395. doin's.”
  8396. “Blame it, can't you _try_?  I only _want_ you to try--you needn't keep
  8397. it up if it don't work.”
  8398. “But de trouble all _done_ ef de snake bite me while I's a tryin' him.
  8399. Mars Tom, I's willin' to tackle mos' anything 'at ain't onreasonable,
  8400. but ef you en Huck fetches a rattlesnake in heah for me to tame, I's
  8401. gwyne to _leave_, dat's _shore_.”
  8402. “Well, then, let it go, let it go, if you're so bull-headed about it.
  8403.  We can get you some garter-snakes, and you can tie some buttons on
  8404. their tails, and let on they're rattlesnakes, and I reckon that 'll have
  8405. to do.”
  8406. “I k'n stan' _dem_, Mars Tom, but blame' 'f I couldn' get along widout
  8407. um, I tell you dat.  I never knowed b'fo' 't was so much bother and
  8408. trouble to be a prisoner.”
  8409. “Well, it _always_ is when it's done right.  You got any rats around
  8410. here?”
  8411. “No, sah, I hain't seed none.”
  8412. “Well, we'll get you some rats.”
  8413. “Why, Mars Tom, I doan' _want_ no rats.  Dey's de dadblamedest creturs
  8414. to 'sturb a body, en rustle roun' over 'im, en bite his feet, when he's
  8415. tryin' to sleep, I ever see.  No, sah, gimme g'yarter-snakes, 'f I's
  8416. got to have 'm, but doan' gimme no rats; I hain' got no use f'r um,
  8417. skasely.”
  8418. “But, Jim, you _got_ to have 'em--they all do.  So don't make no more
  8419. fuss about it.  Prisoners ain't ever without rats.  There ain't no
  8420. instance of it.  And they train them, and pet them, and learn them
  8421. tricks, and they get to be as sociable as flies.  But you got to play
  8422. music to them.  You got anything to play music on?”
  8423. “I ain' got nuffn but a coase comb en a piece o' paper, en a juice-harp;
  8424. but I reck'n dey wouldn' take no stock in a juice-harp.”
  8425. “Yes they would _they_ don't care what kind of music 'tis.  A
  8426. jews-harp's plenty good enough for a rat.  All animals like music--in a
  8427. prison they dote on it.  Specially, painful music; and you can't get no
  8428. other kind out of a jews-harp.  It always interests them; they come out
  8429. to see what's the matter with you.  Yes, you're all right; you're fixed
  8430. very well.  You want to set on your bed nights before you go to sleep,
  8431. and early in the mornings, and play your jews-harp; play 'The Last Link
  8432. is Broken'--that's the thing that 'll scoop a rat quicker 'n anything
  8433. else; and when you've played about two minutes you'll see all the rats,
  8434. and the snakes, and spiders, and things begin to feel worried about you,
  8435. and come.  And they'll just fairly swarm over you, and have a noble good
  8436. time.”
  8437. “Yes, _dey_ will, I reck'n, Mars Tom, but what kine er time is _Jim_
  8438. havin'? Blest if I kin see de pint.  But I'll do it ef I got to.  I
  8439. reck'n I better keep de animals satisfied, en not have no trouble in de
  8440. house.”
  8441. Tom waited to think it over, and see if there wasn't nothing else; and
  8442. pretty soon he says:
  8443. “Oh, there's one thing I forgot.  Could you raise a flower here, do you
  8444. reckon?”
  8445. “I doan know but maybe I could, Mars Tom; but it's tolable dark in heah,
  8446. en I ain' got no use f'r no flower, nohow, en she'd be a pow'ful sight
  8447. o' trouble.”
  8448. “Well, you try it, anyway.  Some other prisoners has done it.”
  8449. “One er dem big cat-tail-lookin' mullen-stalks would grow in heah, Mars
  8450. Tom, I reck'n, but she wouldn't be wuth half de trouble she'd coss.”
  8451. “Don't you believe it.  We'll fetch you a little one and you plant it in
  8452. the corner over there, and raise it.  And don't call it mullen, call it
  8453. Pitchiola--that's its right name when it's in a prison.  And you want to
  8454. water it with your tears.”
  8455. “Why, I got plenty spring water, Mars Tom.”
  8456. “You don't _want_ spring water; you want to water it with your tears.
  8457.  It's the way they always do.”
  8458. “Why, Mars Tom, I lay I kin raise one er dem mullen-stalks twyste wid
  8459. spring water whiles another man's a _start'n_ one wid tears.”
  8460. “That ain't the idea.  You _got_ to do it with tears.”
  8461. “She'll die on my han's, Mars Tom, she sholy will; kase I doan' skasely
  8462. ever cry.”
  8463. So Tom was stumped.  But he studied it over, and then said Jim would
  8464. have to worry along the best he could with an onion.  He promised
  8465. he would go to the nigger cabins and drop one, private, in Jim's
  8466. coffee-pot, in the morning. Jim said he would “jis' 's soon have
  8467. tobacker in his coffee;” and found so much fault with it, and with the
  8468. work and bother of raising the mullen, and jews-harping the rats, and
  8469. petting and flattering up the snakes and spiders and things, on top of
  8470. all the other work he had to do on pens, and inscriptions, and journals,
  8471. and things, which made it more trouble and worry and responsibility to
  8472. be a prisoner than anything he ever undertook, that Tom most lost all
  8473. patience with him; and said he was just loadened down with more gaudier
  8474. chances than a prisoner ever had in the world to make a name for
  8475. himself, and yet he didn't know enough to appreciate them, and they was
  8476. just about wasted on him.  So Jim he was sorry, and said he wouldn't
  8477. behave so no more, and then me and Tom shoved for bed.
  8478. CHAPTER XXXIX.
  8479. IN the morning we went up to the village and bought a wire rat-trap and
  8480. fetched it down, and unstopped the best rat-hole, and in about an hour
  8481. we had fifteen of the bulliest kind of ones; and then we took it and put
  8482. it in a safe place under Aunt Sally's bed.  But while we was gone for
  8483. spiders little Thomas Franklin Benjamin Jefferson Elexander Phelps found
  8484. it there, and opened the door of it to see if the rats would come out,
  8485. and they did; and Aunt Sally she come in, and when we got back she was
  8486. a-standing on top of the bed raising Cain, and the rats was doing what
  8487. they could to keep off the dull times for her.  So she took and dusted
  8488. us both with the hickry, and we was as much as two hours catching
  8489. another fifteen or sixteen, drat that meddlesome cub, and they warn't
  8490. the likeliest, nuther, because the first haul was the pick of the flock.
  8491.  I never see a likelier lot of rats than what that first haul was.
  8492. We got a splendid stock of sorted spiders, and bugs, and frogs, and
  8493. caterpillars, and one thing or another; and we like to got a hornet's
  8494. nest, but we didn't.  The family was at home.  We didn't give it right
  8495. up, but stayed with them as long as we could; because we allowed we'd
  8496. tire them out or they'd got to tire us out, and they done it.  Then we
  8497. got allycumpain and rubbed on the places, and was pretty near all right
  8498. again, but couldn't set down convenient.  And so we went for the snakes,
  8499. and grabbed a couple of dozen garters and house-snakes, and put them in
  8500. a bag, and put it in our room, and by that time it was supper-time, and
  8501. a rattling good honest day's work:  and hungry?--oh, no, I reckon not!
  8502.  And there warn't a blessed snake up there when we went back--we didn't
  8503. half tie the sack, and they worked out somehow, and left.  But it didn't
  8504. matter much, because they was still on the premises somewheres.  So
  8505. we judged we could get some of them again.  No, there warn't no real
  8506. scarcity of snakes about the house for a considerable spell.  You'd see
  8507. them dripping from the rafters and places every now and then; and they
  8508. generly landed in your plate, or down the back of your neck, and most
  8509. of the time where you didn't want them.  Well, they was handsome and
  8510. striped, and there warn't no harm in a million of them; but that never
  8511. made no difference to Aunt Sally; she despised snakes, be the breed what
  8512. they might, and she couldn't stand them no way you could fix it; and
  8513. every time one of them flopped down on her, it didn't make no difference
  8514. what she was doing, she would just lay that work down and light out.  I
  8515. never see such a woman.  And you could hear her whoop to Jericho.  You
  8516. couldn't get her to take a-holt of one of them with the tongs.  And if
  8517. she turned over and found one in bed she would scramble out and lift a
  8518. howl that you would think the house was afire.  She disturbed the old
  8519. man so that he said he could most wish there hadn't ever been no snakes
  8520. created.  Why, after every last snake had been gone clear out of the
  8521. house for as much as a week Aunt Sally warn't over it yet; she warn't
  8522. near over it; when she was setting thinking about something you could
  8523. touch her on the back of her neck with a feather and she would jump
  8524. right out of her stockings.  It was very curious.  But Tom said all
  8525. women was just so.  He said they was made that way for some reason or
  8526. other.
  8527. We got a licking every time one of our snakes come in her way, and she
  8528. allowed these lickings warn't nothing to what she would do if we ever
  8529. loaded up the place again with them.  I didn't mind the lickings,
  8530. because they didn't amount to nothing; but I minded the trouble we
  8531. had to lay in another lot.  But we got them laid in, and all the other
  8532. things; and you never see a cabin as blithesome as Jim's was when they'd
  8533. all swarm out for music and go for him.  Jim didn't like the spiders,
  8534. and the spiders didn't like Jim; and so they'd lay for him, and make it
  8535. mighty warm for him.  And he said that between the rats and the snakes
  8536. and the grindstone there warn't no room in bed for him, skasely; and
  8537. when there was, a body couldn't sleep, it was so lively, and it was
  8538. always lively, he said, because _they_ never all slept at one time, but
  8539. took turn about, so when the snakes was asleep the rats was on deck, and
  8540. when the rats turned in the snakes come on watch, so he always had one
  8541. gang under him, in his way, and t'other gang having a circus over him,
  8542. and if he got up to hunt a new place the spiders would take a chance at
  8543. him as he crossed over. He said if he ever got out this time he wouldn't
  8544. ever be a prisoner again, not for a salary.
  8545. Well, by the end of three weeks everything was in pretty good shape.
  8546.  The shirt was sent in early, in a pie, and every time a rat bit Jim he
  8547. would get up and write a little in his journal whilst the ink was fresh;
  8548. the pens was made, the inscriptions and so on was all carved on the
  8549. grindstone; the bed-leg was sawed in two, and we had et up the sawdust,
  8550. and it give us a most amazing stomach-ache.  We reckoned we was all
  8551. going to die, but didn't.  It was the most undigestible sawdust I ever
  8552. see; and Tom said the same.
  8553. But as I was saying, we'd got all the work done now, at last; and we was
  8554. all pretty much fagged out, too, but mainly Jim.  The old man had wrote
  8555. a couple of times to the plantation below Orleans to come and get their
  8556. runaway nigger, but hadn't got no answer, because there warn't no such
  8557. plantation; so he allowed he would advertise Jim in the St. Louis and
  8558. New Orleans papers; and when he mentioned the St. Louis ones it give me
  8559. the cold shivers, and I see we hadn't no time to lose. So Tom said, now
  8560. for the nonnamous letters.
  8561. “What's them?”  I says.
  8562. “Warnings to the people that something is up.  Sometimes it's done one
  8563. way, sometimes another.  But there's always somebody spying around that
  8564. gives notice to the governor of the castle.  When Louis XVI. was going
  8565. to light out of the Tooleries, a servant-girl done it.  It's a very good
  8566. way, and so is the nonnamous letters.  We'll use them both.  And it's
  8567. usual for the prisoner's mother to change clothes with him, and she
  8568. stays in, and he slides out in her clothes.  We'll do that, too.”
  8569. “But looky here, Tom, what do we want to _warn_ anybody for that
  8570. something's up?  Let them find it out for themselves--it's their
  8571. lookout.”
  8572. “Yes, I know; but you can't depend on them.  It's the way they've acted
  8573. from the very start--left us to do _everything_.  They're so confiding
  8574. and mullet-headed they don't take notice of nothing at all.  So if we
  8575. don't _give_ them notice there won't be nobody nor nothing to interfere
  8576. with us, and so after all our hard work and trouble this escape 'll go
  8577. off perfectly flat; won't amount to nothing--won't be nothing _to_ it.”
  8578. “Well, as for me, Tom, that's the way I'd like.”
  8579. “Shucks!” he says, and looked disgusted.  So I says:
  8580. “But I ain't going to make no complaint.  Any way that suits you suits
  8581. me. What you going to do about the servant-girl?”
  8582. “You'll be her.  You slide in, in the middle of the night, and hook that
  8583. yaller girl's frock.”
  8584. “Why, Tom, that 'll make trouble next morning; because, of course, she
  8585. prob'bly hain't got any but that one.”
  8586. “I know; but you don't want it but fifteen minutes, to carry the
  8587. nonnamous letter and shove it under the front door.”
  8588. “All right, then, I'll do it; but I could carry it just as handy in my
  8589. own togs.”
  8590. “You wouldn't look like a servant-girl _then_, would you?”
  8591. “No, but there won't be nobody to see what I look like, _anyway_.”
  8592. “That ain't got nothing to do with it.  The thing for us to do is just
  8593. to do our _duty_, and not worry about whether anybody _sees_ us do it or
  8594. not. Hain't you got no principle at all?”
  8595. “All right, I ain't saying nothing; I'm the servant-girl.  Who's Jim's
  8596. mother?”
  8597. “I'm his mother.  I'll hook a gown from Aunt Sally.”
  8598. “Well, then, you'll have to stay in the cabin when me and Jim leaves.”
  8599. “Not much.  I'll stuff Jim's clothes full of straw and lay it on his bed
  8600. to represent his mother in disguise, and Jim 'll take the nigger woman's
  8601. gown off of me and wear it, and we'll all evade together.  When a
  8602. prisoner of style escapes it's called an evasion.  It's always called
  8603. so when a king escapes, f'rinstance.  And the same with a king's son;
  8604. it don't make no difference whether he's a natural one or an unnatural
  8605. one.”
  8606. So Tom he wrote the nonnamous letter, and I smouched the yaller wench's
  8607. frock that night, and put it on, and shoved it under the front door, the
  8608. way Tom told me to.  It said:
  8609. Beware.  Trouble is brewing.  Keep a sharp lookout. _Unknown_ _Friend_.
  8610. Next night we stuck a picture, which Tom drawed in blood, of a skull and
  8611. crossbones on the front door; and next night another one of a coffin on
  8612. the back door.  I never see a family in such a sweat.  They couldn't a
  8613. been worse scared if the place had a been full of ghosts laying for them
  8614. behind everything and under the beds and shivering through the air.  If
  8615. a door banged, Aunt Sally she jumped and said “ouch!” if anything fell,
  8616. she jumped and said “ouch!” if you happened to touch her, when she
  8617. warn't noticing, she done the same; she couldn't face noway and be
  8618. satisfied, because she allowed there was something behind her every
  8619. time--so she was always a-whirling around sudden, and saying “ouch,” and
  8620. before she'd got two-thirds around she'd whirl back again, and say it
  8621. again; and she was afraid to go to bed, but she dasn't set up.  So the
  8622. thing was working very well, Tom said; he said he never see a thing work
  8623. more satisfactory. He said it showed it was done right.
  8624. So he said, now for the grand bulge!  So the very next morning at the
  8625. streak of dawn we got another letter ready, and was wondering what we
  8626. better do with it, because we heard them say at supper they was going
  8627. to have a nigger on watch at both doors all night.  Tom he went down the
  8628. lightning-rod to spy around; and the nigger at the back door was asleep,
  8629. and he stuck it in the back of his neck and come back.  This letter
  8630. said:
  8631. Don't betray me, I wish to be your friend.  There is a desprate gang of
  8632. cutthroats from over in the Indian Territory going to steal your runaway
  8633. nigger to-night, and they have been trying to scare you so as you will
  8634. stay in the house and not bother them.  I am one of the gang, but have
  8635. got religgion and wish to quit it and lead an honest life again, and
  8636. will betray the helish design. They will sneak down from northards,
  8637. along the fence, at midnight exact, with a false key, and go in the
  8638. nigger's cabin to get him. I am to be off a piece and blow a tin horn
  8639. if I see any danger; but stead of that I will _baa_ like a sheep soon as
  8640. they get in and not blow at all; then whilst they are getting his
  8641. chains loose, you slip there and lock them in, and can kill them at your
  8642. leasure.  Don't do anything but just the way I am telling you, if you do
  8643. they will suspicion something and raise whoop-jamboreehoo. I do not wish
  8644. any reward but to know I have done the right thing. _Unknown Friend._
  8645. CHAPTER XL.
  8646. WE was feeling pretty good after breakfast, and took my canoe and went
  8647. over the river a-fishing, with a lunch, and had a good time, and took a
  8648. look at the raft and found her all right, and got home late to supper,
  8649. and found them in such a sweat and worry they didn't know which end they
  8650. was standing on, and made us go right off to bed the minute we was done
  8651. supper, and wouldn't tell us what the trouble was, and never let on a
  8652. word about the new letter, but didn't need to, because we knowed as much
  8653. about it as anybody did, and as soon as we was half up stairs and her
  8654. back was turned we slid for the cellar cupboard and loaded up a good
  8655. lunch and took it up to our room and went to bed, and got up about
  8656. half-past eleven, and Tom put on Aunt Sally's dress that he stole and
  8657. was going to start with the lunch, but says:
  8658. “Where's the butter?”
  8659. “I laid out a hunk of it,” I says, “on a piece of a corn-pone.”
  8660. “Well, you _left_ it laid out, then--it ain't here.”
  8661. “We can get along without it,” I says.
  8662. “We can get along _with_ it, too,” he says; “just you slide down cellar
  8663. and fetch it.  And then mosey right down the lightning-rod and come
  8664. along. I'll go and stuff the straw into Jim's clothes to represent his
  8665. mother in disguise, and be ready to _baa_ like a sheep and shove soon as
  8666. you get there.”
  8667. So out he went, and down cellar went I. The hunk of butter, big as
  8668. a person's fist, was where I had left it, so I took up the slab of
  8669. corn-pone with it on, and blowed out my light, and started up stairs
  8670. very stealthy, and got up to the main floor all right, but here comes
  8671. Aunt Sally with a candle, and I clapped the truck in my hat, and clapped
  8672. my hat on my head, and the next second she see me; and she says:
  8673. “You been down cellar?”
  8674. “Yes'm.”
  8675. “What you been doing down there?”
  8676. “Noth'n.”
  8677. “_Noth'n!_”
  8678. “No'm.”
  8679. “Well, then, what possessed you to go down there this time of night?”
  8680. “I don't know 'm.”
  8681. “You don't _know_?  Don't answer me that way. Tom, I want to know what
  8682. you been _doing_ down there.”
  8683. “I hain't been doing a single thing, Aunt Sally, I hope to gracious if I
  8684. have.”
  8685. I reckoned she'd let me go now, and as a generl thing she would; but I
  8686. s'pose there was so many strange things going on she was just in a sweat
  8687. about every little thing that warn't yard-stick straight; so she says,
  8688. very decided:
  8689. “You just march into that setting-room and stay there till I come.  You
  8690. been up to something you no business to, and I lay I'll find out what it
  8691. is before I'M done with you.”
  8692. So she went away as I opened the door and walked into the setting-room.
  8693. My, but there was a crowd there!  Fifteen farmers, and every one of them
  8694. had a gun.  I was most powerful sick, and slunk to a chair and set down.
  8695. They was setting around, some of them talking a little, in a low voice,
  8696. and all of them fidgety and uneasy, but trying to look like they warn't;
  8697. but I knowed they was, because they was always taking off their hats,
  8698. and putting them on, and scratching their heads, and changing their
  8699. seats, and fumbling with their buttons.  I warn't easy myself, but I
  8700. didn't take my hat off, all the same.
  8701. I did wish Aunt Sally would come, and get done with me, and lick me, if
  8702. she wanted to, and let me get away and tell Tom how we'd overdone this
  8703. thing, and what a thundering hornet's-nest we'd got ourselves into, so
  8704. we could stop fooling around straight off, and clear out with Jim before
  8705. these rips got out of patience and come for us.
  8706. At last she come and begun to ask me questions, but I _couldn't_ answer
  8707. them straight, I didn't know which end of me was up; because these men
  8708. was in such a fidget now that some was wanting to start right NOW and
  8709. lay for them desperadoes, and saying it warn't but a few minutes to
  8710. midnight; and others was trying to get them to hold on and wait for the
  8711. sheep-signal; and here was Aunty pegging away at the questions, and
  8712. me a-shaking all over and ready to sink down in my tracks I was
  8713. that scared; and the place getting hotter and hotter, and the butter
  8714. beginning to melt and run down my neck and behind my ears; and pretty
  8715. soon, when one of them says, “I'M for going and getting in the cabin
  8716. _first_ and right _now_, and catching them when they come,” I most
  8717. dropped; and a streak of butter come a-trickling down my forehead, and
  8718. Aunt Sally she see it, and turns white as a sheet, and says:
  8719. “For the land's sake, what _is_ the matter with the child?  He's got the
  8720. brain-fever as shore as you're born, and they're oozing out!”
  8721. And everybody runs to see, and she snatches off my hat, and out comes
  8722. the bread and what was left of the butter, and she grabbed me, and
  8723. hugged me, and says:
  8724. “Oh, what a turn you did give me! and how glad and grateful I am it
  8725. ain't no worse; for luck's against us, and it never rains but it pours,
  8726. and when I see that truck I thought we'd lost you, for I knowed by
  8727. the color and all it was just like your brains would be if--Dear,
  8728. dear, whyd'nt you _tell_ me that was what you'd been down there for, I
  8729. wouldn't a cared.  Now cler out to bed, and don't lemme see no more of
  8730. you till morning!”
  8731. I was up stairs in a second, and down the lightning-rod in another one,
  8732. and shinning through the dark for the lean-to.  I couldn't hardly get my
  8733. words out, I was so anxious; but I told Tom as quick as I could we must
  8734. jump for it now, and not a minute to lose--the house full of men, yonder,
  8735. with guns!
  8736. His eyes just blazed; and he says:
  8737. “No!--is that so?  _ain't_ it bully!  Why, Huck, if it was to do over
  8738. again, I bet I could fetch two hundred!  If we could put it off till--”
  8739. “Hurry!  _Hurry_!”  I says. “Where's Jim?”
  8740. “Right at your elbow; if you reach out your arm you can touch him.
  8741.  He's dressed, and everything's ready.  Now we'll slide out and give the
  8742. sheep-signal.”
  8743. But then we heard the tramp of men coming to the door, and heard them
  8744. begin to fumble with the pad-lock, and heard a man say:
  8745. “I _told_ you we'd be too soon; they haven't come--the door is locked.
  8746. Here, I'll lock some of you into the cabin, and you lay for 'em in the
  8747. dark and kill 'em when they come; and the rest scatter around a piece,
  8748. and listen if you can hear 'em coming.”
  8749. So in they come, but couldn't see us in the dark, and most trod on
  8750. us whilst we was hustling to get under the bed.  But we got under all
  8751. right, and out through the hole, swift but soft--Jim first, me next,
  8752. and Tom last, which was according to Tom's orders.  Now we was in the
  8753. lean-to, and heard trampings close by outside.  So we crept to the door,
  8754. and Tom stopped us there and put his eye to the crack, but couldn't make
  8755. out nothing, it was so dark; and whispered and said he would listen
  8756. for the steps to get further, and when he nudged us Jim must glide out
  8757. first, and him last.  So he set his ear to the crack and listened, and
  8758. listened, and listened, and the steps a-scraping around out there all
  8759. the time; and at last he nudged us, and we slid out, and stooped down,
  8760. not breathing, and not making the least noise, and slipped stealthy
  8761. towards the fence in Injun file, and got to it all right, and me and Jim
  8762. over it; but Tom's britches catched fast on a splinter on the top
  8763. rail, and then he hear the steps coming, so he had to pull loose, which
  8764. snapped the splinter and made a noise; and as he dropped in our tracks
  8765. and started somebody sings out:
  8766. “Who's that?  Answer, or I'll shoot!”
  8767. But we didn't answer; we just unfurled our heels and shoved.  Then there
  8768. was a rush, and a _Bang, Bang, Bang!_ and the bullets fairly whizzed
  8769. around us! We heard them sing out:
  8770. “Here they are!  They've broke for the river!  After 'em, boys, and turn
  8771. loose the dogs!”
  8772. So here they come, full tilt.  We could hear them because they wore
  8773. boots and yelled, but we didn't wear no boots and didn't yell.  We was
  8774. in the path to the mill; and when they got pretty close on to us we
  8775. dodged into the bush and let them go by, and then dropped in behind
  8776. them.  They'd had all the dogs shut up, so they wouldn't scare off the
  8777. robbers; but by this time somebody had let them loose, and here they
  8778. come, making powwow enough for a million; but they was our dogs; so we
  8779. stopped in our tracks till they catched up; and when they see it warn't
  8780. nobody but us, and no excitement to offer them, they only just said
  8781. howdy, and tore right ahead towards the shouting and clattering; and
  8782. then we up-steam again, and whizzed along after them till we was nearly
  8783. to the mill, and then struck up through the bush to where my canoe was
  8784. tied, and hopped in and pulled for dear life towards the middle of the
  8785. river, but didn't make no more noise than we was obleeged to. Then we
  8786. struck out, easy and comfortable, for the island where my raft was; and
  8787. we could hear them yelling and barking at each other all up and down the
  8788. bank, till we was so far away the sounds got dim and died out.  And when
  8789. we stepped on to the raft I says:
  8790. “_Now_, old Jim, you're a free man again, and I bet you won't ever be a
  8791. slave no more.”
  8792. “En a mighty good job it wuz, too, Huck.  It 'uz planned beautiful, en
  8793. it 'uz done beautiful; en dey ain't _nobody_ kin git up a plan dat's mo'
  8794. mixed-up en splendid den what dat one wuz.”
  8795. We was all glad as we could be, but Tom was the gladdest of all because
  8796. he had a bullet in the calf of his leg.
  8797. When me and Jim heard that we didn't feel so brash as what we did
  8798. before. It was hurting him considerable, and bleeding; so we laid him in
  8799. the wigwam and tore up one of the duke's shirts for to bandage him, but
  8800. he says:
  8801. “Gimme the rags; I can do it myself.  Don't stop now; don't fool around
  8802. here, and the evasion booming along so handsome; man the sweeps, and set
  8803. her loose!  Boys, we done it elegant!--'deed we did.  I wish _we'd_ a
  8804. had the handling of Louis XVI., there wouldn't a been no 'Son of Saint
  8805. Louis, ascend to heaven!' wrote down in _his_ biography; no, sir, we'd
  8806. a whooped him over the _border_--that's what we'd a done with _him_--and
  8807. done it just as slick as nothing at all, too.  Man the sweeps--man the
  8808. sweeps!”
  8809. But me and Jim was consulting--and thinking.  And after we'd thought a
  8810. minute, I says:
  8811. “Say it, Jim.”
  8812. So he says:
  8813. “Well, den, dis is de way it look to me, Huck.  Ef it wuz _him_ dat 'uz
  8814. bein' sot free, en one er de boys wuz to git shot, would he say, 'Go on
  8815. en save me, nemmine 'bout a doctor f'r to save dis one?'  Is dat like
  8816. Mars Tom Sawyer?  Would he say dat?  You _bet_ he wouldn't!  _well_,
  8817. den, is _Jim_ gywne to say it?  No, sah--I doan' budge a step out'n dis
  8818. place 'dout a _doctor_, not if it's forty year!”
  8819. I knowed he was white inside, and I reckoned he'd say what he did say--so
  8820. it was all right now, and I told Tom I was a-going for a doctor.
  8821.  He raised considerable row about it, but me and Jim stuck to it and
  8822. wouldn't budge; so he was for crawling out and setting the raft loose
  8823. himself; but we wouldn't let him.  Then he give us a piece of his mind,
  8824. but it didn't do no good.
  8825. So when he sees me getting the canoe ready, he says:
  8826. “Well, then, if you're bound to go, I'll tell you the way to do when you
  8827. get to the village.  Shut the door and blindfold the doctor tight and
  8828. fast, and make him swear to be silent as the grave, and put a purse
  8829. full of gold in his hand, and then take and lead him all around the
  8830. back alleys and everywheres in the dark, and then fetch him here in the
  8831. canoe, in a roundabout way amongst the islands, and search him and take
  8832. his chalk away from him, and don't give it back to him till you get him
  8833. back to the village, or else he will chalk this raft so he can find it
  8834. again. It's the way they all do.”
  8835. So I said I would, and left, and Jim was to hide in the woods when he
  8836. see the doctor coming till he was gone again.
  8837. CHAPTER XLI.
  8838. THE doctor was an old man; a very nice, kind-looking old man when I got
  8839. him up.  I told him me and my brother was over on Spanish Island hunting
  8840. yesterday afternoon, and camped on a piece of a raft we found, and about
  8841. midnight he must a kicked his gun in his dreams, for it went off and
  8842. shot him in the leg, and we wanted him to go over there and fix it and
  8843. not say nothing about it, nor let anybody know, because we wanted to
  8844. come home this evening and surprise the folks.
  8845. “Who is your folks?” he says.
  8846. “The Phelpses, down yonder.”
  8847. “Oh,” he says.  And after a minute, he says:
  8848. “How'd you say he got shot?”
  8849. “He had a dream,” I says, “and it shot him.”
  8850. “Singular dream,” he says.
  8851. So he lit up his lantern, and got his saddle-bags, and we started.  But
  8852. when he sees the canoe he didn't like the look of her--said she was big
  8853. enough for one, but didn't look pretty safe for two.  I says:
  8854. “Oh, you needn't be afeard, sir, she carried the three of us easy
  8855. enough.”
  8856. “What three?”
  8857. “Why, me and Sid, and--and--and _the guns_; that's what I mean.”
  8858. “Oh,” he says.
  8859. But he put his foot on the gunnel and rocked her, and shook his head,
  8860. and said he reckoned he'd look around for a bigger one.  But they was
  8861. all locked and chained; so he took my canoe, and said for me to wait
  8862. till he come back, or I could hunt around further, or maybe I better
  8863. go down home and get them ready for the surprise if I wanted to.  But
  8864. I said I didn't; so I told him just how to find the raft, and then he
  8865. started.
  8866. I struck an idea pretty soon.  I says to myself, spos'n he can't fix
  8867. that leg just in three shakes of a sheep's tail, as the saying is?
  8868. spos'n it takes him three or four days?  What are we going to do?--lay
  8869. around there till he lets the cat out of the bag?  No, sir; I know what
  8870. _I'll_ do.  I'll wait, and when he comes back if he says he's got to
  8871. go any more I'll get down there, too, if I swim; and we'll take and tie
  8872. him, and keep him, and shove out down the river; and when Tom's done
  8873. with him we'll give him what it's worth, or all we got, and then let him
  8874. get ashore.
  8875. So then I crept into a lumber-pile to get some sleep; and next time I
  8876. waked up the sun was away up over my head!  I shot out and went for the
  8877. doctor's house, but they told me he'd gone away in the night some time
  8878. or other, and warn't back yet.  Well, thinks I, that looks powerful bad
  8879. for Tom, and I'll dig out for the island right off.  So away I shoved,
  8880. and turned the corner, and nearly rammed my head into Uncle Silas's
  8881. stomach! He says:
  8882. “Why, _Tom!_  Where you been all this time, you rascal?”
  8883. “I hain't been nowheres,” I says, “only just hunting for the runaway
  8884. nigger--me and Sid.”
  8885. “Why, where ever did you go?” he says. “Your aunt's been mighty
  8886. uneasy.”
  8887. “She needn't,” I says, “because we was all right.  We followed the men
  8888. and the dogs, but they outrun us, and we lost them; but we thought we
  8889. heard them on the water, so we got a canoe and took out after them and
  8890. crossed over, but couldn't find nothing of them; so we cruised along
  8891. up-shore till we got kind of tired and beat out; and tied up the canoe
  8892. and went to sleep, and never waked up till about an hour ago; then we
  8893. paddled over here to hear the news, and Sid's at the post-office to see
  8894. what he can hear, and I'm a-branching out to get something to eat for
  8895. us, and then we're going home.”
  8896. So then we went to the post-office to get “Sid”; but just as I
  8897. suspicioned, he warn't there; so the old man he got a letter out of the
  8898. office, and we waited awhile longer, but Sid didn't come; so the old man
  8899. said, come along, let Sid foot it home, or canoe it, when he got done
  8900. fooling around--but we would ride.  I couldn't get him to let me stay
  8901. and wait for Sid; and he said there warn't no use in it, and I must come
  8902. along, and let Aunt Sally see we was all right.
  8903. When we got home Aunt Sally was that glad to see me she laughed and
  8904. cried both, and hugged me, and give me one of them lickings of hern that
  8905. don't amount to shucks, and said she'd serve Sid the same when he come.
  8906. And the place was plum full of farmers and farmers' wives, to dinner;
  8907. and such another clack a body never heard.  Old Mrs. Hotchkiss was the
  8908. worst; her tongue was a-going all the time.  She says:
  8909. “Well, Sister Phelps, I've ransacked that-air cabin over, an' I b'lieve
  8910. the nigger was crazy.  I says to Sister Damrell--didn't I, Sister
  8911. Damrell?--s'I, he's crazy, s'I--them's the very words I said.  You all
  8912. hearn me: he's crazy, s'I; everything shows it, s'I.  Look at that-air
  8913. grindstone, s'I; want to tell _me_'t any cretur 't's in his right mind
  8914. 's a goin' to scrabble all them crazy things onto a grindstone, s'I?
  8915.  Here sich 'n' sich a person busted his heart; 'n' here so 'n' so
  8916. pegged along for thirty-seven year, 'n' all that--natcherl son o' Louis
  8917. somebody, 'n' sich everlast'n rubbage.  He's plumb crazy, s'I; it's what
  8918. I says in the fust place, it's what I says in the middle, 'n' it's what
  8919. I says last 'n' all the time--the nigger's crazy--crazy 's Nebokoodneezer,
  8920. s'I.”
  8921. “An' look at that-air ladder made out'n rags, Sister Hotchkiss,” says
  8922. old Mrs. Damrell; “what in the name o' goodness _could_ he ever want
  8923. of--”
  8924. “The very words I was a-sayin' no longer ago th'n this minute to Sister
  8925. Utterback, 'n' she'll tell you so herself.  Sh-she, look at that-air rag
  8926. ladder, sh-she; 'n' s'I, yes, _look_ at it, s'I--what _could_ he a-wanted
  8927. of it, s'I.  Sh-she, Sister Hotchkiss, sh-she--”
  8928. “But how in the nation'd they ever _git_ that grindstone _in_ there,
  8929. _anyway_? 'n' who dug that-air _hole_? 'n' who--”
  8930. “My very _words_, Brer Penrod!  I was a-sayin'--pass that-air sasser o'
  8931. m'lasses, won't ye?--I was a-sayin' to Sister Dunlap, jist this minute,
  8932. how _did_ they git that grindstone in there, s'I.  Without _help_, mind
  8933. you--'thout _help_!  _that's_ wher 'tis.  Don't tell _me_, s'I; there
  8934. _wuz_ help, s'I; 'n' ther' wuz a _plenty_ help, too, s'I; ther's ben a
  8935. _dozen_ a-helpin' that nigger, 'n' I lay I'd skin every last nigger on
  8936. this place but _I'd_ find out who done it, s'I; 'n' moreover, s'I--”
  8937. “A _dozen_ says you!--_forty_ couldn't a done every thing that's been
  8938. done. Look at them case-knife saws and things, how tedious they've been
  8939. made; look at that bed-leg sawed off with 'm, a week's work for six men;
  8940. look at that nigger made out'n straw on the bed; and look at--”
  8941. “You may _well_ say it, Brer Hightower!  It's jist as I was a-sayin'
  8942. to Brer Phelps, his own self.  S'e, what do _you_ think of it, Sister
  8943. Hotchkiss, s'e? Think o' what, Brer Phelps, s'I?  Think o' that bed-leg
  8944. sawed off that a way, s'e?  _think_ of it, s'I?  I lay it never sawed
  8945. _itself_ off, s'I--somebody _sawed_ it, s'I; that's my opinion, take it
  8946. or leave it, it mayn't be no 'count, s'I, but sich as 't is, it's my
  8947. opinion, s'I, 'n' if any body k'n start a better one, s'I, let him _do_
  8948. it, s'I, that's all.  I says to Sister Dunlap, s'I--”
  8949. “Why, dog my cats, they must a ben a house-full o' niggers in there
  8950. every night for four weeks to a done all that work, Sister Phelps.  Look
  8951. at that shirt--every last inch of it kivered over with secret African
  8952. writ'n done with blood!  Must a ben a raft uv 'm at it right along, all
  8953. the time, amost.  Why, I'd give two dollars to have it read to me; 'n'
  8954. as for the niggers that wrote it, I 'low I'd take 'n' lash 'm t'll--”
  8955. “People to _help_ him, Brother Marples!  Well, I reckon you'd _think_
  8956. so if you'd a been in this house for a while back.  Why, they've stole
  8957. everything they could lay their hands on--and we a-watching all the time,
  8958. mind you. They stole that shirt right off o' the line! and as for that
  8959. sheet they made the rag ladder out of, ther' ain't no telling how
  8960. many times they _didn't_ steal that; and flour, and candles, and
  8961. candlesticks, and spoons, and the old warming-pan, and most a thousand
  8962. things that I disremember now, and my new calico dress; and me and
  8963. Silas and my Sid and Tom on the constant watch day _and_ night, as I was
  8964. a-telling you, and not a one of us could catch hide nor hair nor sight
  8965. nor sound of them; and here at the last minute, lo and behold you, they
  8966. slides right in under our noses and fools us, and not only fools _us_
  8967. but the Injun Territory robbers too, and actuly gets _away_ with that
  8968. nigger safe and sound, and that with sixteen men and twenty-two dogs
  8969. right on their very heels at that very time!  I tell you, it just bangs
  8970. anything I ever _heard_ of. Why, _sperits_ couldn't a done better and
  8971. been no smarter. And I reckon they must a _been_ sperits--because, _you_
  8972. know our dogs, and ther' ain't no better; well, them dogs never even got
  8973. on the _track_ of 'm once!  You explain _that_ to me if you can!--_any_
  8974. of you!”
  8975. “Well, it does beat--”
  8976. “Laws alive, I never--”
  8977. “So help me, I wouldn't a be--”
  8978. “_House_-thieves as well as--”
  8979. “Goodnessgracioussakes, I'd a ben afeard to live in sich a--”
  8980. “'Fraid to _live_!--why, I was that scared I dasn't hardly go to bed, or
  8981. get up, or lay down, or _set_ down, Sister Ridgeway.  Why, they'd steal
  8982. the very--why, goodness sakes, you can guess what kind of a fluster I was
  8983. in by the time midnight come last night.  I hope to gracious if I warn't
  8984. afraid they'd steal some o' the family!  I was just to that pass I
  8985. didn't have no reasoning faculties no more.  It looks foolish enough
  8986. _now_, in the daytime; but I says to myself, there's my two poor boys
  8987. asleep, 'way up stairs in that lonesome room, and I declare to goodness
  8988. I was that uneasy 't I crep' up there and locked 'em in!  I _did_.  And
  8989. anybody would. Because, you know, when you get scared that way, and it
  8990. keeps running on, and getting worse and worse all the time, and your
  8991. wits gets to addling, and you get to doing all sorts o' wild things,
  8992. and by and by you think to yourself, spos'n I was a boy, and was away up
  8993. there, and the door ain't locked, and you--” She stopped, looking kind
  8994. of wondering, and then she turned her head around slow, and when her eye
  8995. lit on me--I got up and took a walk.
  8996. Says I to myself, I can explain better how we come to not be in that
  8997. room this morning if I go out to one side and study over it a little.
  8998.  So I done it.  But I dasn't go fur, or she'd a sent for me.  And when
  8999. it was late in the day the people all went, and then I come in and
  9000. told her the noise and shooting waked up me and “Sid,” and the door was
  9001. locked, and we wanted to see the fun, so we went down the lightning-rod,
  9002. and both of us got hurt a little, and we didn't never want to try _that_
  9003. no more.  And then I went on and told her all what I told Uncle Silas
  9004. before; and then she said she'd forgive us, and maybe it was all right
  9005. enough anyway, and about what a body might expect of boys, for all boys
  9006. was a pretty harum-scarum lot as fur as she could see; and so, as long
  9007. as no harm hadn't come of it, she judged she better put in her time
  9008. being grateful we was alive and well and she had us still, stead of
  9009. fretting over what was past and done.  So then she kissed me, and patted
  9010. me on the head, and dropped into a kind of a brown study; and pretty
  9011. soon jumps up, and says:
  9012. “Why, lawsamercy, it's most night, and Sid not come yet!  What _has_
  9013. become of that boy?”
  9014. I see my chance; so I skips up and says:
  9015. “I'll run right up to town and get him,” I says.
  9016. “No you won't,” she says. “You'll stay right wher' you are; _one's_
  9017. enough to be lost at a time.  If he ain't here to supper, your uncle 'll
  9018. go.”
  9019. Well, he warn't there to supper; so right after supper uncle went.
  9020. He come back about ten a little bit uneasy; hadn't run across Tom's
  9021. track. Aunt Sally was a good _deal_ uneasy; but Uncle Silas he said
  9022. there warn't no occasion to be--boys will be boys, he said, and you'll
  9023. see this one turn up in the morning all sound and right.  So she had
  9024. to be satisfied.  But she said she'd set up for him a while anyway, and
  9025. keep a light burning so he could see it.
  9026. And then when I went up to bed she come up with me and fetched her
  9027. candle, and tucked me in, and mothered me so good I felt mean, and like
  9028. I couldn't look her in the face; and she set down on the bed and talked
  9029. with me a long time, and said what a splendid boy Sid was, and didn't
  9030. seem to want to ever stop talking about him; and kept asking me every
  9031. now and then if I reckoned he could a got lost, or hurt, or maybe
  9032. drownded, and might be laying at this minute somewheres suffering or
  9033. dead, and she not by him to help him, and so the tears would drip down
  9034. silent, and I would tell her that Sid was all right, and would be home
  9035. in the morning, sure; and she would squeeze my hand, or maybe kiss me,
  9036. and tell me to say it again, and keep on saying it, because it done her
  9037. good, and she was in so much trouble.  And when she was going away she
  9038. looked down in my eyes so steady and gentle, and says:
  9039. “The door ain't going to be locked, Tom, and there's the window and
  9040. the rod; but you'll be good, _won't_ you?  And you won't go?  For _my_
  9041. sake.”
  9042. Laws knows I _wanted_ to go bad enough to see about Tom, and was all
  9043. intending to go; but after that I wouldn't a went, not for kingdoms.
  9044. But she was on my mind and Tom was on my mind, so I slept very restless.
  9045. And twice I went down the rod away in the night, and slipped around
  9046. front, and see her setting there by her candle in the window with her
  9047. eyes towards the road and the tears in them; and I wished I could do
  9048. something for her, but I couldn't, only to swear that I wouldn't never
  9049. do nothing to grieve her any more.  And the third time I waked up at
  9050. dawn, and slid down, and she was there yet, and her candle was most out,
  9051. and her old gray head was resting on her hand, and she was asleep.
  9052. CHAPTER XLII.
  9053. THE old man was uptown again before breakfast, but couldn't get no
  9054. track of Tom; and both of them set at the table thinking, and not saying
  9055. nothing, and looking mournful, and their coffee getting cold, and not
  9056. eating anything. And by and by the old man says:
  9057. “Did I give you the letter?”
  9058. “What letter?”
  9059. “The one I got yesterday out of the post-office.”
  9060. “No, you didn't give me no letter.”
  9061. “Well, I must a forgot it.”
  9062. So he rummaged his pockets, and then went off somewheres where he had
  9063. laid it down, and fetched it, and give it to her.  She says:
  9064. “Why, it's from St. Petersburg--it's from Sis.”
  9065. I allowed another walk would do me good; but I couldn't stir.  But
  9066. before she could break it open she dropped it and run--for she see
  9067. something. And so did I. It was Tom Sawyer on a mattress; and that old
  9068. doctor; and Jim, in _her_ calico dress, with his hands tied behind him;
  9069. and a lot of people.  I hid the letter behind the first thing that come
  9070. handy, and rushed.  She flung herself at Tom, crying, and says:
  9071. “Oh, he's dead, he's dead, I know he's dead!”
  9072. And Tom he turned his head a little, and muttered something or other,
  9073. which showed he warn't in his right mind; then she flung up her hands,
  9074. and says:
  9075. “He's alive, thank God!  And that's enough!” and she snatched a kiss of
  9076. him, and flew for the house to get the bed ready, and scattering orders
  9077. right and left at the niggers and everybody else, as fast as her tongue
  9078. could go, every jump of the way.
  9079. I followed the men to see what they was going to do with Jim; and the
  9080. old doctor and Uncle Silas followed after Tom into the house.  The men
  9081. was very huffy, and some of them wanted to hang Jim for an example to
  9082. all the other niggers around there, so they wouldn't be trying to run
  9083. away like Jim done, and making such a raft of trouble, and keeping a
  9084. whole family scared most to death for days and nights.  But the others
  9085. said, don't do it, it wouldn't answer at all; he ain't our nigger, and
  9086. his owner would turn up and make us pay for him, sure.  So that cooled
  9087. them down a little, because the people that's always the most anxious
  9088. for to hang a nigger that hain't done just right is always the very
  9089. ones that ain't the most anxious to pay for him when they've got their
  9090. satisfaction out of him.
  9091. They cussed Jim considerble, though, and give him a cuff or two side the
  9092. head once in a while, but Jim never said nothing, and he never let on to
  9093. know me, and they took him to the same cabin, and put his own clothes
  9094. on him, and chained him again, and not to no bed-leg this time, but to
  9095. a big staple drove into the bottom log, and chained his hands, too, and
  9096. both legs, and said he warn't to have nothing but bread and water to
  9097. eat after this till his owner come, or he was sold at auction because
  9098. he didn't come in a certain length of time, and filled up our hole, and
  9099. said a couple of farmers with guns must stand watch around about the
  9100. cabin every night, and a bulldog tied to the door in the daytime; and
  9101. about this time they was through with the job and was tapering off with
  9102. a kind of generl good-bye cussing, and then the old doctor comes and
  9103. takes a look, and says:
  9104. “Don't be no rougher on him than you're obleeged to, because he ain't
  9105. a bad nigger.  When I got to where I found the boy I see I couldn't cut
  9106. the bullet out without some help, and he warn't in no condition for
  9107. me to leave to go and get help; and he got a little worse and a little
  9108. worse, and after a long time he went out of his head, and wouldn't let
  9109. me come a-nigh him any more, and said if I chalked his raft he'd kill
  9110. me, and no end of wild foolishness like that, and I see I couldn't do
  9111. anything at all with him; so I says, I got to have _help_ somehow; and
  9112. the minute I says it out crawls this nigger from somewheres and says
  9113. he'll help, and he done it, too, and done it very well.  Of course I
  9114. judged he must be a runaway nigger, and there I _was_! and there I had
  9115. to stick right straight along all the rest of the day and all night.  It
  9116. was a fix, I tell you! I had a couple of patients with the chills, and
  9117. of course I'd of liked to run up to town and see them, but I dasn't,
  9118. because the nigger might get away, and then I'd be to blame; and yet
  9119. never a skiff come close enough for me to hail.  So there I had to stick
  9120. plumb until daylight this morning; and I never see a nigger that was a
  9121. better nuss or faithfuller, and yet he was risking his freedom to do it,
  9122. and was all tired out, too, and I see plain enough he'd been worked
  9123. main hard lately.  I liked the nigger for that; I tell you, gentlemen, a
  9124. nigger like that is worth a thousand dollars--and kind treatment, too.  I
  9125. had everything I needed, and the boy was doing as well there as he
  9126. would a done at home--better, maybe, because it was so quiet; but there I
  9127. _was_, with both of 'm on my hands, and there I had to stick till about
  9128. dawn this morning; then some men in a skiff come by, and as good luck
  9129. would have it the nigger was setting by the pallet with his head propped
  9130. on his knees sound asleep; so I motioned them in quiet, and they slipped
  9131. up on him and grabbed him and tied him before he knowed what he was
  9132. about, and we never had no trouble. And the boy being in a kind of a
  9133. flighty sleep, too, we muffled the oars and hitched the raft on, and
  9134. towed her over very nice and quiet, and the nigger never made the least
  9135. row nor said a word from the start.  He ain't no bad nigger, gentlemen;
  9136. that's what I think about him.”
  9137. Somebody says:
  9138. “Well, it sounds very good, doctor, I'm obleeged to say.”
  9139. Then the others softened up a little, too, and I was mighty thankful
  9140. to that old doctor for doing Jim that good turn; and I was glad it was
  9141. according to my judgment of him, too; because I thought he had a good
  9142. heart in him and was a good man the first time I see him.  Then they
  9143. all agreed that Jim had acted very well, and was deserving to have some
  9144. notice took of it, and reward.  So every one of them promised, right out
  9145. and hearty, that they wouldn't cuss him no more.
  9146. Then they come out and locked him up.  I hoped they was going to say he
  9147. could have one or two of the chains took off, because they was rotten
  9148. heavy, or could have meat and greens with his bread and water; but they
  9149. didn't think of it, and I reckoned it warn't best for me to mix in, but
  9150. I judged I'd get the doctor's yarn to Aunt Sally somehow or other as
  9151. soon as I'd got through the breakers that was laying just ahead of
  9152. me--explanations, I mean, of how I forgot to mention about Sid being shot
  9153. when I was telling how him and me put in that dratted night paddling
  9154. around hunting the runaway nigger.
  9155. But I had plenty time.  Aunt Sally she stuck to the sick-room all day
  9156. and all night, and every time I see Uncle Silas mooning around I dodged
  9157. him.
  9158. Next morning I heard Tom was a good deal better, and they said Aunt
  9159. Sally was gone to get a nap.  So I slips to the sick-room, and if I
  9160. found him awake I reckoned we could put up a yarn for the family that
  9161. would wash. But he was sleeping, and sleeping very peaceful, too; and
  9162. pale, not fire-faced the way he was when he come.  So I set down and
  9163. laid for him to wake.  In about half an hour Aunt Sally comes gliding
  9164. in, and there I was, up a stump again!  She motioned me to be still, and
  9165. set down by me, and begun to whisper, and said we could all be joyful
  9166. now, because all the symptoms was first-rate, and he'd been sleeping
  9167. like that for ever so long, and looking better and peacefuller all the
  9168. time, and ten to one he'd wake up in his right mind.
  9169. So we set there watching, and by and by he stirs a bit, and opened his
  9170. eyes very natural, and takes a look, and says:
  9171. “Hello!--why, I'm at _home_!  How's that?  Where's the raft?”
  9172. “It's all right,” I says.
  9173. “And _Jim_?”
  9174. “The same,” I says, but couldn't say it pretty brash.  But he never
  9175. noticed, but says:
  9176. “Good!  Splendid!  _Now_ we're all right and safe! Did you tell Aunty?”
  9177. I was going to say yes; but she chipped in and says: “About what, Sid?”
  9178. “Why, about the way the whole thing was done.”
  9179. “What whole thing?”
  9180. “Why, _the_ whole thing.  There ain't but one; how we set the runaway
  9181. nigger free--me and Tom.”
  9182. “Good land!  Set the run--What _is_ the child talking about!  Dear, dear,
  9183. out of his head again!”
  9184. “_No_, I ain't out of my _head_; I know all what I'm talking about.  We
  9185. _did_ set him free--me and Tom.  We laid out to do it, and we _done_ it.
  9186.  And we done it elegant, too.”  He'd got a start, and she never checked
  9187. him up, just set and stared and stared, and let him clip along, and
  9188. I see it warn't no use for _me_ to put in. “Why, Aunty, it cost us a
  9189. power of work--weeks of it--hours and hours, every night, whilst you was
  9190. all asleep. And we had to steal candles, and the sheet, and the shirt,
  9191. and your dress, and spoons, and tin plates, and case-knives, and the
  9192. warming-pan, and the grindstone, and flour, and just no end of things,
  9193. and you can't think what work it was to make the saws, and pens, and
  9194. inscriptions, and one thing or another, and you can't think _half_ the
  9195. fun it was.  And we had to make up the pictures of coffins and things,
  9196. and nonnamous letters from the robbers, and get up and down the
  9197. lightning-rod, and dig the hole into the cabin, and made the rope ladder
  9198. and send it in cooked up in a pie, and send in spoons and things to work
  9199. with in your apron pocket--”
  9200. “Mercy sakes!”
  9201. “--and load up the cabin with rats and snakes and so on, for company for
  9202. Jim; and then you kept Tom here so long with the butter in his hat that
  9203. you come near spiling the whole business, because the men come before
  9204. we was out of the cabin, and we had to rush, and they heard us and let
  9205. drive at us, and I got my share, and we dodged out of the path and let
  9206. them go by, and when the dogs come they warn't interested in us, but
  9207. went for the most noise, and we got our canoe, and made for the
  9208. raft, and was all safe, and Jim was a free man, and we done it all by
  9209. ourselves, and _wasn't_ it bully, Aunty!”
  9210. “Well, I never heard the likes of it in all my born days!  So it was
  9211. _you_, you little rapscallions, that's been making all this trouble,
  9212. and turned everybody's wits clean inside out and scared us all most to
  9213. death.  I've as good a notion as ever I had in my life to take it out
  9214. o' you this very minute.  To think, here I've been, night after night,
  9215. a--_you_ just get well once, you young scamp, and I lay I'll tan the Old
  9216. Harry out o' both o' ye!”
  9217. But Tom, he _was_ so proud and joyful, he just _couldn't_ hold in,
  9218. and his tongue just _went_ it--she a-chipping in, and spitting fire all
  9219. along, and both of them going it at once, like a cat convention; and she
  9220. says:
  9221. “_Well_, you get all the enjoyment you can out of it _now_, for mind I
  9222. tell you if I catch you meddling with him again--”
  9223. “Meddling with _who_?”  Tom says, dropping his smile and looking
  9224. surprised.
  9225. “With _who_?  Why, the runaway nigger, of course.  Who'd you reckon?”
  9226. Tom looks at me very grave, and says:
  9227. “Tom, didn't you just tell me he was all right?  Hasn't he got away?”
  9228. “_Him_?” says Aunt Sally; “the runaway nigger? 'Deed he hasn't.
  9229.  They've got him back, safe and sound, and he's in that cabin again,
  9230. on bread and water, and loaded down with chains, till he's claimed or
  9231. sold!”
  9232. Tom rose square up in bed, with his eye hot, and his nostrils opening
  9233. and shutting like gills, and sings out to me:
  9234. “They hain't no _right_ to shut him up!  SHOVE!--and don't you lose a
  9235. minute.  Turn him loose! he ain't no slave; he's as free as any cretur
  9236. that walks this earth!”
  9237. “What _does_ the child mean?”
  9238. “I mean every word I _say_, Aunt Sally, and if somebody don't go, _I'll_
  9239. go. I've knowed him all his life, and so has Tom, there.  Old Miss
  9240. Watson died two months ago, and she was ashamed she ever was going to
  9241. sell him down the river, and _said_ so; and she set him free in her
  9242. will.”
  9243. “Then what on earth did _you_ want to set him free for, seeing he was
  9244. already free?”
  9245. “Well, that _is_ a question, I must say; and just like women!  Why,
  9246. I wanted the _adventure_ of it; and I'd a waded neck-deep in blood
  9247. to--goodness alive, _Aunt Polly!_”
  9248. If she warn't standing right there, just inside the door, looking as
  9249. sweet and contented as an angel half full of pie, I wish I may never!
  9250. Aunt Sally jumped for her, and most hugged the head off of her, and
  9251. cried over her, and I found a good enough place for me under the bed,
  9252. for it was getting pretty sultry for us, seemed to me.  And I peeped
  9253. out, and in a little while Tom's Aunt Polly shook herself loose and
  9254. stood there looking across at Tom over her spectacles--kind of grinding
  9255. him into the earth, you know.  And then she says:
  9256. “Yes, you _better_ turn y'r head away--I would if I was you, Tom.”
  9257. “Oh, deary me!” says Aunt Sally; “_Is_ he changed so?  Why, that ain't
  9258. _Tom_, it's Sid; Tom's--Tom's--why, where is Tom?  He was here a minute
  9259. ago.”
  9260. “You mean where's Huck _Finn_--that's what you mean!  I reckon I hain't
  9261. raised such a scamp as my Tom all these years not to know him when I
  9262. _see_ him.  That _would_ be a pretty howdy-do. Come out from under that
  9263. bed, Huck Finn.”
  9264. So I done it.  But not feeling brash.
  9265. Aunt Sally she was one of the mixed-upest-looking persons I ever
  9266. see--except one, and that was Uncle Silas, when he come in and they told
  9267. it all to him.  It kind of made him drunk, as you may say, and he didn't
  9268. know nothing at all the rest of the day, and preached a prayer-meeting
  9269. sermon that night that gave him a rattling ruputation, because the
  9270. oldest man in the world couldn't a understood it.  So Tom's Aunt Polly,
  9271. she told all about who I was, and what; and I had to up and tell how
  9272. I was in such a tight place that when Mrs. Phelps took me for Tom
  9273. Sawyer--she chipped in and says, “Oh, go on and call me Aunt Sally, I'm
  9274. used to it now, and 'tain't no need to change”--that when Aunt Sally took
  9275. me for Tom Sawyer I had to stand it--there warn't no other way, and
  9276. I knowed he wouldn't mind, because it would be nuts for him, being
  9277. a mystery, and he'd make an adventure out of it, and be perfectly
  9278. satisfied.  And so it turned out, and he let on to be Sid, and made
  9279. things as soft as he could for me.
  9280. And his Aunt Polly she said Tom was right about old Miss Watson setting
  9281. Jim free in her will; and so, sure enough, Tom Sawyer had gone and took
  9282. all that trouble and bother to set a free nigger free! and I couldn't
  9283. ever understand before, until that minute and that talk, how he _could_
  9284. help a body set a nigger free with his bringing-up.
  9285. Well, Aunt Polly she said that when Aunt Sally wrote to her that Tom and
  9286. _Sid_ had come all right and safe, she says to herself:
  9287. “Look at that, now!  I might have expected it, letting him go off that
  9288. way without anybody to watch him.  So now I got to go and trapse all
  9289. the way down the river, eleven hundred mile, and find out what that
  9290. creetur's up to _this_ time, as long as I couldn't seem to get any
  9291. answer out of you about it.”
  9292. “Why, I never heard nothing from you,” says Aunt Sally.
  9293. “Well, I wonder!  Why, I wrote you twice to ask you what you could mean
  9294. by Sid being here.”
  9295. “Well, I never got 'em, Sis.”
  9296. Aunt Polly she turns around slow and severe, and says:
  9297. “You, Tom!”
  9298. “Well--_what_?” he says, kind of pettish.
  9299. “Don't you what _me_, you impudent thing--hand out them letters.”
  9300. “What letters?”
  9301. “_Them_ letters.  I be bound, if I have to take a-holt of you I'll--”
  9302. “They're in the trunk.  There, now.  And they're just the same as they
  9303. was when I got them out of the office.  I hain't looked into them, I
  9304. hain't touched them.  But I knowed they'd make trouble, and I thought if
  9305. you warn't in no hurry, I'd--”
  9306. “Well, you _do_ need skinning, there ain't no mistake about it.  And I
  9307. wrote another one to tell you I was coming; and I s'pose he--”
  9308. “No, it come yesterday; I hain't read it yet, but _it's_ all right, I've
  9309. got that one.”
  9310. I wanted to offer to bet two dollars she hadn't, but I reckoned maybe it
  9311. was just as safe to not to.  So I never said nothing.
  9312. CHAPTER THE LAST
  9313. THE first time I catched Tom private I asked him what was his idea, time
  9314. of the evasion?--what it was he'd planned to do if the evasion worked all
  9315. right and he managed to set a nigger free that was already free before?
  9316. And he said, what he had planned in his head from the start, if we got
  9317. Jim out all safe, was for us to run him down the river on the raft, and
  9318. have adventures plumb to the mouth of the river, and then tell him about
  9319. his being free, and take him back up home on a steamboat, in style,
  9320. and pay him for his lost time, and write word ahead and get out all
  9321. the niggers around, and have them waltz him into town with a torchlight
  9322. procession and a brass-band, and then he would be a hero, and so would
  9323. we.  But I reckoned it was about as well the way it was.
  9324. We had Jim out of the chains in no time, and when Aunt Polly and Uncle
  9325. Silas and Aunt Sally found out how good he helped the doctor nurse Tom,
  9326. they made a heap of fuss over him, and fixed him up prime, and give him
  9327. all he wanted to eat, and a good time, and nothing to do.  And we had
  9328. him up to the sick-room, and had a high talk; and Tom give Jim forty
  9329. dollars for being prisoner for us so patient, and doing it up so good,
  9330. and Jim was pleased most to death, and busted out, and says:
  9331. “Dah, now, Huck, what I tell you?--what I tell you up dah on Jackson
  9332. islan'?  I _tole_ you I got a hairy breas', en what's de sign un it; en
  9333. I _tole_ you I ben rich wunst, en gwineter to be rich _agin_; en it's
  9334. come true; en heah she is!  _dah_, now! doan' talk to _me_--signs is
  9335. _signs_, mine I tell you; en I knowed jis' 's well 'at I 'uz gwineter be
  9336. rich agin as I's a-stannin' heah dis minute!”
  9337. And then Tom he talked along and talked along, and says, le's all three
  9338. slide out of here one of these nights and get an outfit, and go for
  9339. howling adventures amongst the Injuns, over in the Territory, for a
  9340. couple of weeks or two; and I says, all right, that suits me, but I
  9341. ain't got no money for to buy the outfit, and I reckon I couldn't get
  9342. none from home, because it's likely pap's been back before now, and got
  9343. it all away from Judge Thatcher and drunk it up.
  9344. “No, he hain't,” Tom says; “it's all there yet--six thousand dollars
  9345. and more; and your pap hain't ever been back since.  Hadn't when I come
  9346. away, anyhow.”
  9347. Jim says, kind of solemn:
  9348. “He ain't a-comin' back no mo', Huck.”
  9349. I says:
  9350. “Why, Jim?”
  9351. “Nemmine why, Huck--but he ain't comin' back no mo.”
  9352. But I kept at him; so at last he says:
  9353. “Doan' you 'member de house dat was float'n down de river, en dey wuz a
  9354. man in dah, kivered up, en I went in en unkivered him and didn' let you
  9355. come in?  Well, den, you kin git yo' money when you wants it, kase dat
  9356. wuz him.”
  9357. Tom's most well now, and got his bullet around his neck on a watch-guard
  9358. for a watch, and is always seeing what time it is, and so there ain't
  9359. nothing more to write about, and I am rotten glad of it, because if I'd
  9360. a knowed what a trouble it was to make a book I wouldn't a tackled it,
  9361. and ain't a-going to no more.  But I reckon I got to light out for the
  9362. Territory ahead of the rest, because Aunt Sally she's going to adopt me
  9363. and sivilize me, and I can't stand it.  I been there before.
  9364. THE END. YOURS TRULY, _HUCK FINN_.
  9365. End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Adventures of Huckleberry Finn,
  9366. Complete, by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
  9367. *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUCKLEBERRY FINN ***
  9368. ***** This file should be named 76-0.htm or 76-0.zip ***** This and
  9369. all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  9370. http://www.gutenberg.net/7/76/
  9371. Produced by David Widger. Previous editions produced by Ron Burkey and
  9372. Internet Wiretap
  9373. Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will be
  9374. renamed.
  9375. Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one
  9376. owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and
  9377. you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission
  9378. and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in
  9379. the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and
  9380. distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the
  9381. PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a
  9382. registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks,
  9383. unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything
  9384. for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You
  9385. may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative
  9386. works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and
  9387. printed and given away--you may do practically ANYTHING with public
  9388. domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license,
  9389. especially commercial redistribution.
  9390. *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  9391. THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU
  9392. DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  9393. To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  9394. distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  9395. (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
  9396. Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
  9397. Project Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  9398. http://gutenberg.net/license).
  9399. Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  9400. electronic works
  9401. 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  9402. electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree
  9403. to and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  9404. (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the
  9405. terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all
  9406. copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  9407. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  9408. Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  9409. terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  9410. entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  9411. 1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be used
  9412. on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who agree
  9413. to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things that
  9414. you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works even without
  9415. complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1.C
  9416. below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg-tm
  9417. electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help
  9418. preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
  9419. See paragraph 1.E below.
  9420. 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation”
  9421. or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  9422. Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in
  9423. the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  9424. individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you
  9425. are located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent
  9426. you from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating
  9427. derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project
  9428. Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the
  9429. Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic
  9430. works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with
  9431. the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name
  9432. associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this
  9433. agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached
  9434. full Project Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with
  9435. others.
  9436. 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  9437. what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  9438. a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  9439. the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  9440. before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing
  9441. or creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  9442. Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  9443. the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  9444. States.
  9445. 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  9446. 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  9447. access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  9448. whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  9449. phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
  9450. Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  9451. copied or distributed:
  9452. This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
  9453. no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
  9454. it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  9455. eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  9456. 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  9457. from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  9458. posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  9459. and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  9460. or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with
  9461. the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work,
  9462. you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through
  9463. 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project
  9464. Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  9465. 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  9466. with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  9467. must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  9468. terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  9469. to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  9470. permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  9471. 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  9472. License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  9473. work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  9474. 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute
  9475. this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  9476. prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  9477. active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  9478. Gutenberg-tm License.
  9479. 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  9480. compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  9481. word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  9482. distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other
  9483. than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
  9484. version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
  9485. (www.gutenberg.net), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
  9486. to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
  9487. of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
  9488. Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the full
  9489. Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  9490. 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  9491. performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  9492. unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  9493. 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access
  9494. to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided that
  9495. - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  9496. the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method you
  9497. already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the
  9498. owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has agreed to donate
  9499. royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  9500. Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days following each
  9501. date on which you prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your
  9502. periodic tax returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such
  9503. and sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  9504. address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to the
  9505. Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
  9506. - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies you
  9507. in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does not
  9508. agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm License. You
  9509. must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the works
  9510. possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all access
  9511. to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  9512. - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
  9513. any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  9514. electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
  9515. receipt of the work.
  9516. - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  9517. distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  9518. 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  9519. electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth
  9520. in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the
  9521. Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the
  9522. owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as
  9523. set forth in Section 3 below.
  9524. 1.F.
  9525. 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  9526. effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  9527. public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm collection.
  9528. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, and the
  9529. medium on which they may be stored, may contain “Defects,” such as, but
  9530. not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription
  9531. errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a
  9532. defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer
  9533. codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
  9534. 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
  9535. of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  9536. Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  9537. Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  9538. Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  9539. liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees.
  9540. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY,
  9541. BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN
  9542. PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND
  9543. ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR
  9544. ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES
  9545. EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
  9546. 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a defect
  9547. in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive
  9548. a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a written
  9549. explanation to the person you received the work from. If you received
  9550. the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with your
  9551. written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with the
  9552. defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  9553. refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  9554. providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  9555. receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  9556. is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  9557. opportunities to fix the problem.
  9558. 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  9559. in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  9560. WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  9561. WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  9562. 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  9563. warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  9564. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  9565. law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  9566. interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  9567. the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  9568. provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  9569. 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation,
  9570. the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  9571. providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  9572. with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  9573. promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  9574. harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  9575. that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  9576. or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  9577. work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  9578. Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  9579. Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  9580. Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  9581. electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  9582. including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  9583. because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  9584. people in all walks of life.
  9585. Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  9586. assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  9587. goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will remain
  9588. freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg
  9589. Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and
  9590. permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. To
  9591. learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
  9592. how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
  9593. Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  9594. Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  9595. Foundation
  9596. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  9597. 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state
  9598. of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue
  9599. Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number
  9600. is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  9601. http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  9602. Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  9603. permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  9604. The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  9605. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  9606. throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  9607. 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887,
  9608. email business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  9609. information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official page
  9610. at http://pglaf.org
  9611. For additional contact information: Dr. Gregory B. Newby Chief Executive
  9612. and Director gbnewby@pglaf.org
  9613. Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  9614. Archive Foundation
  9615. Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread
  9616. public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing
  9617. the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely
  9618. distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array
  9619. of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to
  9620. $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with
  9621. the IRS.
  9622. The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  9623. charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  9624. States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  9625. considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  9626. with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  9627. where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
  9628. DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
  9629. visit http://pglaf.org
  9630. While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  9631. have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  9632. against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  9633. approach us with offers to donate.
  9634. International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any
  9635. statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside
  9636. the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  9637. Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  9638. methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways
  9639. including including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  9640. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  9641. Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  9642. works.
  9643. Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  9644. concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  9645. with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  9646. Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  9647. Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  9648. editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless
  9649. a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks
  9650. in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  9651. Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  9652. http://www.gutenberg.net
  9653. This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, including
  9654. how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  9655. Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to
  9656. our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.